Quotations.ch
  Directory : Sense and Sensibility
GUIDE SUPPORT US BLOG
  • The Project Gutenberg EBook of Sense and Sensibility, by Jane Austen
  • This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
  • almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
  • re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
  • with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.net
  • Title: Sense and Sensibility
  • Author: Jane Austen
  • Release Date: May 25, 2008 [EBook #161]
  • [Last updated: February 11, 2015]
  • Language: English
  • *** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK SENSE AND SENSIBILITY ***
  • Special thanks are due to Sharon Partridge for extensive
  • proofreading and correction of this etext.
  • SENSE AND SENSIBILITY
  • by Jane Austen
  • (1811)
  • CHAPTER 1
  • The family of Dashwood had long been settled in Sussex. Their estate
  • was large, and their residence was at Norland Park, in the centre of
  • their property, where, for many generations, they had lived in so
  • respectable a manner as to engage the general good opinion of their
  • surrounding acquaintance. The late owner of this estate was a single
  • man, who lived to a very advanced age, and who for many years of his
  • life, had a constant companion and housekeeper in his sister. But her
  • death, which happened ten years before his own, produced a great
  • alteration in his home; for to supply her loss, he invited and received
  • into his house the family of his nephew Mr. Henry Dashwood, the legal
  • inheritor of the Norland estate, and the person to whom he intended to
  • bequeath it. In the society of his nephew and niece, and their
  • children, the old Gentleman's days were comfortably spent. His
  • attachment to them all increased. The constant attention of Mr. and
  • Mrs. Henry Dashwood to his wishes, which proceeded not merely from
  • interest, but from goodness of heart, gave him every degree of solid
  • comfort which his age could receive; and the cheerfulness of the
  • children added a relish to his existence.
  • By a former marriage, Mr. Henry Dashwood had one son: by his present
  • lady, three daughters. The son, a steady respectable young man, was
  • amply provided for by the fortune of his mother, which had been large,
  • and half of which devolved on him on his coming of age. By his own
  • marriage, likewise, which happened soon afterwards, he added to his
  • wealth. To him therefore the succession to the Norland estate was not
  • so really important as to his sisters; for their fortune, independent
  • of what might arise to them from their father's inheriting that
  • property, could be but small. Their mother had nothing, and their
  • father only seven thousand pounds in his own disposal; for the
  • remaining moiety of his first wife's fortune was also secured to her
  • child, and he had only a life-interest in it.
  • The old gentleman died: his will was read, and like almost every other
  • will, gave as much disappointment as pleasure. He was neither so
  • unjust, nor so ungrateful, as to leave his estate from his nephew;--but
  • he left it to him on such terms as destroyed half the value of the
  • bequest. Mr. Dashwood had wished for it more for the sake of his wife
  • and daughters than for himself or his son;--but to his son, and his
  • son's son, a child of four years old, it was secured, in such a way, as
  • to leave to himself no power of providing for those who were most dear
  • to him, and who most needed a provision by any charge on the estate, or
  • by any sale of its valuable woods. The whole was tied up for the
  • benefit of this child, who, in occasional visits with his father and
  • mother at Norland, had so far gained on the affections of his uncle, by
  • such attractions as are by no means unusual in children of two or three
  • years old; an imperfect articulation, an earnest desire of having his
  • own way, many cunning tricks, and a great deal of noise, as to outweigh
  • all the value of all the attention which, for years, he had received
  • from his niece and her daughters. He meant not to be unkind, however,
  • and, as a mark of his affection for the three girls, he left them a
  • thousand pounds a-piece.
  • Mr. Dashwood's disappointment was, at first, severe; but his temper was
  • cheerful and sanguine; and he might reasonably hope to live many years,
  • and by living economically, lay by a considerable sum from the produce
  • of an estate already large, and capable of almost immediate
  • improvement. But the fortune, which had been so tardy in coming, was
  • his only one twelvemonth. He survived his uncle no longer; and ten
  • thousand pounds, including the late legacies, was all that remained for
  • his widow and daughters.
  • His son was sent for as soon as his danger was known, and to him Mr.
  • Dashwood recommended, with all the strength and urgency which illness
  • could command, the interest of his mother-in-law and sisters.
  • Mr. John Dashwood had not the strong feelings of the rest of the
  • family; but he was affected by a recommendation of such a nature at
  • such a time, and he promised to do every thing in his power to make
  • them comfortable. His father was rendered easy by such an assurance,
  • and Mr. John Dashwood had then leisure to consider how much there might
  • prudently be in his power to do for them.
  • He was not an ill-disposed young man, unless to be rather cold hearted
  • and rather selfish is to be ill-disposed: but he was, in general, well
  • respected; for he conducted himself with propriety in the discharge of
  • his ordinary duties. Had he married a more amiable woman, he might
  • have been made still more respectable than he was:--he might even have
  • been made amiable himself; for he was very young when he married, and
  • very fond of his wife. But Mrs. John Dashwood was a strong caricature
  • of himself;--more narrow-minded and selfish.
  • When he gave his promise to his father, he meditated within himself to
  • increase the fortunes of his sisters by the present of a thousand
  • pounds a-piece. He then really thought himself equal to it. The
  • prospect of four thousand a-year, in addition to his present income,
  • besides the remaining half of his own mother's fortune, warmed his
  • heart, and made him feel capable of generosity.-- "Yes, he would give
  • them three thousand pounds: it would be liberal and handsome! It would
  • be enough to make them completely easy. Three thousand pounds! he
  • could spare so considerable a sum with little inconvenience."-- He
  • thought of it all day long, and for many days successively, and he did
  • not repent.
  • No sooner was his father's funeral over, than Mrs. John Dashwood,
  • without sending any notice of her intention to her mother-in-law,
  • arrived with her child and their attendants. No one could dispute her
  • right to come; the house was her husband's from the moment of his
  • father's decease; but the indelicacy of her conduct was so much the
  • greater, and to a woman in Mrs. Dashwood's situation, with only common
  • feelings, must have been highly unpleasing;--but in HER mind there was
  • a sense of honor so keen, a generosity so romantic, that any offence of
  • the kind, by whomsoever given or received, was to her a source of
  • immovable disgust. Mrs. John Dashwood had never been a favourite with
  • any of her husband's family; but she had had no opportunity, till the
  • present, of shewing them with how little attention to the comfort of
  • other people she could act when occasion required it.
  • So acutely did Mrs. Dashwood feel this ungracious behaviour, and so
  • earnestly did she despise her daughter-in-law for it, that, on the
  • arrival of the latter, she would have quitted the house for ever, had
  • not the entreaty of her eldest girl induced her first to reflect on the
  • propriety of going, and her own tender love for all her three children
  • determined her afterwards to stay, and for their sakes avoid a breach
  • with their brother.
  • Elinor, this eldest daughter, whose advice was so effectual, possessed
  • a strength of understanding, and coolness of judgment, which qualified
  • her, though only nineteen, to be the counsellor of her mother, and
  • enabled her frequently to counteract, to the advantage of them all,
  • that eagerness of mind in Mrs. Dashwood which must generally have led
  • to imprudence. She had an excellent heart;--her disposition was
  • affectionate, and her feelings were strong; but she knew how to govern
  • them: it was a knowledge which her mother had yet to learn; and which
  • one of her sisters had resolved never to be taught.
  • Marianne's abilities were, in many respects, quite equal to Elinor's.
  • She was sensible and clever; but eager in everything: her sorrows, her
  • joys, could have no moderation. She was generous, amiable,
  • interesting: she was everything but prudent. The resemblance between
  • her and her mother was strikingly great.
  • Elinor saw, with concern, the excess of her sister's sensibility; but
  • by Mrs. Dashwood it was valued and cherished. They encouraged each
  • other now in the violence of their affliction. The agony of grief
  • which overpowered them at first, was voluntarily renewed, was sought
  • for, was created again and again. They gave themselves up wholly to
  • their sorrow, seeking increase of wretchedness in every reflection that
  • could afford it, and resolved against ever admitting consolation in
  • future. Elinor, too, was deeply afflicted; but still she could
  • struggle, she could exert herself. She could consult with her brother,
  • could receive her sister-in-law on her arrival, and treat her with
  • proper attention; and could strive to rouse her mother to similar
  • exertion, and encourage her to similar forbearance.
  • Margaret, the other sister, was a good-humored, well-disposed girl; but
  • as she had already imbibed a good deal of Marianne's romance, without
  • having much of her sense, she did not, at thirteen, bid fair to equal
  • her sisters at a more advanced period of life.
  • CHAPTER 2
  • Mrs. John Dashwood now installed herself mistress of Norland; and her
  • mother and sisters-in-law were degraded to the condition of visitors.
  • As such, however, they were treated by her with quiet civility; and by
  • her husband with as much kindness as he could feel towards anybody
  • beyond himself, his wife, and their child. He really pressed them,
  • with some earnestness, to consider Norland as their home; and, as no
  • plan appeared so eligible to Mrs. Dashwood as remaining there till she
  • could accommodate herself with a house in the neighbourhood, his
  • invitation was accepted.
  • A continuance in a place where everything reminded her of former
  • delight, was exactly what suited her mind. In seasons of cheerfulness,
  • no temper could be more cheerful than hers, or possess, in a greater
  • degree, that sanguine expectation of happiness which is happiness
  • itself. But in sorrow she must be equally carried away by her fancy,
  • and as far beyond consolation as in pleasure she was beyond alloy.
  • Mrs. John Dashwood did not at all approve of what her husband intended
  • to do for his sisters. To take three thousand pounds from the fortune
  • of their dear little boy would be impoverishing him to the most
  • dreadful degree. She begged him to think again on the subject. How
  • could he answer it to himself to rob his child, and his only child too,
  • of so large a sum? And what possible claim could the Miss Dashwoods,
  • who were related to him only by half blood, which she considered as no
  • relationship at all, have on his generosity to so large an amount. It
  • was very well known that no affection was ever supposed to exist
  • between the children of any man by different marriages; and why was he
  • to ruin himself, and their poor little Harry, by giving away all his
  • money to his half sisters?
  • "It was my father's last request to me," replied her husband, "that I
  • should assist his widow and daughters."
  • "He did not know what he was talking of, I dare say; ten to one but he
  • was light-headed at the time. Had he been in his right senses, he
  • could not have thought of such a thing as begging you to give away half
  • your fortune from your own child."
  • "He did not stipulate for any particular sum, my dear Fanny; he only
  • requested me, in general terms, to assist them, and make their
  • situation more comfortable than it was in his power to do. Perhaps it
  • would have been as well if he had left it wholly to myself. He could
  • hardly suppose I should neglect them. But as he required the promise,
  • I could not do less than give it; at least I thought so at the time.
  • The promise, therefore, was given, and must be performed. Something
  • must be done for them whenever they leave Norland and settle in a new
  • home."
  • "Well, then, LET something be done for them; but THAT something need
  • not be three thousand pounds. Consider," she added, "that when the
  • money is once parted with, it never can return. Your sisters will
  • marry, and it will be gone for ever. If, indeed, it could be restored
  • to our poor little boy--"
  • "Why, to be sure," said her husband, very gravely, "that would make
  • great difference. The time may come when Harry will regret that so
  • large a sum was parted with. If he should have a numerous family, for
  • instance, it would be a very convenient addition."
  • "To be sure it would."
  • "Perhaps, then, it would be better for all parties, if the sum were
  • diminished one half.--Five hundred pounds would be a prodigious
  • increase to their fortunes!"
  • "Oh! beyond anything great! What brother on earth would do half so
  • much for his sisters, even if REALLY his sisters! And as it is--only
  • half blood!--But you have such a generous spirit!"
  • "I would not wish to do any thing mean," he replied. "One had rather,
  • on such occasions, do too much than too little. No one, at least, can
  • think I have not done enough for them: even themselves, they can hardly
  • expect more."
  • "There is no knowing what THEY may expect," said the lady, "but we are
  • not to think of their expectations: the question is, what you can
  • afford to do."
  • "Certainly--and I think I may afford to give them five hundred pounds
  • a-piece. As it is, without any addition of mine, they will each have
  • about three thousand pounds on their mother's death--a very comfortable
  • fortune for any young woman."
  • "To be sure it is; and, indeed, it strikes me that they can want no
  • addition at all. They will have ten thousand pounds divided amongst
  • them. If they marry, they will be sure of doing well, and if they do
  • not, they may all live very comfortably together on the interest of ten
  • thousand pounds."
  • "That is very true, and, therefore, I do not know whether, upon the
  • whole, it would not be more advisable to do something for their mother
  • while she lives, rather than for them--something of the annuity kind I
  • mean.--My sisters would feel the good effects of it as well as herself.
  • A hundred a year would make them all perfectly comfortable."
  • His wife hesitated a little, however, in giving her consent to this
  • plan.
  • "To be sure," said she, "it is better than parting with fifteen hundred
  • pounds at once. But, then, if Mrs. Dashwood should live fifteen years
  • we shall be completely taken in."
  • "Fifteen years! my dear Fanny; her life cannot be worth half that
  • purchase."
  • "Certainly not; but if you observe, people always live for ever when
  • there is an annuity to be paid them; and she is very stout and healthy,
  • and hardly forty. An annuity is a very serious business; it comes over
  • and over every year, and there is no getting rid of it. You are not
  • aware of what you are doing. I have known a great deal of the trouble
  • of annuities; for my mother was clogged with the payment of three to
  • old superannuated servants by my father's will, and it is amazing how
  • disagreeable she found it. Twice every year these annuities were to be
  • paid; and then there was the trouble of getting it to them; and then
  • one of them was said to have died, and afterwards it turned out to be
  • no such thing. My mother was quite sick of it. Her income was not her
  • own, she said, with such perpetual claims on it; and it was the more
  • unkind in my father, because, otherwise, the money would have been
  • entirely at my mother's disposal, without any restriction whatever. It
  • has given me such an abhorrence of annuities, that I am sure I would
  • not pin myself down to the payment of one for all the world."
  • "It is certainly an unpleasant thing," replied Mr. Dashwood, "to have
  • those kind of yearly drains on one's income. One's fortune, as your
  • mother justly says, is NOT one's own. To be tied down to the regular
  • payment of such a sum, on every rent day, is by no means desirable: it
  • takes away one's independence."
  • "Undoubtedly; and after all you have no thanks for it. They think
  • themselves secure, you do no more than what is expected, and it raises
  • no gratitude at all. If I were you, whatever I did should be done at
  • my own discretion entirely. I would not bind myself to allow them any
  • thing yearly. It may be very inconvenient some years to spare a
  • hundred, or even fifty pounds from our own expenses."
  • "I believe you are right, my love; it will be better that there should
  • be no annuity in the case; whatever I may give them occasionally will
  • be of far greater assistance than a yearly allowance, because they
  • would only enlarge their style of living if they felt sure of a larger
  • income, and would not be sixpence the richer for it at the end of the
  • year. It will certainly be much the best way. A present of fifty
  • pounds, now and then, will prevent their ever being distressed for
  • money, and will, I think, be amply discharging my promise to my father."
  • "To be sure it will. Indeed, to say the truth, I am convinced within
  • myself that your father had no idea of your giving them any money at
  • all. The assistance he thought of, I dare say, was only such as might
  • be reasonably expected of you; for instance, such as looking out for a
  • comfortable small house for them, helping them to move their things,
  • and sending them presents of fish and game, and so forth, whenever they
  • are in season. I'll lay my life that he meant nothing farther; indeed,
  • it would be very strange and unreasonable if he did. Do but consider,
  • my dear Mr. Dashwood, how excessively comfortable your mother-in-law
  • and her daughters may live on the interest of seven thousand pounds,
  • besides the thousand pounds belonging to each of the girls, which
  • brings them in fifty pounds a year a-piece, and, of course, they will
  • pay their mother for their board out of it. Altogether, they will have
  • five hundred a-year amongst them, and what on earth can four women want
  • for more than that?--They will live so cheap! Their housekeeping will
  • be nothing at all. They will have no carriage, no horses, and hardly
  • any servants; they will keep no company, and can have no expenses of
  • any kind! Only conceive how comfortable they will be! Five hundred a
  • year! I am sure I cannot imagine how they will spend half of it; and as
  • to your giving them more, it is quite absurd to think of it. They will
  • be much more able to give YOU something."
  • "Upon my word," said Mr. Dashwood, "I believe you are perfectly right.
  • My father certainly could mean nothing more by his request to me than
  • what you say. I clearly understand it now, and I will strictly fulfil
  • my engagement by such acts of assistance and kindness to them as you
  • have described. When my mother removes into another house my services
  • shall be readily given to accommodate her as far as I can. Some little
  • present of furniture too may be acceptable then."
  • "Certainly," returned Mrs. John Dashwood. "But, however, ONE thing
  • must be considered. When your father and mother moved to Norland,
  • though the furniture of Stanhill was sold, all the china, plate, and
  • linen was saved, and is now left to your mother. Her house will
  • therefore be almost completely fitted up as soon as she takes it."
  • "That is a material consideration undoubtedly. A valuable legacy
  • indeed! And yet some of the plate would have been a very pleasant
  • addition to our own stock here."
  • "Yes; and the set of breakfast china is twice as handsome as what
  • belongs to this house. A great deal too handsome, in my opinion, for
  • any place THEY can ever afford to live in. But, however, so it is.
  • Your father thought only of THEM. And I must say this: that you owe no
  • particular gratitude to him, nor attention to his wishes; for we very
  • well know that if he could, he would have left almost everything in the
  • world to THEM."
  • This argument was irresistible. It gave to his intentions whatever of
  • decision was wanting before; and he finally resolved, that it would be
  • absolutely unnecessary, if not highly indecorous, to do more for the
  • widow and children of his father, than such kind of neighbourly acts as
  • his own wife pointed out.
  • CHAPTER 3
  • Mrs. Dashwood remained at Norland several months; not from any
  • disinclination to move when the sight of every well known spot ceased
  • to raise the violent emotion which it produced for a while; for when
  • her spirits began to revive, and her mind became capable of some other
  • exertion than that of heightening its affliction by melancholy
  • remembrances, she was impatient to be gone, and indefatigable in her
  • inquiries for a suitable dwelling in the neighbourhood of Norland; for
  • to remove far from that beloved spot was impossible. But she could
  • hear of no situation that at once answered her notions of comfort and
  • ease, and suited the prudence of her eldest daughter, whose steadier
  • judgment rejected several houses as too large for their income, which
  • her mother would have approved.
  • Mrs. Dashwood had been informed by her husband of the solemn promise on
  • the part of his son in their favour, which gave comfort to his last
  • earthly reflections. She doubted the sincerity of this assurance no
  • more than he had doubted it himself, and she thought of it for her
  • daughters' sake with satisfaction, though as for herself she was
  • persuaded that a much smaller provision than 7000L would support her in
  • affluence. For their brother's sake, too, for the sake of his own
  • heart, she rejoiced; and she reproached herself for being unjust to his
  • merit before, in believing him incapable of generosity. His attentive
  • behaviour to herself and his sisters convinced her that their welfare
  • was dear to him, and, for a long time, she firmly relied on the
  • liberality of his intentions.
  • The contempt which she had, very early in their acquaintance, felt for
  • her daughter-in-law, was very much increased by the farther knowledge
  • of her character, which half a year's residence in her family afforded;
  • and perhaps in spite of every consideration of politeness or maternal
  • affection on the side of the former, the two ladies might have found it
  • impossible to have lived together so long, had not a particular
  • circumstance occurred to give still greater eligibility, according to
  • the opinions of Mrs. Dashwood, to her daughters' continuance at Norland.
  • This circumstance was a growing attachment between her eldest girl and
  • the brother of Mrs. John Dashwood, a gentleman-like and pleasing young
  • man, who was introduced to their acquaintance soon after his sister's
  • establishment at Norland, and who had since spent the greatest part of
  • his time there.
  • Some mothers might have encouraged the intimacy from motives of
  • interest, for Edward Ferrars was the eldest son of a man who had died
  • very rich; and some might have repressed it from motives of prudence,
  • for, except a trifling sum, the whole of his fortune depended on the
  • will of his mother. But Mrs. Dashwood was alike uninfluenced by either
  • consideration. It was enough for her that he appeared to be amiable,
  • that he loved her daughter, and that Elinor returned the partiality.
  • It was contrary to every doctrine of hers that difference of fortune
  • should keep any couple asunder who were attracted by resemblance of
  • disposition; and that Elinor's merit should not be acknowledged by
  • every one who knew her, was to her comprehension impossible.
  • Edward Ferrars was not recommended to their good opinion by any
  • peculiar graces of person or address. He was not handsome, and his
  • manners required intimacy to make them pleasing. He was too diffident
  • to do justice to himself; but when his natural shyness was overcome,
  • his behaviour gave every indication of an open, affectionate heart.
  • His understanding was good, and his education had given it solid
  • improvement. But he was neither fitted by abilities nor disposition to
  • answer the wishes of his mother and sister, who longed to see him
  • distinguished--as--they hardly knew what. They wanted him to make a
  • fine figure in the world in some manner or other. His mother wished to
  • interest him in political concerns, to get him into parliament, or to
  • see him connected with some of the great men of the day. Mrs. John
  • Dashwood wished it likewise; but in the mean while, till one of these
  • superior blessings could be attained, it would have quieted her
  • ambition to see him driving a barouche. But Edward had no turn for
  • great men or barouches. All his wishes centered in domestic comfort
  • and the quiet of private life. Fortunately he had a younger brother
  • who was more promising.
  • Edward had been staying several weeks in the house before he engaged
  • much of Mrs. Dashwood's attention; for she was, at that time, in such
  • affliction as rendered her careless of surrounding objects. She saw
  • only that he was quiet and unobtrusive, and she liked him for it. He
  • did not disturb the wretchedness of her mind by ill-timed conversation.
  • She was first called to observe and approve him farther, by a
  • reflection which Elinor chanced one day to make on the difference
  • between him and his sister. It was a contrast which recommended him
  • most forcibly to her mother.
  • "It is enough," said she; "to say that he is unlike Fanny is enough.
  • It implies everything amiable. I love him already."
  • "I think you will like him," said Elinor, "when you know more of him."
  • "Like him!" replied her mother with a smile. "I feel no sentiment of
  • approbation inferior to love."
  • "You may esteem him."
  • "I have never yet known what it was to separate esteem and love."
  • Mrs. Dashwood now took pains to get acquainted with him. Her manners
  • were attaching, and soon banished his reserve. She speedily
  • comprehended all his merits; the persuasion of his regard for Elinor
  • perhaps assisted her penetration; but she really felt assured of his
  • worth: and even that quietness of manner, which militated against all
  • her established ideas of what a young man's address ought to be, was no
  • longer uninteresting when she knew his heart to be warm and his temper
  • affectionate.
  • No sooner did she perceive any symptom of love in his behaviour to
  • Elinor, than she considered their serious attachment as certain, and
  • looked forward to their marriage as rapidly approaching.
  • "In a few months, my dear Marianne." said she, "Elinor will, in all
  • probability be settled for life. We shall miss her; but SHE will be
  • happy."
  • "Oh! Mama, how shall we do without her?"
  • "My love, it will be scarcely a separation. We shall live within a few
  • miles of each other, and shall meet every day of our lives. You will
  • gain a brother, a real, affectionate brother. I have the highest
  • opinion in the world of Edward's heart. But you look grave, Marianne;
  • do you disapprove your sister's choice?"
  • "Perhaps," said Marianne, "I may consider it with some surprise.
  • Edward is very amiable, and I love him tenderly. But yet--he is not
  • the kind of young man--there is something wanting--his figure is not
  • striking; it has none of that grace which I should expect in the man
  • who could seriously attach my sister. His eyes want all that spirit,
  • that fire, which at once announce virtue and intelligence. And besides
  • all this, I am afraid, Mama, he has no real taste. Music seems
  • scarcely to attract him, and though he admires Elinor's drawings very
  • much, it is not the admiration of a person who can understand their
  • worth. It is evident, in spite of his frequent attention to her while
  • she draws, that in fact he knows nothing of the matter. He admires as
  • a lover, not as a connoisseur. To satisfy me, those characters must be
  • united. I could not be happy with a man whose taste did not in every
  • point coincide with my own. He must enter into all my feelings; the
  • same books, the same music must charm us both. Oh! mama, how
  • spiritless, how tame was Edward's manner in reading to us last night!
  • I felt for my sister most severely. Yet she bore it with so much
  • composure, she seemed scarcely to notice it. I could hardly keep my
  • seat. To hear those beautiful lines which have frequently almost
  • driven me wild, pronounced with such impenetrable calmness, such
  • dreadful indifference!"
  • "He would certainly have done more justice to simple and elegant prose.
  • I thought so at the time; but you WOULD give him Cowper."
  • "Nay, Mama, if he is not to be animated by Cowper!--but we must allow
  • for difference of taste. Elinor has not my feelings, and therefore she
  • may overlook it, and be happy with him. But it would have broke MY
  • heart, had I loved him, to hear him read with so little sensibility.
  • Mama, the more I know of the world, the more am I convinced that I
  • shall never see a man whom I can really love. I require so much! He
  • must have all Edward's virtues, and his person and manners must
  • ornament his goodness with every possible charm."
  • "Remember, my love, that you are not seventeen. It is yet too early in
  • life to despair of such a happiness. Why should you be less fortunate
  • than your mother? In one circumstance only, my Marianne, may your
  • destiny be different from hers!"
  • CHAPTER 4
  • "What a pity it is, Elinor," said Marianne, "that Edward should have no
  • taste for drawing."
  • "No taste for drawing!" replied Elinor, "why should you think so? He
  • does not draw himself, indeed, but he has great pleasure in seeing the
  • performances of other people, and I assure you he is by no means
  • deficient in natural taste, though he has not had opportunities of
  • improving it. Had he ever been in the way of learning, I think he
  • would have drawn very well. He distrusts his own judgment in such
  • matters so much, that he is always unwilling to give his opinion on any
  • picture; but he has an innate propriety and simplicity of taste, which
  • in general direct him perfectly right."
  • Marianne was afraid of offending, and said no more on the subject; but
  • the kind of approbation which Elinor described as excited in him by the
  • drawings of other people, was very far from that rapturous delight,
  • which, in her opinion, could alone be called taste. Yet, though
  • smiling within herself at the mistake, she honoured her sister for that
  • blind partiality to Edward which produced it.
  • "I hope, Marianne," continued Elinor, "you do not consider him as
  • deficient in general taste. Indeed, I think I may say that you cannot,
  • for your behaviour to him is perfectly cordial, and if THAT were your
  • opinion, I am sure you could never be civil to him."
  • Marianne hardly knew what to say. She would not wound the feelings of
  • her sister on any account, and yet to say what she did not believe was
  • impossible. At length she replied:
  • "Do not be offended, Elinor, if my praise of him is not in every thing
  • equal to your sense of his merits. I have not had so many
  • opportunities of estimating the minuter propensities of his mind, his
  • inclinations and tastes, as you have; but I have the highest opinion in
  • the world of his goodness and sense. I think him every thing that is
  • worthy and amiable."
  • "I am sure," replied Elinor, with a smile, "that his dearest friends
  • could not be dissatisfied with such commendation as that. I do not
  • perceive how you could express yourself more warmly."
  • Marianne was rejoiced to find her sister so easily pleased.
  • "Of his sense and his goodness," continued Elinor, "no one can, I
  • think, be in doubt, who has seen him often enough to engage him in
  • unreserved conversation. The excellence of his understanding and his
  • principles can be concealed only by that shyness which too often keeps
  • him silent. You know enough of him to do justice to his solid worth.
  • But of his minuter propensities, as you call them you have from
  • peculiar circumstances been kept more ignorant than myself. He and I
  • have been at times thrown a good deal together, while you have been
  • wholly engrossed on the most affectionate principle by my mother. I
  • have seen a great deal of him, have studied his sentiments and heard
  • his opinion on subjects of literature and taste; and, upon the whole, I
  • venture to pronounce that his mind is well-informed, enjoyment of books
  • exceedingly great, his imagination lively, his observation just and
  • correct, and his taste delicate and pure. His abilities in every
  • respect improve as much upon acquaintance as his manners and person.
  • At first sight, his address is certainly not striking; and his person
  • can hardly be called handsome, till the expression of his eyes, which
  • are uncommonly good, and the general sweetness of his countenance, is
  • perceived. At present, I know him so well, that I think him really
  • handsome; or at least, almost so. What say you, Marianne?"
  • "I shall very soon think him handsome, Elinor, if I do not now. When
  • you tell me to love him as a brother, I shall no more see imperfection
  • in his face, than I now do in his heart."
  • Elinor started at this declaration, and was sorry for the warmth she
  • had been betrayed into, in speaking of him. She felt that Edward stood
  • very high in her opinion. She believed the regard to be mutual; but
  • she required greater certainty of it to make Marianne's conviction of
  • their attachment agreeable to her. She knew that what Marianne and her
  • mother conjectured one moment, they believed the next--that with them,
  • to wish was to hope, and to hope was to expect. She tried to explain
  • the real state of the case to her sister.
  • "I do not attempt to deny," said she, "that I think very highly of
  • him--that I greatly esteem, that I like him."
  • Marianne here burst forth with indignation--
  • "Esteem him! Like him! Cold-hearted Elinor! Oh! worse than
  • cold-hearted! Ashamed of being otherwise. Use those words again, and I
  • will leave the room this moment."
  • Elinor could not help laughing. "Excuse me," said she; "and be assured
  • that I meant no offence to you, by speaking, in so quiet a way, of my
  • own feelings. Believe them to be stronger than I have declared;
  • believe them, in short, to be such as his merit, and the suspicion--the
  • hope of his affection for me may warrant, without imprudence or folly.
  • But farther than this you must not believe. I am by no means assured
  • of his regard for me. There are moments when the extent of it seems
  • doubtful; and till his sentiments are fully known, you cannot wonder at
  • my wishing to avoid any encouragement of my own partiality, by
  • believing or calling it more than it is. In my heart I feel
  • little--scarcely any doubt of his preference. But there are other
  • points to be considered besides his inclination. He is very far from
  • being independent. What his mother really is we cannot know; but, from
  • Fanny's occasional mention of her conduct and opinions, we have never
  • been disposed to think her amiable; and I am very much mistaken if
  • Edward is not himself aware that there would be many difficulties in
  • his way, if he were to wish to marry a woman who had not either a great
  • fortune or high rank."
  • Marianne was astonished to find how much the imagination of her mother
  • and herself had outstripped the truth.
  • "And you really are not engaged to him!" said she. "Yet it certainly
  • soon will happen. But two advantages will proceed from this delay. I
  • shall not lose you so soon, and Edward will have greater opportunity of
  • improving that natural taste for your favourite pursuit which must be
  • so indispensably necessary to your future felicity. Oh! if he should
  • be so far stimulated by your genius as to learn to draw himself, how
  • delightful it would be!"
  • Elinor had given her real opinion to her sister. She could not
  • consider her partiality for Edward in so prosperous a state as Marianne
  • had believed it. There was, at times, a want of spirits about him
  • which, if it did not denote indifference, spoke of something almost as
  • unpromising. A doubt of her regard, supposing him to feel it, need not
  • give him more than inquietude. It would not be likely to produce that
  • dejection of mind which frequently attended him. A more reasonable
  • cause might be found in the dependent situation which forbade the
  • indulgence of his affection. She knew that his mother neither behaved
  • to him so as to make his home comfortable at present, nor to give him
  • any assurance that he might form a home for himself, without strictly
  • attending to her views for his aggrandizement. With such a knowledge
  • as this, it was impossible for Elinor to feel easy on the subject. She
  • was far from depending on that result of his preference of her, which
  • her mother and sister still considered as certain. Nay, the longer
  • they were together the more doubtful seemed the nature of his regard;
  • and sometimes, for a few painful minutes, she believed it to be no more
  • than friendship.
  • But, whatever might really be its limits, it was enough, when perceived
  • by his sister, to make her uneasy, and at the same time, (which was
  • still more common,) to make her uncivil. She took the first
  • opportunity of affronting her mother-in-law on the occasion, talking to
  • her so expressively of her brother's great expectations, of Mrs.
  • Ferrars's resolution that both her sons should marry well, and of the
  • danger attending any young woman who attempted to DRAW HIM IN; that
  • Mrs. Dashwood could neither pretend to be unconscious, nor endeavor to
  • be calm. She gave her an answer which marked her contempt, and
  • instantly left the room, resolving that, whatever might be the
  • inconvenience or expense of so sudden a removal, her beloved Elinor
  • should not be exposed another week to such insinuations.
  • In this state of her spirits, a letter was delivered to her from the
  • post, which contained a proposal particularly well timed. It was the
  • offer of a small house, on very easy terms, belonging to a relation of
  • her own, a gentleman of consequence and property in Devonshire. The
  • letter was from this gentleman himself, and written in the true spirit
  • of friendly accommodation. He understood that she was in need of a
  • dwelling; and though the house he now offered her was merely a cottage,
  • he assured her that everything should be done to it which she might
  • think necessary, if the situation pleased her. He earnestly pressed
  • her, after giving the particulars of the house and garden, to come with
  • her daughters to Barton Park, the place of his own residence, from
  • whence she might judge, herself, whether Barton Cottage, for the houses
  • were in the same parish, could, by any alteration, be made comfortable
  • to her. He seemed really anxious to accommodate them and the whole of
  • his letter was written in so friendly a style as could not fail of
  • giving pleasure to his cousin; more especially at a moment when she was
  • suffering under the cold and unfeeling behaviour of her nearer
  • connections. She needed no time for deliberation or inquiry. Her
  • resolution was formed as she read. The situation of Barton, in a
  • county so far distant from Sussex as Devonshire, which, but a few hours
  • before, would have been a sufficient objection to outweigh every
  • possible advantage belonging to the place, was now its first
  • recommendation. To quit the neighbourhood of Norland was no longer an
  • evil; it was an object of desire; it was a blessing, in comparison of
  • the misery of continuing her daughter-in-law's guest; and to remove for
  • ever from that beloved place would be less painful than to inhabit or
  • visit it while such a woman was its mistress. She instantly wrote Sir
  • John Middleton her acknowledgment of his kindness, and her acceptance
  • of his proposal; and then hastened to shew both letters to her
  • daughters, that she might be secure of their approbation before her
  • answer were sent.
  • Elinor had always thought it would be more prudent for them to settle
  • at some distance from Norland, than immediately amongst their present
  • acquaintance. On THAT head, therefore, it was not for her to oppose
  • her mother's intention of removing into Devonshire. The house, too, as
  • described by Sir John, was on so simple a scale, and the rent so
  • uncommonly moderate, as to leave her no right of objection on either
  • point; and, therefore, though it was not a plan which brought any charm
  • to her fancy, though it was a removal from the vicinity of Norland
  • beyond her wishes, she made no attempt to dissuade her mother from
  • sending a letter of acquiescence.
  • CHAPTER 5
  • No sooner was her answer dispatched, than Mrs. Dashwood indulged herself
  • in the pleasure of announcing to her son-in-law and his wife that she
  • was provided with a house, and should incommode them no longer than till
  • every thing were ready for her inhabiting it. They heard her with
  • surprise. Mrs. John Dashwood said nothing; but her husband civilly hoped
  • that she would not be settled far from Norland. She had great
  • satisfaction in replying that she was going into Devonshire.--Edward
  • turned hastily towards her, on hearing this, and, in a voice of surprise
  • and concern, which required no explanation to her, repeated,
  • "Devonshire! Are you, indeed, going there? So far from hence! And to
  • what part of it?" She explained the situation. It was within four miles
  • northward of Exeter.
  • "It is but a cottage," she continued, "but I hope to see many of my
  • friends in it. A room or two can easily be added; and if my friends
  • find no difficulty in travelling so far to see me, I am sure I will
  • find none in accommodating them."
  • She concluded with a very kind invitation to Mr. and Mrs. John Dashwood
  • to visit her at Barton; and to Edward she gave one with still greater
  • affection. Though her late conversation with her daughter-in-law had
  • made her resolve on remaining at Norland no longer than was
  • unavoidable, it had not produced the smallest effect on her in that
  • point to which it principally tended. To separate Edward and Elinor
  • was as far from being her object as ever; and she wished to show Mrs.
  • John Dashwood, by this pointed invitation to her brother, how totally
  • she disregarded her disapprobation of the match.
  • Mr. John Dashwood told his mother again and again how exceedingly sorry
  • he was that she had taken a house at such a distance from Norland as to
  • prevent his being of any service to her in removing her furniture. He
  • really felt conscientiously vexed on the occasion; for the very
  • exertion to which he had limited the performance of his promise to his
  • father was by this arrangement rendered impracticable.-- The furniture
  • was all sent around by water. It chiefly consisted of household linen,
  • plate, china, and books, with a handsome pianoforte of Marianne's.
  • Mrs. John Dashwood saw the packages depart with a sigh: she could not
  • help feeling it hard that as Mrs. Dashwood's income would be so
  • trifling in comparison with their own, she should have any handsome
  • article of furniture.
  • Mrs. Dashwood took the house for a twelvemonth; it was ready furnished,
  • and she might have immediate possession. No difficulty arose on either
  • side in the agreement; and she waited only for the disposal of her
  • effects at Norland, and to determine her future household, before she
  • set off for the west; and this, as she was exceedingly rapid in the
  • performance of everything that interested her, was soon done.--The
  • horses which were left her by her husband had been sold soon after his
  • death, and an opportunity now offering of disposing of her carriage,
  • she agreed to sell that likewise at the earnest advice of her eldest
  • daughter. For the comfort of her children, had she consulted only her
  • own wishes, she would have kept it; but the discretion of Elinor
  • prevailed. HER wisdom too limited the number of their servants to
  • three; two maids and a man, with whom they were speedily provided from
  • amongst those who had formed their establishment at Norland.
  • The man and one of the maids were sent off immediately into Devonshire,
  • to prepare the house for their mistress's arrival; for as Lady
  • Middleton was entirely unknown to Mrs. Dashwood, she preferred going
  • directly to the cottage to being a visitor at Barton Park; and she
  • relied so undoubtingly on Sir John's description of the house, as to
  • feel no curiosity to examine it herself till she entered it as her own.
  • Her eagerness to be gone from Norland was preserved from diminution by
  • the evident satisfaction of her daughter-in-law in the prospect of her
  • removal; a satisfaction which was but feebly attempted to be concealed
  • under a cold invitation to her to defer her departure. Now was the
  • time when her son-in-law's promise to his father might with particular
  • propriety be fulfilled. Since he had neglected to do it on first
  • coming to the estate, their quitting his house might be looked on as
  • the most suitable period for its accomplishment. But Mrs. Dashwood
  • began shortly to give over every hope of the kind, and to be convinced,
  • from the general drift of his discourse, that his assistance extended
  • no farther than their maintenance for six months at Norland. He so
  • frequently talked of the increasing expenses of housekeeping, and of
  • the perpetual demands upon his purse, which a man of any consequence in
  • the world was beyond calculation exposed to, that he seemed rather to
  • stand in need of more money himself than to have any design of giving
  • money away.
  • In a very few weeks from the day which brought Sir John Middleton's
  • first letter to Norland, every thing was so far settled in their future
  • abode as to enable Mrs. Dashwood and her daughters to begin their
  • journey.
  • Many were the tears shed by them in their last adieus to a place so
  • much beloved. "Dear, dear Norland!" said Marianne, as she wandered
  • alone before the house, on the last evening of their being there; "when
  • shall I cease to regret you!--when learn to feel a home elsewhere!--Oh!
  • happy house, could you know what I suffer in now viewing you from this
  • spot, from whence perhaps I may view you no more!--And you, ye
  • well-known trees!--but you will continue the same.--No leaf will decay
  • because we are removed, nor any branch become motionless although we
  • can observe you no longer!--No; you will continue the same; unconscious
  • of the pleasure or the regret you occasion, and insensible of any
  • change in those who walk under your shade!--But who will remain to
  • enjoy you?"
  • CHAPTER 6
  • The first part of their journey was performed in too melancholy a
  • disposition to be otherwise than tedious and unpleasant. But as they
  • drew towards the end of it, their interest in the appearance of a
  • country which they were to inhabit overcame their dejection, and a view
  • of Barton Valley as they entered it gave them cheerfulness. It was a
  • pleasant fertile spot, well wooded, and rich in pasture. After winding
  • along it for more than a mile, they reached their own house. A small
  • green court was the whole of its demesne in front; and a neat wicket
  • gate admitted them into it.
  • As a house, Barton Cottage, though small, was comfortable and compact;
  • but as a cottage it was defective, for the building was regular, the
  • roof was tiled, the window shutters were not painted green, nor were
  • the walls covered with honeysuckles. A narrow passage led directly
  • through the house into the garden behind. On each side of the entrance
  • was a sitting room, about sixteen feet square; and beyond them were the
  • offices and the stairs. Four bed-rooms and two garrets formed the rest
  • of the house. It had not been built many years and was in good repair.
  • In comparison of Norland, it was poor and small indeed!--but the tears
  • which recollection called forth as they entered the house were soon
  • dried away. They were cheered by the joy of the servants on their
  • arrival, and each for the sake of the others resolved to appear happy.
  • It was very early in September; the season was fine, and from first
  • seeing the place under the advantage of good weather, they received an
  • impression in its favour which was of material service in recommending
  • it to their lasting approbation.
  • The situation of the house was good. High hills rose immediately
  • behind, and at no great distance on each side; some of which were open
  • downs, the others cultivated and woody. The village of Barton was
  • chiefly on one of these hills, and formed a pleasant view from the
  • cottage windows. The prospect in front was more extensive; it
  • commanded the whole of the valley, and reached into the country beyond.
  • The hills which surrounded the cottage terminated the valley in that
  • direction; under another name, and in another course, it branched out
  • again between two of the steepest of them.
  • With the size and furniture of the house Mrs. Dashwood was upon the
  • whole well satisfied; for though her former style of life rendered many
  • additions to the latter indispensable, yet to add and improve was a
  • delight to her; and she had at this time ready money enough to supply
  • all that was wanted of greater elegance to the apartments. "As for the
  • house itself, to be sure," said she, "it is too small for our family,
  • but we will make ourselves tolerably comfortable for the present, as it
  • is too late in the year for improvements. Perhaps in the spring, if I
  • have plenty of money, as I dare say I shall, we may think about
  • building. These parlors are both too small for such parties of our
  • friends as I hope to see often collected here; and I have some thoughts
  • of throwing the passage into one of them with perhaps a part of the
  • other, and so leave the remainder of that other for an entrance; this,
  • with a new drawing room which may be easily added, and a bed-chamber
  • and garret above, will make it a very snug little cottage. I could
  • wish the stairs were handsome. But one must not expect every thing;
  • though I suppose it would be no difficult matter to widen them. I
  • shall see how much I am before-hand with the world in the spring, and
  • we will plan our improvements accordingly."
  • In the mean time, till all these alterations could be made from the
  • savings of an income of five hundred a-year by a woman who never saved
  • in her life, they were wise enough to be contented with the house as it
  • was; and each of them was busy in arranging their particular concerns,
  • and endeavoring, by placing around them books and other possessions, to
  • form themselves a home. Marianne's pianoforte was unpacked and
  • properly disposed of; and Elinor's drawings were affixed to the walls
  • of their sitting room.
  • In such employments as these they were interrupted soon after breakfast
  • the next day by the entrance of their landlord, who called to welcome
  • them to Barton, and to offer them every accommodation from his own
  • house and garden in which theirs might at present be deficient. Sir
  • John Middleton was a good looking man about forty. He had formerly
  • visited at Stanhill, but it was too long for his young cousins to
  • remember him. His countenance was thoroughly good-humoured; and his
  • manners were as friendly as the style of his letter. Their arrival
  • seemed to afford him real satisfaction, and their comfort to be an
  • object of real solicitude to him. He said much of his earnest desire
  • of their living in the most sociable terms with his family, and pressed
  • them so cordially to dine at Barton Park every day till they were
  • better settled at home, that, though his entreaties were carried to a
  • point of perseverance beyond civility, they could not give offence.
  • His kindness was not confined to words; for within an hour after he
  • left them, a large basket full of garden stuff and fruit arrived from
  • the park, which was followed before the end of the day by a present of
  • game. He insisted, moreover, on conveying all their letters to and
  • from the post for them, and would not be denied the satisfaction of
  • sending them his newspaper every day.
  • Lady Middleton had sent a very civil message by him, denoting her
  • intention of waiting on Mrs. Dashwood as soon as she could be assured
  • that her visit would be no inconvenience; and as this message was
  • answered by an invitation equally polite, her ladyship was introduced
  • to them the next day.
  • They were, of course, very anxious to see a person on whom so much of
  • their comfort at Barton must depend; and the elegance of her appearance
  • was favourable to their wishes. Lady Middleton was not more than six
  • or seven and twenty; her face was handsome, her figure tall and
  • striking, and her address graceful. Her manners had all the elegance
  • which her husband's wanted. But they would have been improved by some
  • share of his frankness and warmth; and her visit was long enough to
  • detract something from their first admiration, by shewing that, though
  • perfectly well-bred, she was reserved, cold, and had nothing to say for
  • herself beyond the most common-place inquiry or remark.
  • Conversation however was not wanted, for Sir John was very chatty, and
  • Lady Middleton had taken the wise precaution of bringing with her their
  • eldest child, a fine little boy about six years old, by which means
  • there was one subject always to be recurred to by the ladies in case of
  • extremity, for they had to enquire his name and age, admire his beauty,
  • and ask him questions which his mother answered for him, while he hung
  • about her and held down his head, to the great surprise of her
  • ladyship, who wondered at his being so shy before company, as he could
  • make noise enough at home. On every formal visit a child ought to be
  • of the party, by way of provision for discourse. In the present case
  • it took up ten minutes to determine whether the boy were most like his
  • father or mother, and in what particular he resembled either, for of
  • course every body differed, and every body was astonished at the
  • opinion of the others.
  • An opportunity was soon to be given to the Dashwoods of debating on the
  • rest of the children, as Sir John would not leave the house without
  • securing their promise of dining at the park the next day.
  • CHAPTER 7
  • Barton Park was about half a mile from the cottage. The ladies had
  • passed near it in their way along the valley, but it was screened from
  • their view at home by the projection of a hill. The house was large
  • and handsome; and the Middletons lived in a style of equal hospitality
  • and elegance. The former was for Sir John's gratification, the latter
  • for that of his lady. They were scarcely ever without some friends
  • staying with them in the house, and they kept more company of every
  • kind than any other family in the neighbourhood. It was necessary to
  • the happiness of both; for however dissimilar in temper and outward
  • behaviour, they strongly resembled each other in that total want of
  • talent and taste which confined their employments, unconnected with
  • such as society produced, within a very narrow compass. Sir John was a
  • sportsman, Lady Middleton a mother. He hunted and shot, and she
  • humoured her children; and these were their only resources. Lady
  • Middleton had the advantage of being able to spoil her children all the
  • year round, while Sir John's independent employments were in existence
  • only half the time. Continual engagements at home and abroad, however,
  • supplied all the deficiencies of nature and education; supported the
  • good spirits of Sir John, and gave exercise to the good breeding of his
  • wife.
  • Lady Middleton piqued herself upon the elegance of her table, and of
  • all her domestic arrangements; and from this kind of vanity was her
  • greatest enjoyment in any of their parties. But Sir John's
  • satisfaction in society was much more real; he delighted in collecting
  • about him more young people than his house would hold, and the noisier
  • they were the better was he pleased. He was a blessing to all the
  • juvenile part of the neighbourhood, for in summer he was for ever
  • forming parties to eat cold ham and chicken out of doors, and in winter
  • his private balls were numerous enough for any young lady who was not
  • suffering under the unsatiable appetite of fifteen.
  • The arrival of a new family in the country was always a matter of joy
  • to him, and in every point of view he was charmed with the inhabitants
  • he had now procured for his cottage at Barton. The Miss Dashwoods were
  • young, pretty, and unaffected. It was enough to secure his good
  • opinion; for to be unaffected was all that a pretty girl could want to
  • make her mind as captivating as her person. The friendliness of his
  • disposition made him happy in accommodating those, whose situation
  • might be considered, in comparison with the past, as unfortunate. In
  • showing kindness to his cousins therefore he had the real satisfaction
  • of a good heart; and in settling a family of females only in his
  • cottage, he had all the satisfaction of a sportsman; for a sportsman,
  • though he esteems only those of his sex who are sportsmen likewise, is
  • not often desirous of encouraging their taste by admitting them to a
  • residence within his own manor.
  • Mrs. Dashwood and her daughters were met at the door of the house by
  • Sir John, who welcomed them to Barton Park with unaffected sincerity;
  • and as he attended them to the drawing room repeated to the young
  • ladies the concern which the same subject had drawn from him the day
  • before, at being unable to get any smart young men to meet them. They
  • would see, he said, only one gentleman there besides himself; a
  • particular friend who was staying at the park, but who was neither very
  • young nor very gay. He hoped they would all excuse the smallness of
  • the party, and could assure them it should never happen so again. He
  • had been to several families that morning in hopes of procuring some
  • addition to their number, but it was moonlight and every body was full
  • of engagements. Luckily Lady Middleton's mother had arrived at Barton
  • within the last hour, and as she was a very cheerful agreeable woman,
  • he hoped the young ladies would not find it so very dull as they might
  • imagine. The young ladies, as well as their mother, were perfectly
  • satisfied with having two entire strangers of the party, and wished for
  • no more.
  • Mrs. Jennings, Lady Middleton's mother, was a good-humoured, merry,
  • fat, elderly woman, who talked a great deal, seemed very happy, and
  • rather vulgar. She was full of jokes and laughter, and before dinner
  • was over had said many witty things on the subject of lovers and
  • husbands; hoped they had not left their hearts behind them in Sussex,
  • and pretended to see them blush whether they did or not. Marianne was
  • vexed at it for her sister's sake, and turned her eyes towards Elinor
  • to see how she bore these attacks, with an earnestness which gave
  • Elinor far more pain than could arise from such common-place raillery
  • as Mrs. Jennings's.
  • Colonel Brandon, the friend of Sir John, seemed no more adapted by
  • resemblance of manner to be his friend, than Lady Middleton was to be
  • his wife, or Mrs. Jennings to be Lady Middleton's mother. He was
  • silent and grave. His appearance however was not unpleasing, in spite
  • of his being in the opinion of Marianne and Margaret an absolute old
  • bachelor, for he was on the wrong side of five and thirty; but though
  • his face was not handsome, his countenance was sensible, and his
  • address was particularly gentlemanlike.
  • There was nothing in any of the party which could recommend them as
  • companions to the Dashwoods; but the cold insipidity of Lady Middleton
  • was so particularly repulsive, that in comparison of it the gravity of
  • Colonel Brandon, and even the boisterous mirth of Sir John and his
  • mother-in-law was interesting. Lady Middleton seemed to be roused to
  • enjoyment only by the entrance of her four noisy children after dinner,
  • who pulled her about, tore her clothes, and put an end to every kind of
  • discourse except what related to themselves.
  • In the evening, as Marianne was discovered to be musical, she was
  • invited to play. The instrument was unlocked, every body prepared to
  • be charmed, and Marianne, who sang very well, at their request went
  • through the chief of the songs which Lady Middleton had brought into
  • the family on her marriage, and which perhaps had lain ever since in
  • the same position on the pianoforte, for her ladyship had celebrated
  • that event by giving up music, although by her mother's account, she
  • had played extremely well, and by her own was very fond of it.
  • Marianne's performance was highly applauded. Sir John was loud in his
  • admiration at the end of every song, and as loud in his conversation
  • with the others while every song lasted. Lady Middleton frequently
  • called him to order, wondered how any one's attention could be diverted
  • from music for a moment, and asked Marianne to sing a particular song
  • which Marianne had just finished. Colonel Brandon alone, of all the
  • party, heard her without being in raptures. He paid her only the
  • compliment of attention; and she felt a respect for him on the
  • occasion, which the others had reasonably forfeited by their shameless
  • want of taste. His pleasure in music, though it amounted not to that
  • ecstatic delight which alone could sympathize with her own, was
  • estimable when contrasted against the horrible insensibility of the
  • others; and she was reasonable enough to allow that a man of five and
  • thirty might well have outlived all acuteness of feeling and every
  • exquisite power of enjoyment. She was perfectly disposed to make every
  • allowance for the colonel's advanced state of life which humanity
  • required.
  • CHAPTER 8
  • Mrs. Jennings was a widow with an ample jointure. She had only two
  • daughters, both of whom she had lived to see respectably married, and
  • she had now therefore nothing to do but to marry all the rest of the
  • world. In the promotion of this object she was zealously active, as
  • far as her ability reached; and missed no opportunity of projecting
  • weddings among all the young people of her acquaintance. She was
  • remarkably quick in the discovery of attachments, and had enjoyed the
  • advantage of raising the blushes and the vanity of many a young lady by
  • insinuations of her power over such a young man; and this kind of
  • discernment enabled her soon after her arrival at Barton decisively to
  • pronounce that Colonel Brandon was very much in love with Marianne
  • Dashwood. She rather suspected it to be so, on the very first evening
  • of their being together, from his listening so attentively while she
  • sang to them; and when the visit was returned by the Middletons' dining
  • at the cottage, the fact was ascertained by his listening to her again.
  • It must be so. She was perfectly convinced of it. It would be an
  • excellent match, for HE was rich, and SHE was handsome. Mrs. Jennings
  • had been anxious to see Colonel Brandon well married, ever since her
  • connection with Sir John first brought him to her knowledge; and she
  • was always anxious to get a good husband for every pretty girl.
  • The immediate advantage to herself was by no means inconsiderable, for
  • it supplied her with endless jokes against them both. At the park she
  • laughed at the colonel, and in the cottage at Marianne. To the former
  • her raillery was probably, as far as it regarded only himself,
  • perfectly indifferent; but to the latter it was at first
  • incomprehensible; and when its object was understood, she hardly knew
  • whether most to laugh at its absurdity, or censure its impertinence,
  • for she considered it as an unfeeling reflection on the colonel's
  • advanced years, and on his forlorn condition as an old bachelor.
  • Mrs. Dashwood, who could not think a man five years younger than
  • herself, so exceedingly ancient as he appeared to the youthful fancy of
  • her daughter, ventured to clear Mrs. Jennings from the probability of
  • wishing to throw ridicule on his age.
  • "But at least, Mama, you cannot deny the absurdity of the accusation,
  • though you may not think it intentionally ill-natured. Colonel Brandon
  • is certainly younger than Mrs. Jennings, but he is old enough to be MY
  • father; and if he were ever animated enough to be in love, must have
  • long outlived every sensation of the kind. It is too ridiculous! When
  • is a man to be safe from such wit, if age and infirmity will not
  • protect him?"
  • "Infirmity!" said Elinor, "do you call Colonel Brandon infirm? I can
  • easily suppose that his age may appear much greater to you than to my
  • mother; but you can hardly deceive yourself as to his having the use of
  • his limbs!"
  • "Did not you hear him complain of the rheumatism? and is not that the
  • commonest infirmity of declining life?"
  • "My dearest child," said her mother, laughing, "at this rate you must
  • be in continual terror of MY decay; and it must seem to you a miracle
  • that my life has been extended to the advanced age of forty."
  • "Mama, you are not doing me justice. I know very well that Colonel
  • Brandon is not old enough to make his friends yet apprehensive of
  • losing him in the course of nature. He may live twenty years longer.
  • But thirty-five has nothing to do with matrimony."
  • "Perhaps," said Elinor, "thirty-five and seventeen had better not have
  • any thing to do with matrimony together. But if there should by any
  • chance happen to be a woman who is single at seven and twenty, I should
  • not think Colonel Brandon's being thirty-five any objection to his
  • marrying HER."
  • "A woman of seven and twenty," said Marianne, after pausing a moment,
  • "can never hope to feel or inspire affection again, and if her home be
  • uncomfortable, or her fortune small, I can suppose that she might bring
  • herself to submit to the offices of a nurse, for the sake of the
  • provision and security of a wife. In his marrying such a woman
  • therefore there would be nothing unsuitable. It would be a compact of
  • convenience, and the world would be satisfied. In my eyes it would be
  • no marriage at all, but that would be nothing. To me it would seem
  • only a commercial exchange, in which each wished to be benefited at the
  • expense of the other."
  • "It would be impossible, I know," replied Elinor, "to convince you that
  • a woman of seven and twenty could feel for a man of thirty-five
  • anything near enough to love, to make him a desirable companion to her.
  • But I must object to your dooming Colonel Brandon and his wife to the
  • constant confinement of a sick chamber, merely because he chanced to
  • complain yesterday (a very cold damp day) of a slight rheumatic feel in
  • one of his shoulders."
  • "But he talked of flannel waistcoats," said Marianne; "and with me a
  • flannel waistcoat is invariably connected with aches, cramps,
  • rheumatisms, and every species of ailment that can afflict the old and
  • the feeble."
  • "Had he been only in a violent fever, you would not have despised him
  • half so much. Confess, Marianne, is not there something interesting to
  • you in the flushed cheek, hollow eye, and quick pulse of a fever?"
  • Soon after this, upon Elinor's leaving the room, "Mama," said
  • Marianne, "I have an alarm on the subject of illness which I cannot
  • conceal from you. I am sure Edward Ferrars is not well. We have now
  • been here almost a fortnight, and yet he does not come. Nothing but
  • real indisposition could occasion this extraordinary delay. What else
  • can detain him at Norland?"
  • "Had you any idea of his coming so soon?" said Mrs. Dashwood. "I had
  • none. On the contrary, if I have felt any anxiety at all on the
  • subject, it has been in recollecting that he sometimes showed a want of
  • pleasure and readiness in accepting my invitation, when I talked of his
  • coming to Barton. Does Elinor expect him already?"
  • "I have never mentioned it to her, but of course she must."
  • "I rather think you are mistaken, for when I was talking to her
  • yesterday of getting a new grate for the spare bedchamber, she observed
  • that there was no immediate hurry for it, as it was not likely that the
  • room would be wanted for some time."
  • "How strange this is! what can be the meaning of it! But the whole of
  • their behaviour to each other has been unaccountable! How cold, how
  • composed were their last adieus! How languid their conversation the
  • last evening of their being together! In Edward's farewell there was no
  • distinction between Elinor and me: it was the good wishes of an
  • affectionate brother to both. Twice did I leave them purposely
  • together in the course of the last morning, and each time did he most
  • unaccountably follow me out of the room. And Elinor, in quitting
  • Norland and Edward, cried not as I did. Even now her self-command is
  • invariable. When is she dejected or melancholy? When does she try to
  • avoid society, or appear restless and dissatisfied in it?"
  • CHAPTER 9
  • The Dashwoods were now settled at Barton with tolerable comfort to
  • themselves. The house and the garden, with all the objects surrounding
  • them, were now become familiar, and the ordinary pursuits which had
  • given to Norland half its charms were engaged in again with far greater
  • enjoyment than Norland had been able to afford, since the loss of their
  • father. Sir John Middleton, who called on them every day for the first
  • fortnight, and who was not in the habit of seeing much occupation at
  • home, could not conceal his amazement on finding them always employed.
  • Their visitors, except those from Barton Park, were not many; for, in
  • spite of Sir John's urgent entreaties that they would mix more in the
  • neighbourhood, and repeated assurances of his carriage being always at
  • their service, the independence of Mrs. Dashwood's spirit overcame the
  • wish of society for her children; and she was resolute in declining to
  • visit any family beyond the distance of a walk. There were but few who
  • could be so classed; and it was not all of them that were attainable.
  • About a mile and a half from the cottage, along the narrow winding
  • valley of Allenham, which issued from that of Barton, as formerly
  • described, the girls had, in one of their earliest walks, discovered an
  • ancient respectable looking mansion which, by reminding them a little
  • of Norland, interested their imagination and made them wish to be
  • better acquainted with it. But they learnt, on enquiry, that its
  • possessor, an elderly lady of very good character, was unfortunately
  • too infirm to mix with the world, and never stirred from home.
  • The whole country about them abounded in beautiful walks. The high
  • downs which invited them from almost every window of the cottage to
  • seek the exquisite enjoyment of air on their summits, were a happy
  • alternative when the dirt of the valleys beneath shut up their superior
  • beauties; and towards one of these hills did Marianne and Margaret one
  • memorable morning direct their steps, attracted by the partial sunshine
  • of a showery sky, and unable longer to bear the confinement which the
  • settled rain of the two preceding days had occasioned. The weather was
  • not tempting enough to draw the two others from their pencil and their
  • book, in spite of Marianne's declaration that the day would be
  • lastingly fair, and that every threatening cloud would be drawn off
  • from their hills; and the two girls set off together.
  • They gaily ascended the downs, rejoicing in their own penetration at
  • every glimpse of blue sky; and when they caught in their faces the
  • animating gales of a high south-westerly wind, they pitied the fears
  • which had prevented their mother and Elinor from sharing such
  • delightful sensations.
  • "Is there a felicity in the world," said Marianne, "superior to
  • this?--Margaret, we will walk here at least two hours."
  • Margaret agreed, and they pursued their way against the wind, resisting
  • it with laughing delight for about twenty minutes longer, when suddenly
  • the clouds united over their heads, and a driving rain set full in
  • their face.-- Chagrined and surprised, they were obliged, though
  • unwillingly, to turn back, for no shelter was nearer than their own
  • house. One consolation however remained for them, to which the
  • exigence of the moment gave more than usual propriety; it was that of
  • running with all possible speed down the steep side of the hill which
  • led immediately to their garden gate.
  • They set off. Marianne had at first the advantage, but a false step
  • brought her suddenly to the ground; and Margaret, unable to stop
  • herself to assist her, was involuntarily hurried along, and reached the
  • bottom in safety.
  • A gentleman carrying a gun, with two pointers playing round him, was
  • passing up the hill and within a few yards of Marianne, when her
  • accident happened. He put down his gun and ran to her assistance. She
  • had raised herself from the ground, but her foot had been twisted in
  • her fall, and she was scarcely able to stand. The gentleman offered
  • his services; and perceiving that her modesty declined what her
  • situation rendered necessary, took her up in his arms without farther
  • delay, and carried her down the hill. Then passing through the garden,
  • the gate of which had been left open by Margaret, he bore her directly
  • into the house, whither Margaret was just arrived, and quitted not his
  • hold till he had seated her in a chair in the parlour.
  • Elinor and her mother rose up in amazement at their entrance, and while
  • the eyes of both were fixed on him with an evident wonder and a secret
  • admiration which equally sprung from his appearance, he apologized for
  • his intrusion by relating its cause, in a manner so frank and so
  • graceful that his person, which was uncommonly handsome, received
  • additional charms from his voice and expression. Had he been even old,
  • ugly, and vulgar, the gratitude and kindness of Mrs. Dashwood would
  • have been secured by any act of attention to her child; but the
  • influence of youth, beauty, and elegance, gave an interest to the
  • action which came home to her feelings.
  • She thanked him again and again; and, with a sweetness of address which
  • always attended her, invited him to be seated. But this he declined,
  • as he was dirty and wet. Mrs. Dashwood then begged to know to whom she
  • was obliged. His name, he replied, was Willoughby, and his present
  • home was at Allenham, from whence he hoped she would allow him the
  • honour of calling tomorrow to enquire after Miss Dashwood. The honour
  • was readily granted, and he then departed, to make himself still more
  • interesting, in the midst of a heavy rain.
  • His manly beauty and more than common gracefulness were instantly the
  • theme of general admiration, and the laugh which his gallantry raised
  • against Marianne received particular spirit from his exterior
  • attractions.-- Marianne herself had seen less of his Mama the
  • rest, for the confusion which crimsoned over her face, on his lifting
  • her up, had robbed her of the power of regarding him after their
  • entering the house. But she had seen enough of him to join in all the
  • admiration of the others, and with an energy which always adorned her
  • praise. His person and air were equal to what her fancy had ever drawn
  • for the hero of a favourite story; and in his carrying her into the
  • house with so little previous formality, there was a rapidity of
  • thought which particularly recommended the action to her. Every
  • circumstance belonging to him was interesting. His name was good, his
  • residence was in their favourite village, and she soon found out that
  • of all manly dresses a shooting-jacket was the most becoming. Her
  • imagination was busy, her reflections were pleasant, and the pain of a
  • sprained ankle was disregarded.
  • Sir John called on them as soon as the next interval of fair weather
  • that morning allowed him to get out of doors; and Marianne's accident
  • being related to him, he was eagerly asked whether he knew any
  • gentleman of the name of Willoughby at Allenham.
  • "Willoughby!" cried Sir John; "what, is HE in the country? That is good
  • news however; I will ride over tomorrow, and ask him to dinner on
  • Thursday."
  • "You know him then," said Mrs. Dashwood.
  • "Know him! to be sure I do. Why, he is down here every year."
  • "And what sort of a young man is he?"
  • "As good a kind of fellow as ever lived, I assure you. A very decent
  • shot, and there is not a bolder rider in England."
  • "And is that all you can say for him?" cried Marianne, indignantly.
  • "But what are his manners on more intimate acquaintance? What his
  • pursuits, his talents, and genius?"
  • Sir John was rather puzzled.
  • "Upon my soul," said he, "I do not know much about him as to all THAT.
  • But he is a pleasant, good humoured fellow, and has got the nicest
  • little black bitch of a pointer I ever saw. Was she out with him
  • today?"
  • But Marianne could no more satisfy him as to the colour of Mr.
  • Willoughby's pointer, than he could describe to her the shades of his
  • mind.
  • "But who is he?" said Elinor. "Where does he come from? Has he a
  • house at Allenham?"
  • On this point Sir John could give more certain intelligence; and he
  • told them that Mr. Willoughby had no property of his own in the
  • country; that he resided there only while he was visiting the old lady
  • at Allenham Court, to whom he was related, and whose possessions he was
  • to inherit; adding, "Yes, yes, he is very well worth catching I can
  • tell you, Miss Dashwood; he has a pretty little estate of his own in
  • Somersetshire besides; and if I were you, I would not give him up to my
  • younger sister, in spite of all this tumbling down hills. Miss
  • Marianne must not expect to have all the men to herself. Brandon will
  • be jealous, if she does not take care."
  • "I do not believe," said Mrs. Dashwood, with a good humoured smile,
  • "that Mr. Willoughby will be incommoded by the attempts of either of MY
  • daughters towards what you call CATCHING him. It is not an employment
  • to which they have been brought up. Men are very safe with us, let
  • them be ever so rich. I am glad to find, however, from what you say,
  • that he is a respectable young man, and one whose acquaintance will not
  • be ineligible."
  • "He is as good a sort of fellow, I believe, as ever lived," repeated
  • Sir John. "I remember last Christmas at a little hop at the park, he
  • danced from eight o'clock till four, without once sitting down."
  • "Did he indeed?" cried Marianne with sparkling eyes, "and with
  • elegance, with spirit?"
  • "Yes; and he was up again at eight to ride to covert."
  • "That is what I like; that is what a young man ought to be. Whatever
  • be his pursuits, his eagerness in them should know no moderation, and
  • leave him no sense of fatigue."
  • "Aye, aye, I see how it will be," said Sir John, "I see how it will be.
  • You will be setting your cap at him now, and never think of poor
  • Brandon."
  • "That is an expression, Sir John," said Marianne, warmly, "which I
  • particularly dislike. I abhor every common-place phrase by which wit
  • is intended; and 'setting one's cap at a man,' or 'making a conquest,'
  • are the most odious of all. Their tendency is gross and illiberal; and
  • if their construction could ever be deemed clever, time has long ago
  • destroyed all its ingenuity."
  • Sir John did not much understand this reproof; but he laughed as
  • heartily as if he did, and then replied,
  • "Ay, you will make conquests enough, I dare say, one way or other.
  • Poor Brandon! he is quite smitten already, and he is very well worth
  • setting your cap at, I can tell you, in spite of all this tumbling
  • about and spraining of ankles."
  • CHAPTER 10
  • Marianne's preserver, as Margaret, with more elegance than precision,
  • styled Willoughby, called at the cottage early the next morning to make
  • his personal enquiries. He was received by Mrs. Dashwood with more
  • than politeness; with a kindness which Sir John's account of him and
  • her own gratitude prompted; and every thing that passed during the
  • visit tended to assure him of the sense, elegance, mutual affection,
  • and domestic comfort of the family to whom accident had now introduced
  • him. Of their personal charms he had not required a second interview
  • to be convinced.
  • Miss Dashwood had a delicate complexion, regular features, and a
  • remarkably pretty figure. Marianne was still handsomer. Her form,
  • though not so correct as her sister's, in having the advantage of
  • height, was more striking; and her face was so lovely, that when in the
  • common cant of praise, she was called a beautiful girl, truth was less
  • violently outraged than usually happens. Her skin was very brown, but,
  • from its transparency, her complexion was uncommonly brilliant; her
  • features were all good; her smile was sweet and attractive; and in her
  • eyes, which were very dark, there was a life, a spirit, an eagerness,
  • which could hardily be seen without delight. From Willoughby their
  • expression was at first held back, by the embarrassment which the
  • remembrance of his assistance created. But when this passed away, when
  • her spirits became collected, when she saw that to the perfect
  • good-breeding of the gentleman, he united frankness and vivacity, and
  • above all, when she heard him declare, that of music and dancing he was
  • passionately fond, she gave him such a look of approbation as secured
  • the largest share of his discourse to herself for the rest of his stay.
  • It was only necessary to mention any favourite amusement to engage her
  • to talk. She could not be silent when such points were introduced, and
  • she had neither shyness nor reserve in their discussion. They speedily
  • discovered that their enjoyment of dancing and music was mutual, and
  • that it arose from a general conformity of judgment in all that related
  • to either. Encouraged by this to a further examination of his
  • opinions, she proceeded to question him on the subject of books; her
  • favourite authors were brought forward and dwelt upon with so rapturous
  • a delight, that any young man of five and twenty must have been
  • insensible indeed, not to become an immediate convert to the excellence
  • of such works, however disregarded before. Their taste was strikingly
  • alike. The same books, the same passages were idolized by each--or if
  • any difference appeared, any objection arose, it lasted no longer than
  • till the force of her arguments and the brightness of her eyes could be
  • displayed. He acquiesced in all her decisions, caught all her
  • enthusiasm; and long before his visit concluded, they conversed with
  • the familiarity of a long-established acquaintance.
  • "Well, Marianne," said Elinor, as soon as he had left them, "for ONE
  • morning I think you have done pretty well. You have already
  • ascertained Mr. Willoughby's opinion in almost every matter of
  • importance. You know what he thinks of Cowper and Scott; you are
  • certain of his estimating their beauties as he ought, and you have
  • received every assurance of his admiring Pope no more than is proper.
  • But how is your acquaintance to be long supported, under such
  • extraordinary despatch of every subject for discourse? You will soon
  • have exhausted each favourite topic. Another meeting will suffice to
  • explain his sentiments on picturesque beauty, and second marriages, and
  • then you can have nothing farther to ask."--
  • "Elinor," cried Marianne, "is this fair? is this just? are my ideas so
  • scanty? But I see what you mean. I have been too much at my ease, too
  • happy, too frank. I have erred against every common-place notion of
  • decorum; I have been open and sincere where I ought to have been
  • reserved, spiritless, dull, and deceitful--had I talked only of the
  • weather and the roads, and had I spoken only once in ten minutes, this
  • reproach would have been spared."
  • "My love," said her mother, "you must not be offended with Elinor--she
  • was only in jest. I should scold her myself, if she were capable of
  • wishing to check the delight of your conversation with our new
  • friend."-- Marianne was softened in a moment.
  • Willoughby, on his side, gave every proof of his pleasure in their
  • acquaintance, which an evident wish of improving it could offer. He
  • came to them every day. To enquire after Marianne was at first his
  • excuse; but the encouragement of his reception, to which every day gave
  • greater kindness, made such an excuse unnecessary before it had ceased
  • to be possible, by Marianne's perfect recovery. She was confined for
  • some days to the house; but never had any confinement been less
  • irksome. Willoughby was a young man of good abilities, quick
  • imagination, lively spirits, and open, affectionate manners. He was
  • exactly formed to engage Marianne's heart, for with all this, he joined
  • not only a captivating person, but a natural ardour of mind which was
  • now roused and increased by the example of her own, and which
  • recommended him to her affection beyond every thing else.
  • His society became gradually her most exquisite enjoyment. They read,
  • they talked, they sang together; his musical talents were considerable;
  • and he read with all the sensibility and spirit which Edward had
  • unfortunately wanted.
  • In Mrs. Dashwood's estimation he was as faultless as in Marianne's; and
  • Elinor saw nothing to censure in him but a propensity, in which he
  • strongly resembled and peculiarly delighted her sister, of saying too
  • much what he thought on every occasion, without attention to persons or
  • circumstances. In hastily forming and giving his opinion of other
  • people, in sacrificing general politeness to the enjoyment of undivided
  • attention where his heart was engaged, and in slighting too easily the
  • forms of worldly propriety, he displayed a want of caution which Elinor
  • could not approve, in spite of all that he and Marianne could say in
  • its support.
  • Marianne began now to perceive that the desperation which had seized
  • her at sixteen and a half, of ever seeing a man who could satisfy her
  • ideas of perfection, had been rash and unjustifiable. Willoughby was
  • all that her fancy had delineated in that unhappy hour and in every
  • brighter period, as capable of attaching her; and his behaviour
  • declared his wishes to be in that respect as earnest, as his abilities
  • were strong.
  • Her mother too, in whose mind not one speculative thought of their
  • marriage had been raised, by his prospect of riches, was led before the
  • end of a week to hope and expect it; and secretly to congratulate
  • herself on having gained two such sons-in-law as Edward and Willoughby.
  • Colonel Brandon's partiality for Marianne, which had so early been
  • discovered by his friends, now first became perceptible to Elinor, when
  • it ceased to be noticed by them. Their attention and wit were drawn
  • off to his more fortunate rival; and the raillery which the other had
  • incurred before any partiality arose, was removed when his feelings
  • began really to call for the ridicule so justly annexed to sensibility.
  • Elinor was obliged, though unwillingly, to believe that the sentiments
  • which Mrs. Jennings had assigned him for her own satisfaction, were now
  • actually excited by her sister; and that however a general resemblance
  • of disposition between the parties might forward the affection of Mr.
  • Willoughby, an equally striking opposition of character was no
  • hindrance to the regard of Colonel Brandon. She saw it with concern;
  • for what could a silent man of five and thirty hope, when opposed to a
  • very lively one of five and twenty? and as she could not even wish him
  • successful, she heartily wished him indifferent. She liked him--in
  • spite of his gravity and reserve, she beheld in him an object of
  • interest. His manners, though serious, were mild; and his reserve
  • appeared rather the result of some oppression of spirits than of any
  • natural gloominess of temper. Sir John had dropped hints of past
  • injuries and disappointments, which justified her belief of his being
  • an unfortunate man, and she regarded him with respect and compassion.
  • Perhaps she pitied and esteemed him the more because he was slighted by
  • Willoughby and Marianne, who, prejudiced against him for being neither
  • lively nor young, seemed resolved to undervalue his merits.
  • "Brandon is just the kind of man," said Willoughby one day, when they
  • were talking of him together, "whom every body speaks well of, and
  • nobody cares about; whom all are delighted to see, and nobody remembers
  • to talk to."
  • "That is exactly what I think of him," cried Marianne.
  • "Do not boast of it, however," said Elinor, "for it is injustice in
  • both of you. He is highly esteemed by all the family at the park, and
  • I never see him myself without taking pains to converse with him."
  • "That he is patronised by YOU," replied Willoughby, "is certainly in
  • his favour; but as for the esteem of the others, it is a reproach in
  • itself. Who would submit to the indignity of being approved by such a
  • woman as Lady Middleton and Mrs. Jennings, that could command the
  • indifference of any body else?"
  • "But perhaps the abuse of such people as yourself and Marianne will
  • make amends for the regard of Lady Middleton and her mother. If their
  • praise is censure, your censure may be praise, for they are not more
  • undiscerning, than you are prejudiced and unjust."
  • "In defence of your protege you can even be saucy."
  • "My protege, as you call him, is a sensible man; and sense will always
  • have attractions for me. Yes, Marianne, even in a man between thirty
  • and forty. He has seen a great deal of the world; has been abroad, has
  • read, and has a thinking mind. I have found him capable of giving me
  • much information on various subjects; and he has always answered my
  • inquiries with readiness of good-breeding and good nature."
  • "That is to say," cried Marianne contemptuously, "he has told you, that
  • in the East Indies the climate is hot, and the mosquitoes are
  • troublesome."
  • "He WOULD have told me so, I doubt not, had I made any such inquiries,
  • but they happened to be points on which I had been previously informed."
  • "Perhaps," said Willoughby, "his observations may have extended to the
  • existence of nabobs, gold mohrs, and palanquins."
  • "I may venture to say that HIS observations have stretched much further
  • than your candour. But why should you dislike him?"
  • "I do not dislike him. I consider him, on the contrary, as a very
  • respectable man, who has every body's good word, and nobody's notice;
  • who, has more money than he can spend, more time than he knows how to
  • employ, and two new coats every year."
  • "Add to which," cried Marianne, "that he has neither genius, taste, nor
  • spirit. That his understanding has no brilliancy, his feelings no
  • ardour, and his voice no expression."
  • "You decide on his imperfections so much in the mass," replied Elinor,
  • "and so much on the strength of your own imagination, that the
  • commendation I am able to give of him is comparatively cold and
  • insipid. I can only pronounce him to be a sensible man, well-bred,
  • well-informed, of gentle address, and, I believe, possessing an amiable
  • heart."
  • "Miss Dashwood," cried Willoughby, "you are now using me unkindly. You
  • are endeavouring to disarm me by reason, and to convince me against my
  • will. But it will not do. You shall find me as stubborn as you can be
  • artful. I have three unanswerable reasons for disliking Colonel
  • Brandon; he threatened me with rain when I wanted it to be fine; he has
  • found fault with the hanging of my curricle, and I cannot persuade him
  • to buy my brown mare. If it will be any satisfaction to you, however,
  • to be told, that I believe his character to be in other respects
  • irreproachable, I am ready to confess it. And in return for an
  • acknowledgment, which must give me some pain, you cannot deny me the
  • privilege of disliking him as much as ever."
  • CHAPTER 11
  • Little had Mrs. Dashwood or her daughters imagined when they first came
  • into Devonshire, that so many engagements would arise to occupy their
  • time as shortly presented themselves, or that they should have such
  • frequent invitations and such constant visitors as to leave them little
  • leisure for serious employment. Yet such was the case. When Marianne
  • was recovered, the schemes of amusement at home and abroad, which Sir
  • John had been previously forming, were put into execution. The private
  • balls at the park then began; and parties on the water were made and
  • accomplished as often as a showery October would allow. In every
  • meeting of the kind Willoughby was included; and the ease and
  • familiarity which naturally attended these parties were exactly
  • calculated to give increasing intimacy to his acquaintance with the
  • Dashwoods, to afford him opportunity of witnessing the excellencies of
  • Marianne, of marking his animated admiration of her, and of receiving,
  • in her behaviour to himself, the most pointed assurance of her
  • affection.
  • Elinor could not be surprised at their attachment. She only wished
  • that it were less openly shewn; and once or twice did venture to
  • suggest the propriety of some self-command to Marianne. But Marianne
  • abhorred all concealment where no real disgrace could attend unreserve;
  • and to aim at the restraint of sentiments which were not in themselves
  • illaudable, appeared to her not merely an unnecessary effort, but a
  • disgraceful subjection of reason to common-place and mistaken notions.
  • Willoughby thought the same; and their behaviour at all times, was an
  • illustration of their opinions.
  • When he was present she had no eyes for any one else. Every thing he
  • did, was right. Every thing he said, was clever. If their evenings at
  • the park were concluded with cards, he cheated himself and all the rest
  • of the party to get her a good hand. If dancing formed the amusement
  • of the night, they were partners for half the time; and when obliged to
  • separate for a couple of dances, were careful to stand together and
  • scarcely spoke a word to any body else. Such conduct made them of
  • course most exceedingly laughed at; but ridicule could not shame, and
  • seemed hardly to provoke them.
  • Mrs. Dashwood entered into all their feelings with a warmth which left
  • her no inclination for checking this excessive display of them. To her
  • it was but the natural consequence of a strong affection in a young and
  • ardent mind.
  • This was the season of happiness to Marianne. Her heart was devoted to
  • Willoughby, and the fond attachment to Norland, which she brought with
  • her from Sussex, was more likely to be softened than she had thought it
  • possible before, by the charms which his society bestowed on her
  • present home.
  • Elinor's happiness was not so great. Her heart was not so much at
  • ease, nor her satisfaction in their amusements so pure. They afforded
  • her no companion that could make amends for what she had left behind,
  • nor that could teach her to think of Norland with less regret than
  • ever. Neither Lady Middleton nor Mrs. Jennings could supply to her the
  • conversation she missed; although the latter was an everlasting talker,
  • and from the first had regarded her with a kindness which ensured her a
  • large share of her discourse. She had already repeated her own history
  • to Elinor three or four times; and had Elinor's memory been equal to
  • her means of improvement, she might have known very early in their
  • acquaintance all the particulars of Mr. Jennings's last illness, and
  • what he said to his wife a few minutes before he died. Lady Middleton
  • was more agreeable than her mother only in being more silent. Elinor
  • needed little observation to perceive that her reserve was a mere
  • calmness of manner with which sense had nothing to do. Towards her
  • husband and mother she was the same as to them; and intimacy was
  • therefore neither to be looked for nor desired. She had nothing to say
  • one day that she had not said the day before. Her insipidity was
  • invariable, for even her spirits were always the same; and though she
  • did not oppose the parties arranged by her husband, provided every
  • thing were conducted in style and her two eldest children attended her,
  • she never appeared to receive more enjoyment from them than she might
  • have experienced in sitting at home;--and so little did her presence
  • add to the pleasure of the others, by any share in their conversation,
  • that they were sometimes only reminded of her being amongst them by her
  • solicitude about her troublesome boys.
  • In Colonel Brandon alone, of all her new acquaintance, did Elinor find
  • a person who could in any degree claim the respect of abilities, excite
  • the interest of friendship, or give pleasure as a companion.
  • Willoughby was out of the question. Her admiration and regard, even
  • her sisterly regard, was all his own; but he was a lover; his
  • attentions were wholly Marianne's, and a far less agreeable man might
  • have been more generally pleasing. Colonel Brandon, unfortunately for
  • himself, had no such encouragement to think only of Marianne, and in
  • conversing with Elinor he found the greatest consolation for the
  • indifference of her sister.
  • Elinor's compassion for him increased, as she had reason to suspect
  • that the misery of disappointed love had already been known to him.
  • This suspicion was given by some words which accidentally dropped from
  • him one evening at the park, when they were sitting down together by
  • mutual consent, while the others were dancing. His eyes were fixed on
  • Marianne, and, after a silence of some minutes, he said, with a faint
  • smile, "Your sister, I understand, does not approve of second
  • attachments."
  • "No," replied Elinor, "her opinions are all romantic."
  • "Or rather, as I believe, she considers them impossible to exist."
  • "I believe she does. But how she contrives it without reflecting on
  • the character of her own father, who had himself two wives, I know not.
  • A few years however will settle her opinions on the reasonable basis of
  • common sense and observation; and then they may be more easy to define
  • and to justify than they now are, by any body but herself."
  • "This will probably be the case," he replied; "and yet there is
  • something so amiable in the prejudices of a young mind, that one is
  • sorry to see them give way to the reception of more general opinions."
  • "I cannot agree with you there," said Elinor. "There are
  • inconveniences attending such feelings as Marianne's, which all the
  • charms of enthusiasm and ignorance of the world cannot atone for. Her
  • systems have all the unfortunate tendency of setting propriety at
  • nought; and a better acquaintance with the world is what I look forward
  • to as her greatest possible advantage."
  • After a short pause he resumed the conversation by saying,--
  • "Does your sister make no distinction in her objections against a
  • second attachment? or is it equally criminal in every body? Are those
  • who have been disappointed in their first choice, whether from the
  • inconstancy of its object, or the perverseness of circumstances, to be
  • equally indifferent during the rest of their lives?"
  • "Upon my word, I am not acquainted with the minutiae of her principles.
  • I only know that I never yet heard her admit any instance of a second
  • attachment's being pardonable."
  • "This," said he, "cannot hold; but a change, a total change of
  • sentiments--No, no, do not desire it; for when the romantic refinements
  • of a young mind are obliged to give way, how frequently are they
  • succeeded by such opinions as are but too common, and too dangerous! I
  • speak from experience. I once knew a lady who in temper and mind
  • greatly resembled your sister, who thought and judged like her, but who
  • from an inforced change--from a series of unfortunate circumstances"--
  • Here he stopt suddenly; appeared to think that he had said too much,
  • and by his countenance gave rise to conjectures, which might not
  • otherwise have entered Elinor's head. The lady would probably have
  • passed without suspicion, had he not convinced Miss Dashwood that what
  • concerned her ought not to escape his lips. As it was, it required but
  • a slight effort of fancy to connect his emotion with the tender
  • recollection of past regard. Elinor attempted no more. But Marianne,
  • in her place, would not have done so little. The whole story would
  • have been speedily formed under her active imagination; and every thing
  • established in the most melancholy order of disastrous love.
  • CHAPTER 12
  • As Elinor and Marianne were walking together the next morning the
  • latter communicated a piece of news to her sister, which in spite of
  • all that she knew before of Marianne's imprudence and want of thought,
  • surprised her by its extravagant testimony of both. Marianne told her,
  • with the greatest delight, that Willoughby had given her a horse, one
  • that he had bred himself on his estate in Somersetshire, and which was
  • exactly calculated to carry a woman. Without considering that it was
  • not in her mother's plan to keep any horse, that if she were to alter
  • her resolution in favour of this gift, she must buy another for the
  • servant, and keep a servant to ride it, and after all, build a stable
  • to receive them, she had accepted the present without hesitation, and
  • told her sister of it in raptures.
  • "He intends to send his groom into Somersetshire immediately for it,"
  • she added, "and when it arrives we will ride every day. You shall
  • share its use with me. Imagine to yourself, my dear Elinor, the
  • delight of a gallop on some of these downs."
  • Most unwilling was she to awaken from such a dream of felicity to
  • comprehend all the unhappy truths which attended the affair; and for
  • some time she refused to submit to them. As to an additional servant,
  • the expense would be a trifle; Mama she was sure would never object to
  • it; and any horse would do for HIM; he might always get one at the
  • park; as to a stable, the merest shed would be sufficient. Elinor then
  • ventured to doubt the propriety of her receiving such a present from a
  • man so little, or at least so lately known to her. This was too much.
  • "You are mistaken, Elinor," said she warmly, "in supposing I know very
  • little of Willoughby. I have not known him long indeed, but I am much
  • better acquainted with him, than I am with any other creature in the
  • world, except yourself and mama. It is not time or opportunity that is
  • to determine intimacy;--it is disposition alone. Seven years would be
  • insufficient to make some people acquainted with each other, and seven
  • days are more than enough for others. I should hold myself guilty of
  • greater impropriety in accepting a horse from my brother, than from
  • Willoughby. Of John I know very little, though we have lived together
  • for years; but of Willoughby my judgment has long been formed."
  • Elinor thought it wisest to touch that point no more. She knew her
  • sister's temper. Opposition on so tender a subject would only attach
  • her the more to her own opinion. But by an appeal to her affection for
  • her mother, by representing the inconveniences which that indulgent
  • mother must draw on herself, if (as would probably be the case) she
  • consented to this increase of establishment, Marianne was shortly
  • subdued; and she promised not to tempt her mother to such imprudent
  • kindness by mentioning the offer, and to tell Willoughby when she saw
  • him next, that it must be declined.
  • She was faithful to her word; and when Willoughby called at the
  • cottage, the same day, Elinor heard her express her disappointment to
  • him in a low voice, on being obliged to forego the acceptance of his
  • present. The reasons for this alteration were at the same time
  • related, and they were such as to make further entreaty on his side
  • impossible. His concern however was very apparent; and after
  • expressing it with earnestness, he added, in the same low voice,--"But,
  • Marianne, the horse is still yours, though you cannot use it now. I
  • shall keep it only till you can claim it. When you leave Barton to
  • form your own establishment in a more lasting home, Queen Mab shall
  • receive you."
  • This was all overheard by Miss Dashwood; and in the whole of the
  • sentence, in his manner of pronouncing it, and in his addressing her
  • sister by her Christian name alone, she instantly saw an intimacy so
  • decided, a meaning so direct, as marked a perfect agreement between
  • them. From that moment she doubted not of their being engaged to each
  • other; and the belief of it created no other surprise than that she, or
  • any of their friends, should be left by tempers so frank, to discover
  • it by accident.
  • Margaret related something to her the next day, which placed this
  • matter in a still clearer light. Willoughby had spent the preceding
  • evening with them, and Margaret, by being left some time in the parlour
  • with only him and Marianne, had had opportunity for observations,
  • which, with a most important face, she communicated to her eldest
  • sister, when they were next by themselves.
  • "Oh, Elinor!" she cried, "I have such a secret to tell you about
  • Marianne. I am sure she will be married to Mr. Willoughby very soon."
  • "You have said so," replied Elinor, "almost every day since they first
  • met on High-church Down; and they had not known each other a week, I
  • believe, before you were certain that Marianne wore his picture round
  • her neck; but it turned out to be only the miniature of our great
  • uncle."
  • "But indeed this is quite another thing. I am sure they will be
  • married very soon, for he has got a lock of her hair."
  • "Take care, Margaret. It may be only the hair of some great uncle of
  • HIS."
  • "But, indeed, Elinor, it is Marianne's. I am almost sure it is, for I
  • saw him cut it off. Last night after tea, when you and mama went out
  • of the room, they were whispering and talking together as fast as could
  • be, and he seemed to be begging something of her, and presently he took
  • up her scissors and cut off a long lock of her hair, for it was all
  • tumbled down her back; and he kissed it, and folded it up in a piece of
  • white paper; and put it into his pocket-book."
  • For such particulars, stated on such authority, Elinor could not
  • withhold her credit; nor was she disposed to it, for the circumstance
  • was in perfect unison with what she had heard and seen herself.
  • Margaret's sagacity was not always displayed in a way so satisfactory
  • to her sister. When Mrs. Jennings attacked her one evening at the
  • park, to give the name of the young man who was Elinor's particular
  • favourite, which had been long a matter of great curiosity to her,
  • Margaret answered by looking at her sister, and saying, "I must not
  • tell, may I, Elinor?"
  • This of course made every body laugh; and Elinor tried to laugh too.
  • But the effort was painful. She was convinced that Margaret had fixed
  • on a person whose name she could not bear with composure to become a
  • standing joke with Mrs. Jennings.
  • Marianne felt for her most sincerely; but she did more harm than good
  • to the cause, by turning very red and saying in an angry manner to
  • Margaret,
  • "Remember that whatever your conjectures may be, you have no right to
  • repeat them."
  • "I never had any conjectures about it," replied Margaret; "it was you
  • who told me of it yourself."
  • This increased the mirth of the company, and Margaret was eagerly
  • pressed to say something more.
  • "Oh! pray, Miss Margaret, let us know all about it," said Mrs.
  • Jennings. "What is the gentleman's name?"
  • "I must not tell, ma'am. But I know very well what it is; and I know
  • where he is too."
  • "Yes, yes, we can guess where he is; at his own house at Norland to be
  • sure. He is the curate of the parish I dare say."
  • "No, THAT he is not. He is of no profession at all."
  • "Margaret," said Marianne with great warmth, "you know that all this is
  • an invention of your own, and that there is no such person in
  • existence."
  • "Well, then, he is lately dead, Marianne, for I am sure there was such
  • a man once, and his name begins with an F."
  • Most grateful did Elinor feel to Lady Middleton for observing, at this
  • moment, "that it rained very hard," though she believed the
  • interruption to proceed less from any attention to her, than from her
  • ladyship's great dislike of all such inelegant subjects of raillery as
  • delighted her husband and mother. The idea however started by her, was
  • immediately pursued by Colonel Brandon, who was on every occasion
  • mindful of the feelings of others; and much was said on the subject of
  • rain by both of them. Willoughby opened the piano-forte, and asked
  • Marianne to sit down to it; and thus amidst the various endeavours of
  • different people to quit the topic, it fell to the ground. But not so
  • easily did Elinor recover from the alarm into which it had thrown her.
  • A party was formed this evening for going on the following day to see a
  • very fine place about twelve miles from Barton, belonging to a
  • brother-in-law of Colonel Brandon, without whose interest it could not
  • be seen, as the proprietor, who was then abroad, had left strict orders
  • on that head. The grounds were declared to be highly beautiful, and
  • Sir John, who was particularly warm in their praise, might be allowed
  • to be a tolerable judge, for he had formed parties to visit them, at
  • least, twice every summer for the last ten years. They contained a
  • noble piece of water; a sail on which was to a form a great part of the
  • morning's amusement; cold provisions were to be taken, open carriages
  • only to be employed, and every thing conducted in the usual style of a
  • complete party of pleasure.
  • To some few of the company it appeared rather a bold undertaking,
  • considering the time of year, and that it had rained every day for the
  • last fortnight;--and Mrs. Dashwood, who had already a cold, was
  • persuaded by Elinor to stay at home.
  • CHAPTER 13
  • Their intended excursion to Whitwell turned out very different from
  • what Elinor had expected. She was prepared to be wet through,
  • fatigued, and frightened; but the event was still more unfortunate, for
  • they did not go at all.
  • By ten o'clock the whole party was assembled at the park, where they
  • were to breakfast. The morning was rather favourable, though it had
  • rained all night, as the clouds were then dispersing across the sky,
  • and the sun frequently appeared. They were all in high spirits and
  • good humour, eager to be happy, and determined to submit to the
  • greatest inconveniences and hardships rather than be otherwise.
  • While they were at breakfast the letters were brought in. Among the
  • rest there was one for Colonel Brandon;--he took it, looked at the
  • direction, changed colour, and immediately left the room.
  • "What is the matter with Brandon?" said Sir John.
  • Nobody could tell.
  • "I hope he has had no bad news," said Lady Middleton. "It must be
  • something extraordinary that could make Colonel Brandon leave my
  • breakfast table so suddenly."
  • In about five minutes he returned.
  • "No bad news, Colonel, I hope;" said Mrs. Jennings, as soon as he
  • entered the room.
  • "None at all, ma'am, I thank you."
  • "Was it from Avignon? I hope it is not to say that your sister is
  • worse."
  • "No, ma'am. It came from town, and is merely a letter of business."
  • "But how came the hand to discompose you so much, if it was only a
  • letter of business? Come, come, this won't do, Colonel; so let us hear
  • the truth of it."
  • "My dear madam," said Lady Middleton, "recollect what you are saying."
  • "Perhaps it is to tell you that your cousin Fanny is married?" said
  • Mrs. Jennings, without attending to her daughter's reproof.
  • "No, indeed, it is not."
  • "Well, then, I know who it is from, Colonel. And I hope she is well."
  • "Whom do you mean, ma'am?" said he, colouring a little.
  • "Oh! you know who I mean."
  • "I am particularly sorry, ma'am," said he, addressing Lady Middleton,
  • "that I should receive this letter today, for it is on business which
  • requires my immediate attendance in town."
  • "In town!" cried Mrs. Jennings. "What can you have to do in town at
  • this time of year?"
  • "My own loss is great," he continued, "in being obliged to leave so
  • agreeable a party; but I am the more concerned, as I fear my presence
  • is necessary to gain your admittance at Whitwell."
  • What a blow upon them all was this!
  • "But if you write a note to the housekeeper, Mr. Brandon," said
  • Marianne, eagerly, "will it not be sufficient?"
  • He shook his head.
  • "We must go," said Sir John.--"It shall not be put off when we are so
  • near it. You cannot go to town till tomorrow, Brandon, that is all."
  • "I wish it could be so easily settled. But it is not in my power to
  • delay my journey for one day!"
  • "If you would but let us know what your business is," said Mrs.
  • Jennings, "we might see whether it could be put off or not."
  • "You would not be six hours later," said Willoughby, "if you were to
  • defer your journey till our return."
  • "I cannot afford to lose ONE hour."--
  • Elinor then heard Willoughby say, in a low voice to Marianne, "There
  • are some people who cannot bear a party of pleasure. Brandon is one of
  • them. He was afraid of catching cold I dare say, and invented this
  • trick for getting out of it. I would lay fifty guineas the letter was
  • of his own writing."
  • "I have no doubt of it," replied Marianne.
  • "There is no persuading you to change your mind, Brandon, I know of
  • old," said Sir John, "when once you are determined on anything. But,
  • however, I hope you will think better of it. Consider, here are the
  • two Miss Careys come over from Newton, the three Miss Dashwoods walked
  • up from the cottage, and Mr. Willoughby got up two hours before his
  • usual time, on purpose to go to Whitwell."
  • Colonel Brandon again repeated his sorrow at being the cause of
  • disappointing the party; but at the same time declared it to be
  • unavoidable.
  • "Well, then, when will you come back again?"
  • "I hope we shall see you at Barton," added her ladyship, "as soon as
  • you can conveniently leave town; and we must put off the party to
  • Whitwell till you return."
  • "You are very obliging. But it is so uncertain, when I may have it in
  • my power to return, that I dare not engage for it at all."
  • "Oh! he must and shall come back," cried Sir John. "If he is not here
  • by the end of the week, I shall go after him."
  • "Ay, so do, Sir John," cried Mrs. Jennings, "and then perhaps you may
  • find out what his business is."
  • "I do not want to pry into other men's concerns. I suppose it is
  • something he is ashamed of."
  • Colonel Brandon's horses were announced.
  • "You do not go to town on horseback, do you?" added Sir John.
  • "No. Only to Honiton. I shall then go post."
  • "Well, as you are resolved to go, I wish you a good journey. But you
  • had better change your mind."
  • "I assure you it is not in my power."
  • He then took leave of the whole party.
  • "Is there no chance of my seeing you and your sisters in town this
  • winter, Miss Dashwood?"
  • "I am afraid, none at all."
  • "Then I must bid you farewell for a longer time than I should wish to
  • do."
  • To Marianne, he merely bowed and said nothing.
  • "Come Colonel," said Mrs. Jennings, "before you go, do let us know what
  • you are going about."
  • He wished her a good morning, and, attended by Sir John, left the room.
  • The complaints and lamentations which politeness had hitherto
  • restrained, now burst forth universally; and they all agreed again and
  • again how provoking it was to be so disappointed.
  • "I can guess what his business is, however," said Mrs. Jennings
  • exultingly.
  • "Can you, ma'am?" said almost every body.
  • "Yes; it is about Miss Williams, I am sure."
  • "And who is Miss Williams?" asked Marianne.
  • "What! do not you know who Miss Williams is? I am sure you must have
  • heard of her before. She is a relation of the Colonel's, my dear; a
  • very near relation. We will not say how near, for fear of shocking the
  • young ladies." Then, lowering her voice a little, she said to Elinor,
  • "She is his natural daughter."
  • "Indeed!"
  • "Oh, yes; and as like him as she can stare. I dare say the Colonel
  • will leave her all his fortune."
  • When Sir John returned, he joined most heartily in the general regret
  • on so unfortunate an event; concluding however by observing, that as
  • they were all got together, they must do something by way of being
  • happy; and after some consultation it was agreed, that although
  • happiness could only be enjoyed at Whitwell, they might procure a
  • tolerable composure of mind by driving about the country. The
  • carriages were then ordered; Willoughby's was first, and Marianne never
  • looked happier than when she got into it. He drove through the park
  • very fast, and they were soon out of sight; and nothing more of them
  • was seen till their return, which did not happen till after the return
  • of all the rest. They both seemed delighted with their drive; but said
  • only in general terms that they had kept in the lanes, while the others
  • went on the downs.
  • It was settled that there should be a dance in the evening, and that
  • every body should be extremely merry all day long. Some more of the
  • Careys came to dinner, and they had the pleasure of sitting down nearly
  • twenty to table, which Sir John observed with great contentment.
  • Willoughby took his usual place between the two elder Miss Dashwoods.
  • Mrs. Jennings sat on Elinor's right hand; and they had not been long
  • seated, before she leant behind her and Willoughby, and said to
  • Marianne, loud enough for them both to hear, "I have found you out in
  • spite of all your tricks. I know where you spent the morning."
  • Marianne coloured, and replied very hastily, "Where, pray?"--
  • "Did not you know," said Willoughby, "that we had been out in my
  • curricle?"
  • "Yes, yes, Mr. Impudence, I know that very well, and I was determined
  • to find out WHERE you had been to.-- I hope you like your house, Miss
  • Marianne. It is a very large one, I know; and when I come to see you,
  • I hope you will have new-furnished it, for it wanted it very much when
  • I was there six years ago."
  • Marianne turned away in great confusion. Mrs. Jennings laughed
  • heartily; and Elinor found that in her resolution to know where they
  • had been, she had actually made her own woman enquire of Mr.
  • Willoughby's groom; and that she had by that method been informed that
  • they had gone to Allenham, and spent a considerable time there in
  • walking about the garden and going all over the house.
  • Elinor could hardly believe this to be true, as it seemed very unlikely
  • that Willoughby should propose, or Marianne consent, to enter the house
  • while Mrs. Smith was in it, with whom Marianne had not the smallest
  • acquaintance.
  • As soon as they left the dining-room, Elinor enquired of her about it;
  • and great was her surprise when she found that every circumstance
  • related by Mrs. Jennings was perfectly true. Marianne was quite angry
  • with her for doubting it.
  • "Why should you imagine, Elinor, that we did not go there, or that we
  • did not see the house? Is not it what you have often wished to do
  • yourself?"
  • "Yes, Marianne, but I would not go while Mrs. Smith was there, and with
  • no other companion than Mr. Willoughby."
  • "Mr. Willoughby however is the only person who can have a right to shew
  • that house; and as he went in an open carriage, it was impossible to
  • have any other companion. I never spent a pleasanter morning in my
  • life."
  • "I am afraid," replied Elinor, "that the pleasantness of an employment
  • does not always evince its propriety."
  • "On the contrary, nothing can be a stronger proof of it, Elinor; for if
  • there had been any real impropriety in what I did, I should have been
  • sensible of it at the time, for we always know when we are acting
  • wrong, and with such a conviction I could have had no pleasure."
  • "But, my dear Marianne, as it has already exposed you to some very
  • impertinent remarks, do you not now begin to doubt the discretion of
  • your own conduct?"
  • "If the impertinent remarks of Mrs. Jennings are to be the proof of
  • impropriety in conduct, we are all offending every moment of our lives.
  • I value not her censure any more than I should do her commendation. I
  • am not sensible of having done anything wrong in walking over Mrs.
  • Smith's grounds, or in seeing her house. They will one day be Mr.
  • Willoughby's, and--"
  • "If they were one day to be your own, Marianne, you would not be
  • justified in what you have done."
  • She blushed at this hint; but it was even visibly gratifying to her;
  • and after a ten minutes' interval of earnest thought, she came to her
  • sister again, and said with great good humour, "Perhaps, Elinor, it WAS
  • rather ill-judged in me to go to Allenham; but Mr. Willoughby wanted
  • particularly to shew me the place; and it is a charming house, I assure
  • you.--There is one remarkably pretty sitting room up stairs; of a nice
  • comfortable size for constant use, and with modern furniture it would
  • be delightful. It is a corner room, and has windows on two sides. On
  • one side you look across the bowling-green, behind the house, to a
  • beautiful hanging wood, and on the other you have a view of the church
  • and village, and, beyond them, of those fine bold hills that we have so
  • often admired. I did not see it to advantage, for nothing could be
  • more forlorn than the furniture,--but if it were newly fitted up--a
  • couple of hundred pounds, Willoughby says, would make it one of the
  • pleasantest summer-rooms in England."
  • Could Elinor have listened to her without interruption from the others,
  • she would have described every room in the house with equal delight.
  • CHAPTER 14
  • The sudden termination of Colonel Brandon's visit at the park, with his
  • steadiness in concealing its cause, filled the mind, and raised the
  • wonder of Mrs. Jennings for two or three days; she was a great
  • wonderer, as every one must be who takes a very lively interest in all
  • the comings and goings of all their acquaintance. She wondered, with
  • little intermission what could be the reason of it; was sure there must
  • be some bad news, and thought over every kind of distress that could
  • have befallen him, with a fixed determination that he should not escape
  • them all.
  • "Something very melancholy must be the matter, I am sure," said she.
  • "I could see it in his face. Poor man! I am afraid his circumstances
  • may be bad. The estate at Delaford was never reckoned more than two
  • thousand a year, and his brother left everything sadly involved. I do
  • think he must have been sent for about money matters, for what else can
  • it be? I wonder whether it is so. I would give anything to know the
  • truth of it. Perhaps it is about Miss Williams and, by the bye, I dare
  • say it is, because he looked so conscious when I mentioned her. May be
  • she is ill in town; nothing in the world more likely, for I have a
  • notion she is always rather sickly. I would lay any wager it is about
  • Miss Williams. It is not so very likely he should be distressed in his
  • circumstances NOW, for he is a very prudent man, and to be sure must
  • have cleared the estate by this time. I wonder what it can be! May be
  • his sister is worse at Avignon, and has sent for him over. His setting
  • off in such a hurry seems very like it. Well, I wish him out of all
  • his trouble with all my heart, and a good wife into the bargain."
  • So wondered, so talked Mrs. Jennings. Her opinion varying with every
  • fresh conjecture, and all seeming equally probable as they arose.
  • Elinor, though she felt really interested in the welfare of Colonel
  • Brandon, could not bestow all the wonder on his going so suddenly away,
  • which Mrs. Jennings was desirous of her feeling; for besides that the
  • circumstance did not in her opinion justify such lasting amazement or
  • variety of speculation, her wonder was otherwise disposed of. It was
  • engrossed by the extraordinary silence of her sister and Willoughby on
  • the subject, which they must know to be peculiarly interesting to them
  • all. As this silence continued, every day made it appear more strange
  • and more incompatible with the disposition of both. Why they should
  • not openly acknowledge to her mother and herself, what their constant
  • behaviour to each other declared to have taken place, Elinor could not
  • imagine.
  • She could easily conceive that marriage might not be immediately in
  • their power; for though Willoughby was independent, there was no reason
  • to believe him rich. His estate had been rated by Sir John at about
  • six or seven hundred a year; but he lived at an expense to which that
  • income could hardly be equal, and he had himself often complained of
  • his poverty. But for this strange kind of secrecy maintained by them
  • relative to their engagement, which in fact concealed nothing at all,
  • she could not account; and it was so wholly contradictory to their
  • general opinions and practice, that a doubt sometimes entered her mind
  • of their being really engaged, and this doubt was enough to prevent her
  • making any inquiry of Marianne.
  • Nothing could be more expressive of attachment to them all, than
  • Willoughby's behaviour. To Marianne it had all the distinguishing
  • tenderness which a lover's heart could give, and to the rest of the
  • family it was the affectionate attention of a son and a brother. The
  • cottage seemed to be considered and loved by him as his home; many more
  • of his hours were spent there than at Allenham; and if no general
  • engagement collected them at the park, the exercise which called him
  • out in the morning was almost certain of ending there, where the rest
  • of the day was spent by himself at the side of Marianne, and by his
  • favourite pointer at her feet.
  • One evening in particular, about a week after Colonel Brandon left the
  • country, his heart seemed more than usually open to every feeling of
  • attachment to the objects around him; and on Mrs. Dashwood's happening
  • to mention her design of improving the cottage in the spring, he warmly
  • opposed every alteration of a place which affection had established as
  • perfect with him.
  • "What!" he exclaimed--"Improve this dear cottage! No. THAT I will
  • never consent to. Not a stone must be added to its walls, not an inch
  • to its size, if my feelings are regarded."
  • "Do not be alarmed," said Miss Dashwood, "nothing of the kind will be
  • done; for my mother will never have money enough to attempt it."
  • "I am heartily glad of it," he cried. "May she always be poor, if she
  • can employ her riches no better."
  • "Thank you, Willoughby. But you may be assured that I would not
  • sacrifice one sentiment of local attachment of yours, or of any one
  • whom I loved, for all the improvements in the world. Depend upon it
  • that whatever unemployed sum may remain, when I make up my accounts in
  • the spring, I would even rather lay it uselessly by than dispose of it
  • in a manner so painful to you. But are you really so attached to this
  • place as to see no defect in it?"
  • "I am," said he. "To me it is faultless. Nay, more, I consider it as
  • the only form of building in which happiness is attainable, and were I
  • rich enough I would instantly pull Combe down, and build it up again in
  • the exact plan of this cottage."
  • "With dark narrow stairs and a kitchen that smokes, I suppose," said
  • Elinor.
  • "Yes," cried he in the same eager tone, "with all and every thing
  • belonging to it;--in no one convenience or INconvenience about it,
  • should the least variation be perceptible. Then, and then only, under
  • such a roof, I might perhaps be as happy at Combe as I have been at
  • Barton."
  • "I flatter myself," replied Elinor, "that even under the disadvantage
  • of better rooms and a broader staircase, you will hereafter find your
  • own house as faultless as you now do this."
  • "There certainly are circumstances," said Willoughby, "which might
  • greatly endear it to me; but this place will always have one claim of
  • my affection, which no other can possibly share."
  • Mrs. Dashwood looked with pleasure at Marianne, whose fine eyes were
  • fixed so expressively on Willoughby, as plainly denoted how well she
  • understood him.
  • "How often did I wish," added he, "when I was at Allenham this time
  • twelvemonth, that Barton cottage were inhabited! I never passed within
  • view of it without admiring its situation, and grieving that no one
  • should live in it. How little did I then think that the very first
  • news I should hear from Mrs. Smith, when I next came into the country,
  • would be that Barton cottage was taken: and I felt an immediate
  • satisfaction and interest in the event, which nothing but a kind of
  • prescience of what happiness I should experience from it, can account
  • for. Must it not have been so, Marianne?" speaking to her in a lowered
  • voice. Then continuing his former tone, he said, "And yet this house
  • you would spoil, Mrs. Dashwood? You would rob it of its simplicity by
  • imaginary improvement! and this dear parlour in which our acquaintance
  • first began, and in which so many happy hours have been since spent by
  • us together, you would degrade to the condition of a common entrance,
  • and every body would be eager to pass through the room which has
  • hitherto contained within itself more real accommodation and comfort
  • than any other apartment of the handsomest dimensions in the world
  • could possibly afford."
  • Mrs. Dashwood again assured him that no alteration of the kind should
  • be attempted.
  • "You are a good woman," he warmly replied. "Your promise makes me
  • easy. Extend it a little farther, and it will make me happy. Tell me
  • that not only your house will remain the same, but that I shall ever
  • find you and yours as unchanged as your dwelling; and that you will
  • always consider me with the kindness which has made everything
  • belonging to you so dear to me."
  • The promise was readily given, and Willoughby's behaviour during the
  • whole of the evening declared at once his affection and happiness.
  • "Shall we see you tomorrow to dinner?" said Mrs. Dashwood, when he was
  • leaving them. "I do not ask you to come in the morning, for we must
  • walk to the park, to call on Lady Middleton."
  • He engaged to be with them by four o'clock.
  • CHAPTER 15
  • Mrs. Dashwood's visit to Lady Middleton took place the next day, and
  • two of her daughters went with her; but Marianne excused herself from
  • being of the party, under some trifling pretext of employment; and her
  • mother, who concluded that a promise had been made by Willoughby the
  • night before of calling on her while they were absent, was perfectly
  • satisfied with her remaining at home.
  • On their return from the park they found Willoughby's curricle and
  • servant in waiting at the cottage, and Mrs. Dashwood was convinced that
  • her conjecture had been just. So far it was all as she had foreseen;
  • but on entering the house she beheld what no foresight had taught her
  • to expect. They were no sooner in the passage than Marianne came
  • hastily out of the parlour apparently in violent affliction, with her
  • handkerchief at her eyes; and without noticing them ran up stairs.
  • Surprised and alarmed they proceeded directly into the room she had
  • just quitted, where they found only Willoughby, who was leaning against
  • the mantel-piece with his back towards them. He turned round on their
  • coming in, and his countenance shewed that he strongly partook of the
  • emotion which over-powered Marianne.
  • "Is anything the matter with her?" cried Mrs. Dashwood as she
  • entered--"is she ill?"
  • "I hope not," he replied, trying to look cheerful; and with a forced
  • smile presently added, "It is I who may rather expect to be ill--for I
  • am now suffering under a very heavy disappointment!"
  • "Disappointment?"
  • "Yes, for I am unable to keep my engagement with you. Mrs. Smith has
  • this morning exercised the privilege of riches upon a poor dependent
  • cousin, by sending me on business to London. I have just received my
  • dispatches, and taken my farewell of Allenham; and by way of
  • exhilaration I am now come to take my farewell of you."
  • "To London!--and are you going this morning?"
  • "Almost this moment."
  • "This is very unfortunate. But Mrs. Smith must be obliged;--and her
  • business will not detain you from us long I hope."
  • He coloured as he replied, "You are very kind, but I have no idea of
  • returning into Devonshire immediately. My visits to Mrs. Smith are
  • never repeated within the twelvemonth."
  • "And is Mrs. Smith your only friend? Is Allenham the only house in the
  • neighbourhood to which you will be welcome? For shame, Willoughby, can
  • you wait for an invitation here?"
  • His colour increased; and with his eyes fixed on the ground he only
  • replied, "You are too good."
  • Mrs. Dashwood looked at Elinor with surprise. Elinor felt equal
  • amazement. For a few moments every one was silent. Mrs. Dashwood
  • first spoke.
  • "I have only to add, my dear Willoughby, that at Barton cottage you
  • will always be welcome; for I will not press you to return here
  • immediately, because you only can judge how far THAT might be pleasing
  • to Mrs. Smith; and on this head I shall be no more disposed to question
  • your judgment than to doubt your inclination."
  • "My engagements at present," replied Willoughby, confusedly, "are of
  • such a nature--that--I dare not flatter myself"--
  • He stopt. Mrs. Dashwood was too much astonished to speak, and another
  • pause succeeded. This was broken by Willoughby, who said with a faint
  • smile, "It is folly to linger in this manner. I will not torment
  • myself any longer by remaining among friends whose society it is
  • impossible for me now to enjoy."
  • He then hastily took leave of them all and left the room. They saw him
  • step into his carriage, and in a minute it was out of sight.
  • Mrs. Dashwood felt too much for speech, and instantly quitted the
  • parlour to give way in solitude to the concern and alarm which this
  • sudden departure occasioned.
  • Elinor's uneasiness was at least equal to her mother's. She thought of
  • what had just passed with anxiety and distrust. Willoughby's behaviour
  • in taking leave of them, his embarrassment, and affectation of
  • cheerfulness, and, above all, his unwillingness to accept her mother's
  • invitation, a backwardness so unlike a lover, so unlike himself,
  • greatly disturbed her. One moment she feared that no serious design
  • had ever been formed on his side; and the next that some unfortunate
  • quarrel had taken place between him and her sister;--the distress in
  • which Marianne had quitted the room was such as a serious quarrel could
  • most reasonably account for, though when she considered what Marianne's
  • love for him was, a quarrel seemed almost impossible.
  • But whatever might be the particulars of their separation, her sister's
  • affliction was indubitable; and she thought with the tenderest
  • compassion of that violent sorrow which Marianne was in all probability
  • not merely giving way to as a relief, but feeding and encouraging as a
  • duty.
  • In about half an hour her mother returned, and though her eyes were
  • red, her countenance was not uncheerful.
  • "Our dear Willoughby is now some miles from Barton, Elinor," said she,
  • as she sat down to work, "and with how heavy a heart does he travel?"
  • "It is all very strange. So suddenly to be gone! It seems but the work
  • of a moment. And last night he was with us so happy, so cheerful, so
  • affectionate? And now, after only ten minutes notice--Gone too without
  • intending to return!--Something more than what he owned to us must have
  • happened. He did not speak, he did not behave like himself. YOU must
  • have seen the difference as well as I. What can it be? Can they have
  • quarrelled? Why else should he have shewn such unwillingness to accept
  • your invitation here?"--
  • "It was not inclination that he wanted, Elinor; I could plainly see
  • THAT. He had not the power of accepting it. I have thought it all
  • over I assure you, and I can perfectly account for every thing that at
  • first seemed strange to me as well as to you."
  • "Can you, indeed!"
  • "Yes. I have explained it to myself in the most satisfactory way;--but
  • you, Elinor, who love to doubt where you can--it will not satisfy YOU,
  • I know; but you shall not talk ME out of my trust in it. I am
  • persuaded that Mrs. Smith suspects his regard for Marianne, disapproves
  • of it, (perhaps because she has other views for him,) and on that
  • account is eager to get him away;--and that the business which she
  • sends him off to transact is invented as an excuse to dismiss him.
  • This is what I believe to have happened. He is, moreover, aware that
  • she DOES disapprove the connection, he dares not therefore at present
  • confess to her his engagement with Marianne, and he feels himself
  • obliged, from his dependent situation, to give into her schemes, and
  • absent himself from Devonshire for a while. You will tell me, I know,
  • that this may or may NOT have happened; but I will listen to no cavil,
  • unless you can point out any other method of understanding the affair
  • as satisfactory at this. And now, Elinor, what have you to say?"
  • "Nothing, for you have anticipated my answer."
  • "Then you would have told me, that it might or might not have happened.
  • Oh, Elinor, how incomprehensible are your feelings! You had rather
  • take evil upon credit than good. You had rather look out for misery
  • for Marianne, and guilt for poor Willoughby, than an apology for the
  • latter. You are resolved to think him blameable, because he took leave
  • of us with less affection than his usual behaviour has shewn. And is
  • no allowance to be made for inadvertence, or for spirits depressed by
  • recent disappointment? Are no probabilities to be accepted, merely
  • because they are not certainties? Is nothing due to the man whom we
  • have all such reason to love, and no reason in the world to think ill
  • of? To the possibility of motives unanswerable in themselves, though
  • unavoidably secret for a while? And, after all, what is it you suspect
  • him of?"
  • "I can hardly tell myself. But suspicion of something unpleasant is
  • the inevitable consequence of such an alteration as we just witnessed
  • in him. There is great truth, however, in what you have now urged of
  • the allowances which ought to be made for him, and it is my wish to be
  • candid in my judgment of every body. Willoughby may undoubtedly have
  • very sufficient reasons for his conduct, and I will hope that he has.
  • But it would have been more like Willoughby to acknowledge them at
  • once. Secrecy may be advisable; but still I cannot help wondering at
  • its being practiced by him."
  • "Do not blame him, however, for departing from his character, where the
  • deviation is necessary. But you really do admit the justice of what I
  • have said in his defence?--I am happy--and he is acquitted."
  • "Not entirely. It may be proper to conceal their engagement (if they
  • ARE engaged) from Mrs. Smith--and if that is the case, it must be
  • highly expedient for Willoughby to be but little in Devonshire at
  • present. But this is no excuse for their concealing it from us."
  • "Concealing it from us! my dear child, do you accuse Willoughby and
  • Marianne of concealment? This is strange indeed, when your eyes have
  • been reproaching them every day for incautiousness."
  • "I want no proof of their affection," said Elinor; "but of their
  • engagement I do."
  • "I am perfectly satisfied of both."
  • "Yet not a syllable has been said to you on the subject, by either of
  • them."
  • "I have not wanted syllables where actions have spoken so plainly. Has
  • not his behaviour to Marianne and to all of us, for at least the last
  • fortnight, declared that he loved and considered her as his future
  • wife, and that he felt for us the attachment of the nearest relation?
  • Have we not perfectly understood each other? Has not my consent been
  • daily asked by his looks, his manner, his attentive and affectionate
  • respect? My Elinor, is it possible to doubt their engagement? How
  • could such a thought occur to you? How is it to be supposed that
  • Willoughby, persuaded as he must be of your sister's love, should leave
  • her, and leave her perhaps for months, without telling her of his
  • affection;--that they should part without a mutual exchange of
  • confidence?"
  • "I confess," replied Elinor, "that every circumstance except ONE is in
  • favour of their engagement; but that ONE is the total silence of both
  • on the subject, and with me it almost outweighs every other."
  • "How strange this is! You must think wretchedly indeed of Willoughby,
  • if, after all that has openly passed between them, you can doubt the
  • nature of the terms on which they are together. Has he been acting a
  • part in his behaviour to your sister all this time? Do you suppose him
  • really indifferent to her?"
  • "No, I cannot think that. He must and does love her I am sure."
  • "But with a strange kind of tenderness, if he can leave her with such
  • indifference, such carelessness of the future, as you attribute to him."
  • "You must remember, my dear mother, that I have never considered this
  • matter as certain. I have had my doubts, I confess; but they are
  • fainter than they were, and they may soon be entirely done away. If we
  • find they correspond, every fear of mine will be removed."
  • "A mighty concession indeed! If you were to see them at the altar, you
  • would suppose they were going to be married. Ungracious girl! But I
  • require no such proof. Nothing in my opinion has ever passed to
  • justify doubt; no secrecy has been attempted; all has been uniformly
  • open and unreserved. You cannot doubt your sister's wishes. It must
  • be Willoughby therefore whom you suspect. But why? Is he not a man of
  • honour and feeling? Has there been any inconsistency on his side to
  • create alarm? can he be deceitful?"
  • "I hope not, I believe not," cried Elinor. "I love Willoughby,
  • sincerely love him; and suspicion of his integrity cannot be more
  • painful to yourself than to me. It has been involuntary, and I will
  • not encourage it. I was startled, I confess, by the alteration in his
  • manners this morning;--he did not speak like himself, and did not
  • return your kindness with any cordiality. But all this may be
  • explained by such a situation of his affairs as you have supposed. He
  • had just parted from my sister, had seen her leave him in the greatest
  • affliction; and if he felt obliged, from a fear of offending Mrs.
  • Smith, to resist the temptation of returning here soon, and yet aware
  • that by declining your invitation, by saying that he was going away for
  • some time, he should seem to act an ungenerous, a suspicious part by
  • our family, he might well be embarrassed and disturbed. In such a
  • case, a plain and open avowal of his difficulties would have been more
  • to his honour I think, as well as more consistent with his general
  • character;--but I will not raise objections against any one's conduct
  • on so illiberal a foundation, as a difference in judgment from myself,
  • or a deviation from what I may think right and consistent."
  • "You speak very properly. Willoughby certainly does not deserve to be
  • suspected. Though WE have not known him long, he is no stranger in
  • this part of the world; and who has ever spoken to his disadvantage?
  • Had he been in a situation to act independently and marry immediately,
  • it might have been odd that he should leave us without acknowledging
  • everything to me at once: but this is not the case. It is an
  • engagement in some respects not prosperously begun, for their marriage
  • must be at a very uncertain distance; and even secrecy, as far as it
  • can be observed, may now be very advisable."
  • They were interrupted by the entrance of Margaret; and Elinor was then
  • at liberty to think over the representations of her mother, to
  • acknowledge the probability of many, and hope for the justice of all.
  • They saw nothing of Marianne till dinner time, when she entered the
  • room and took her place at the table without saying a word. Her eyes
  • were red and swollen; and it seemed as if her tears were even then
  • restrained with difficulty. She avoided the looks of them all, could
  • neither eat nor speak, and after some time, on her mother's silently
  • pressing her hand with tender compassion, her small degree of fortitude
  • was quite overcome, she burst into tears and left the room.
  • This violent oppression of spirits continued the whole evening. She
  • was without any power, because she was without any desire of command
  • over herself. The slightest mention of anything relative to Willoughby
  • overpowered her in an instant; and though her family were most
  • anxiously attentive to her comfort, it was impossible for them, if they
  • spoke at all, to keep clear of every subject which her feelings
  • connected with him.
  • CHAPTER 16
  • Marianne would have thought herself very inexcusable had she been able
  • to sleep at all the first night after parting from Willoughby. She
  • would have been ashamed to look her family in the face the next
  • morning, had she not risen from her bed in more need of repose than
  • when she lay down in it. But the feelings which made such composure a
  • disgrace, left her in no danger of incurring it. She was awake the
  • whole night, and she wept the greatest part of it. She got up with a
  • headache, was unable to talk, and unwilling to take any nourishment;
  • giving pain every moment to her mother and sisters, and forbidding all
  • attempt at consolation from either. Her sensibility was potent enough!
  • When breakfast was over she walked out by herself, and wandered about
  • the village of Allenham, indulging the recollection of past enjoyment
  • and crying over the present reverse for the chief of the morning.
  • The evening passed off in the equal indulgence of feeling. She played
  • over every favourite song that she had been used to play to Willoughby,
  • every air in which their voices had been oftenest joined, and sat at
  • the instrument gazing on every line of music that he had written out
  • for her, till her heart was so heavy that no farther sadness could be
  • gained; and this nourishment of grief was every day applied. She spent
  • whole hours at the pianoforte alternately singing and crying; her voice
  • often totally suspended by her tears. In books too, as well as in
  • music, she courted the misery which a contrast between the past and
  • present was certain of giving. She read nothing but what they had been
  • used to read together.
  • Such violence of affliction indeed could not be supported for ever; it
  • sunk within a few days into a calmer melancholy; but these employments,
  • to which she daily recurred, her solitary walks and silent meditations,
  • still produced occasional effusions of sorrow as lively as ever.
  • No letter from Willoughby came; and none seemed expected by Marianne.
  • Her mother was surprised, and Elinor again became uneasy. But Mrs.
  • Dashwood could find explanations whenever she wanted them, which at
  • least satisfied herself.
  • "Remember, Elinor," said she, "how very often Sir John fetches our
  • letters himself from the post, and carries them to it. We have already
  • agreed that secrecy may be necessary, and we must acknowledge that it
  • could not be maintained if their correspondence were to pass through
  • Sir John's hands."
  • Elinor could not deny the truth of this, and she tried to find in it a
  • motive sufficient for their silence. But there was one method so
  • direct, so simple, and in her opinion so eligible of knowing the real
  • state of the affair, and of instantly removing all mystery, that she
  • could not help suggesting it to her mother.
  • "Why do you not ask Marianne at once," said she, "whether she is or she
  • is not engaged to Willoughby? From you, her mother, and so kind, so
  • indulgent a mother, the question could not give offence. It would be
  • the natural result of your affection for her. She used to be all
  • unreserve, and to you more especially."
  • "I would not ask such a question for the world. Supposing it possible
  • that they are not engaged, what distress would not such an enquiry
  • inflict! At any rate it would be most ungenerous. I should never
  • deserve her confidence again, after forcing from her a confession of
  • what is meant at present to be unacknowledged to any one. I know
  • Marianne's heart: I know that she dearly loves me, and that I shall not
  • be the last to whom the affair is made known, when circumstances make
  • the revealment of it eligible. I would not attempt to force the
  • confidence of any one; of a child much less; because a sense of duty
  • would prevent the denial which her wishes might direct."
  • Elinor thought this generosity overstrained, considering her sister's
  • youth, and urged the matter farther, but in vain; common sense, common
  • care, common prudence, were all sunk in Mrs. Dashwood's romantic
  • delicacy.
  • It was several days before Willoughby's name was mentioned before
  • Marianne by any of her family; Sir John and Mrs. Jennings, indeed, were
  • not so nice; their witticisms added pain to many a painful hour;--but
  • one evening, Mrs. Dashwood, accidentally taking up a volume of
  • Shakespeare, exclaimed,
  • "We have never finished Hamlet, Marianne; our dear Willoughby went away
  • before we could get through it. We will put it by, that when he comes
  • again...But it may be months, perhaps, before THAT happens."
  • "Months!" cried Marianne, with strong surprise. "No--nor many weeks."
  • Mrs. Dashwood was sorry for what she had said; but it gave Elinor
  • pleasure, as it produced a reply from Marianne so expressive of
  • confidence in Willoughby and knowledge of his intentions.
  • One morning, about a week after his leaving the country, Marianne was
  • prevailed on to join her sisters in their usual walk, instead of
  • wandering away by herself. Hitherto she had carefully avoided every
  • companion in her rambles. If her sisters intended to walk on the
  • downs, she directly stole away towards the lanes; if they talked of the
  • valley, she was as speedy in climbing the hills, and could never be
  • found when the others set off. But at length she was secured by the
  • exertions of Elinor, who greatly disapproved such continual seclusion.
  • They walked along the road through the valley, and chiefly in silence,
  • for Marianne's MIND could not be controlled, and Elinor, satisfied with
  • gaining one point, would not then attempt more. Beyond the entrance of
  • the valley, where the country, though still rich, was less wild and
  • more open, a long stretch of the road which they had travelled on first
  • coming to Barton, lay before them; and on reaching that point, they
  • stopped to look around them, and examine a prospect which formed the
  • distance of their view from the cottage, from a spot which they had
  • never happened to reach in any of their walks before.
  • Amongst the objects in the scene, they soon discovered an animated one;
  • it was a man on horseback riding towards them. In a few minutes they
  • could distinguish him to be a gentleman; and in a moment afterwards
  • Marianne rapturously exclaimed,
  • "It is he; it is indeed;--I know it is!"--and was hastening to meet
  • him, when Elinor cried out,
  • "Indeed, Marianne, I think you are mistaken. It is not Willoughby.
  • The person is not tall enough for him, and has not his air."
  • "He has, he has," cried Marianne, "I am sure he has. His air, his
  • coat, his horse. I knew how soon he would come."
  • She walked eagerly on as she spoke; and Elinor, to screen Marianne from
  • particularity, as she felt almost certain of its not being Willoughby,
  • quickened her pace and kept up with her. They were soon within thirty
  • yards of the gentleman. Marianne looked again; her heart sunk within
  • her; and abruptly turning round, she was hurrying back, when the voices
  • of both her sisters were raised to detain her; a third, almost as well
  • known as Willoughby's, joined them in begging her to stop, and she
  • turned round with surprise to see and welcome Edward Ferrars.
  • He was the only person in the world who could at that moment be
  • forgiven for not being Willoughby; the only one who could have gained a
  • smile from her; but she dispersed her tears to smile on HIM, and in her
  • sister's happiness forgot for a time her own disappointment.
  • He dismounted, and giving his horse to his servant, walked back with
  • them to Barton, whither he was purposely coming to visit them.
  • He was welcomed by them all with great cordiality, but especially by
  • Marianne, who showed more warmth of regard in her reception of him than
  • even Elinor herself. To Marianne, indeed, the meeting between Edward
  • and her sister was but a continuation of that unaccountable coldness
  • which she had often observed at Norland in their mutual behaviour. On
  • Edward's side, more particularly, there was a deficiency of all that a
  • lover ought to look and say on such an occasion. He was confused,
  • seemed scarcely sensible of pleasure in seeing them, looked neither
  • rapturous nor gay, said little but what was forced from him by
  • questions, and distinguished Elinor by no mark of affection. Marianne
  • saw and listened with increasing surprise. She began almost to feel a
  • dislike of Edward; and it ended, as every feeling must end with her, by
  • carrying back her thoughts to Willoughby, whose manners formed a
  • contrast sufficiently striking to those of his brother elect.
  • After a short silence which succeeded the first surprise and enquiries
  • of meeting, Marianne asked Edward if he came directly from London. No,
  • he had been in Devonshire a fortnight.
  • "A fortnight!" she repeated, surprised at his being so long in the same
  • county with Elinor without seeing her before.
  • He looked rather distressed as he added, that he had been staying with
  • some friends near Plymouth.
  • "Have you been lately in Sussex?" said Elinor.
  • "I was at Norland about a month ago."
  • "And how does dear, dear Norland look?" cried Marianne.
  • "Dear, dear Norland," said Elinor, "probably looks much as it always
  • does at this time of the year. The woods and walks thickly covered
  • with dead leaves."
  • "Oh," cried Marianne, "with what transporting sensation have I formerly
  • seen them fall! How have I delighted, as I walked, to see them driven
  • in showers about me by the wind! What feelings have they, the season,
  • the air altogether inspired! Now there is no one to regard them. They
  • are seen only as a nuisance, swept hastily off, and driven as much as
  • possible from the sight."
  • "It is not every one," said Elinor, "who has your passion for dead
  • leaves."
  • "No; my feelings are not often shared, not often understood. But
  • SOMETIMES they are."--As she said this, she sunk into a reverie for a
  • few moments;--but rousing herself again, "Now, Edward," said she,
  • calling his attention to the prospect, "here is Barton valley. Look up
  • to it, and be tranquil if you can. Look at those hills! Did you ever
  • see their equals? To the left is Barton park, amongst those woods and
  • plantations. You may see the end of the house. And there, beneath
  • that farthest hill, which rises with such grandeur, is our cottage."
  • "It is a beautiful country," he replied; "but these bottoms must be
  • dirty in winter."
  • "How can you think of dirt, with such objects before you?"
  • "Because," replied he, smiling, "among the rest of the objects before
  • me, I see a very dirty lane."
  • "How strange!" said Marianne to herself as she walked on.
  • "Have you an agreeable neighbourhood here? Are the Middletons pleasant
  • people?"
  • "No, not all," answered Marianne; "we could not be more unfortunately
  • situated."
  • "Marianne," cried her sister, "how can you say so? How can you be so
  • unjust? They are a very respectable family, Mr. Ferrars; and towards
  • us have behaved in the friendliest manner. Have you forgot, Marianne,
  • how many pleasant days we have owed to them?"
  • "No," said Marianne, in a low voice, "nor how many painful moments."
  • Elinor took no notice of this; and directing her attention to their
  • visitor, endeavoured to support something like discourse with him, by
  • talking of their present residence, its conveniences, &c. extorting
  • from him occasional questions and remarks. His coldness and reserve
  • mortified her severely; she was vexed and half angry; but resolving to
  • regulate her behaviour to him by the past rather than the present, she
  • avoided every appearance of resentment or displeasure, and treated him
  • as she thought he ought to be treated from the family connection.
  • CHAPTER 17
  • Mrs. Dashwood was surprised only for a moment at seeing him; for his
  • coming to Barton was, in her opinion, of all things the most natural.
  • Her joy and expression of regard long outlived her wonder. He received
  • the kindest welcome from her; and shyness, coldness, reserve could not
  • stand against such a reception. They had begun to fail him before he
  • entered the house, and they were quite overcome by the captivating
  • manners of Mrs. Dashwood. Indeed a man could not very well be in love
  • with either of her daughters, without extending the passion to her; and
  • Elinor had the satisfaction of seeing him soon become more like
  • himself. His affections seemed to reanimate towards them all, and his
  • interest in their welfare again became perceptible. He was not in
  • spirits, however; he praised their house, admired its prospect, was
  • attentive, and kind; but still he was not in spirits. The whole family
  • perceived it, and Mrs. Dashwood, attributing it to some want of
  • liberality in his mother, sat down to table indignant against all
  • selfish parents.
  • "What are Mrs. Ferrars's views for you at present, Edward?" said she,
  • when dinner was over and they had drawn round the fire; "are you still
  • to be a great orator in spite of yourself?"
  • "No. I hope my mother is now convinced that I have no more talents than
  • inclination for a public life!"
  • "But how is your fame to be established? for famous you must be to
  • satisfy all your family; and with no inclination for expense, no
  • affection for strangers, no profession, and no assurance, you may find
  • it a difficult matter."
  • "I shall not attempt it. I have no wish to be distinguished; and have
  • every reason to hope I never shall. Thank Heaven! I cannot be forced
  • into genius and eloquence."
  • "You have no ambition, I well know. Your wishes are all moderate."
  • "As moderate as those of the rest of the world, I believe. I wish as
  • well as every body else to be perfectly happy; but, like every body
  • else it must be in my own way. Greatness will not make me so."
  • "Strange that it would!" cried Marianne. "What have wealth or grandeur
  • to do with happiness?"
  • "Grandeur has but little," said Elinor, "but wealth has much to do with
  • it."
  • "Elinor, for shame!" said Marianne, "money can only give happiness
  • where there is nothing else to give it. Beyond a competence, it can
  • afford no real satisfaction, as far as mere self is concerned."
  • "Perhaps," said Elinor, smiling, "we may come to the same point. YOUR
  • competence and MY wealth are very much alike, I dare say; and without
  • them, as the world goes now, we shall both agree that every kind of
  • external comfort must be wanting. Your ideas are only more noble than
  • mine. Come, what is your competence?"
  • "About eighteen hundred or two thousand a year; not more than THAT."
  • Elinor laughed. "TWO thousand a year! ONE is my wealth! I guessed how
  • it would end."
  • "And yet two thousand a-year is a very moderate income," said Marianne.
  • "A family cannot well be maintained on a smaller. I am sure I am not
  • extravagant in my demands. A proper establishment of servants, a
  • carriage, perhaps two, and hunters, cannot be supported on less."
  • Elinor smiled again, to hear her sister describing so accurately their
  • future expenses at Combe Magna.
  • "Hunters!" repeated Edward--"but why must you have hunters? Every body
  • does not hunt."
  • Marianne coloured as she replied, "But most people do."
  • "I wish," said Margaret, striking out a novel thought, "that somebody
  • would give us all a large fortune apiece!"
  • "Oh that they would!" cried Marianne, her eyes sparkling with
  • animation, and her cheeks glowing with the delight of such imaginary
  • happiness.
  • "We are all unanimous in that wish, I suppose," said Elinor, "in spite
  • of the insufficiency of wealth."
  • "Oh dear!" cried Margaret, "how happy I should be! I wonder what I
  • should do with it!"
  • Marianne looked as if she had no doubt on that point.
  • "I should be puzzled to spend so large a fortune myself," said Mrs.
  • Dashwood, "if my children were all to be rich without my help."
  • "You must begin your improvements on this house," observed Elinor, "and
  • your difficulties will soon vanish."
  • "What magnificent orders would travel from this family to London," said
  • Edward, "in such an event! What a happy day for booksellers,
  • music-sellers, and print-shops! You, Miss Dashwood, would give a
  • general commission for every new print of merit to be sent you--and as
  • for Marianne, I know her greatness of soul, there would not be music
  • enough in London to content her. And books!--Thomson, Cowper,
  • Scott--she would buy them all over and over again: she would buy up
  • every copy, I believe, to prevent their falling into unworthy hands;
  • and she would have every book that tells her how to admire an old
  • twisted tree. Should not you, Marianne? Forgive me, if I am very
  • saucy. But I was willing to shew you that I had not forgot our old
  • disputes."
  • "I love to be reminded of the past, Edward--whether it be melancholy or
  • gay, I love to recall it--and you will never offend me by talking of
  • former times. You are very right in supposing how my money would be
  • spent--some of it, at least--my loose cash would certainly be employed
  • in improving my collection of music and books."
  • "And the bulk of your fortune would be laid out in annuities on the
  • authors or their heirs."
  • "No, Edward, I should have something else to do with it."
  • "Perhaps, then, you would bestow it as a reward on that person who
  • wrote the ablest defence of your favourite maxim, that no one can ever
  • be in love more than once in their life--your opinion on that point is
  • unchanged, I presume?"
  • "Undoubtedly. At my time of life opinions are tolerably fixed. It is
  • not likely that I should now see or hear any thing to change them."
  • "Marianne is as steadfast as ever, you see," said Elinor, "she is not
  • at all altered."
  • "She is only grown a little more grave than she was."
  • "Nay, Edward," said Marianne, "you need not reproach me. You are not
  • very gay yourself."
  • "Why should you think so!" replied he, with a sigh. "But gaiety never
  • was a part of MY character."
  • "Nor do I think it a part of Marianne's," said Elinor; "I should hardly
  • call her a lively girl--she is very earnest, very eager in all she
  • does--sometimes talks a great deal and always with animation--but she
  • is not often really merry."
  • "I believe you are right," he replied, "and yet I have always set her
  • down as a lively girl."
  • "I have frequently detected myself in such kind of mistakes," said
  • Elinor, "in a total misapprehension of character in some point or
  • other: fancying people so much more gay or grave, or ingenious or
  • stupid than they really are, and I can hardly tell why or in what the
  • deception originated. Sometimes one is guided by what they say of
  • themselves, and very frequently by what other people say of them,
  • without giving oneself time to deliberate and judge."
  • "But I thought it was right, Elinor," said Marianne, "to be guided
  • wholly by the opinion of other people. I thought our judgments were
  • given us merely to be subservient to those of neighbours. This has
  • always been your doctrine, I am sure."
  • "No, Marianne, never. My doctrine has never aimed at the subjection of
  • the understanding. All I have ever attempted to influence has been the
  • behaviour. You must not confound my meaning. I am guilty, I confess,
  • of having often wished you to treat our acquaintance in general with
  • greater attention; but when have I advised you to adopt their
  • sentiments or to conform to their judgment in serious matters?"
  • "You have not been able to bring your sister over to your plan of
  • general civility," said Edward to Elinor. "Do you gain no ground?"
  • "Quite the contrary," replied Elinor, looking expressively at Marianne.
  • "My judgment," he returned, "is all on your side of the question; but I
  • am afraid my practice is much more on your sister's. I never wish to
  • offend, but I am so foolishly shy, that I often seem negligent, when I
  • am only kept back by my natural awkwardness. I have frequently thought
  • that I must have been intended by nature to be fond of low company, I
  • am so little at my ease among strangers of gentility!"
  • "Marianne has not shyness to excuse any inattention of hers," said
  • Elinor.
  • "She knows her own worth too well for false shame," replied Edward.
  • "Shyness is only the effect of a sense of inferiority in some way or
  • other. If I could persuade myself that my manners were perfectly easy
  • and graceful, I should not be shy."
  • "But you would still be reserved," said Marianne, "and that is worse."
  • Edward started--"Reserved! Am I reserved, Marianne?"
  • "Yes, very."
  • "I do not understand you," replied he, colouring. "Reserved!--how, in
  • what manner? What am I to tell you? What can you suppose?"
  • Elinor looked surprised at his emotion; but trying to laugh off the
  • subject, she said to him, "Do not you know my sister well enough to
  • understand what she means? Do not you know she calls every one
  • reserved who does not talk as fast, and admire what she admires as
  • rapturously as herself?"
  • Edward made no answer. His gravity and thoughtfulness returned on him
  • in their fullest extent--and he sat for some time silent and dull.
  • CHAPTER 18
  • Elinor saw, with great uneasiness the low spirits of her friend. His
  • visit afforded her but a very partial satisfaction, while his own
  • enjoyment in it appeared so imperfect. It was evident that he was
  • unhappy; she wished it were equally evident that he still distinguished
  • her by the same affection which once she had felt no doubt of
  • inspiring; but hitherto the continuance of his preference seemed very
  • uncertain; and the reservedness of his manner towards her contradicted
  • one moment what a more animated look had intimated the preceding one.
  • He joined her and Marianne in the breakfast-room the next morning
  • before the others were down; and Marianne, who was always eager to
  • promote their happiness as far as she could, soon left them to
  • themselves. But before she was half way upstairs she heard the parlour
  • door open, and, turning round, was astonished to see Edward himself
  • come out.
  • "I am going into the village to see my horses," said he, "as you are
  • not yet ready for breakfast; I shall be back again presently."
  • ***
  • Edward returned to them with fresh admiration of the surrounding
  • country; in his walk to the village, he had seen many parts of the
  • valley to advantage; and the village itself, in a much higher situation
  • than the cottage, afforded a general view of the whole, which had
  • exceedingly pleased him. This was a subject which ensured Marianne's
  • attention, and she was beginning to describe her own admiration of
  • these scenes, and to question him more minutely on the objects that had
  • particularly struck him, when Edward interrupted her by saying, "You
  • must not enquire too far, Marianne--remember I have no knowledge in the
  • picturesque, and I shall offend you by my ignorance and want of taste
  • if we come to particulars. I shall call hills steep, which ought to be
  • bold; surfaces strange and uncouth, which ought to be irregular and
  • rugged; and distant objects out of sight, which ought only to be
  • indistinct through the soft medium of a hazy atmosphere. You must be
  • satisfied with such admiration as I can honestly give. I call it a
  • very fine country--the hills are steep, the woods seem full of fine
  • timber, and the valley looks comfortable and snug--with rich meadows
  • and several neat farm houses scattered here and there. It exactly
  • answers my idea of a fine country, because it unites beauty with
  • utility--and I dare say it is a picturesque one too, because you admire
  • it; I can easily believe it to be full of rocks and promontories, grey
  • moss and brush wood, but these are all lost on me. I know nothing of
  • the picturesque."
  • "I am afraid it is but too true," said Marianne; "but why should you
  • boast of it?"
  • "I suspect," said Elinor, "that to avoid one kind of affectation,
  • Edward here falls into another. Because he believes many people
  • pretend to more admiration of the beauties of nature than they really
  • feel, and is disgusted with such pretensions, he affects greater
  • indifference and less discrimination in viewing them himself than he
  • possesses. He is fastidious and will have an affectation of his own."
  • "It is very true," said Marianne, "that admiration of landscape scenery
  • is become a mere jargon. Every body pretends to feel and tries to
  • describe with the taste and elegance of him who first defined what
  • picturesque beauty was. I detest jargon of every kind, and sometimes I
  • have kept my feelings to myself, because I could find no language to
  • describe them in but what was worn and hackneyed out of all sense and
  • meaning."
  • "I am convinced," said Edward, "that you really feel all the delight in
  • a fine prospect which you profess to feel. But, in return, your sister
  • must allow me to feel no more than I profess. I like a fine prospect,
  • but not on picturesque principles. I do not like crooked, twisted,
  • blasted trees. I admire them much more if they are tall, straight, and
  • flourishing. I do not like ruined, tattered cottages. I am not fond
  • of nettles or thistles, or heath blossoms. I have more pleasure in a
  • snug farm-house than a watch-tower--and a troop of tidy, happy villages
  • please me better than the finest banditti in the world."
  • Marianne looked with amazement at Edward, with compassion at her
  • sister. Elinor only laughed.
  • The subject was continued no farther; and Marianne remained
  • thoughtfully silent, till a new object suddenly engaged her attention.
  • She was sitting by Edward, and in taking his tea from Mrs. Dashwood,
  • his hand passed so directly before her, as to make a ring, with a plait
  • of hair in the centre, very conspicuous on one of his fingers.
  • "I never saw you wear a ring before, Edward," she cried. "Is that
  • Fanny's hair? I remember her promising to give you some. But I should
  • have thought her hair had been darker."
  • Marianne spoke inconsiderately what she really felt--but when she saw
  • how much she had pained Edward, her own vexation at her want of thought
  • could not be surpassed by his. He coloured very deeply, and giving a
  • momentary glance at Elinor, replied, "Yes; it is my sister's hair. The
  • setting always casts a different shade on it, you know."
  • Elinor had met his eye, and looked conscious likewise. That the hair
  • was her own, she instantaneously felt as well satisfied as Marianne;
  • the only difference in their conclusions was, that what Marianne
  • considered as a free gift from her sister, Elinor was conscious must
  • have been procured by some theft or contrivance unknown to herself.
  • She was not in a humour, however, to regard it as an affront, and
  • affecting to take no notice of what passed, by instantly talking of
  • something else, she internally resolved henceforward to catch every
  • opportunity of eyeing the hair and of satisfying herself, beyond all
  • doubt, that it was exactly the shade of her own.
  • Edward's embarrassment lasted some time, and it ended in an absence of
  • mind still more settled. He was particularly grave the whole morning.
  • Marianne severely censured herself for what she had said; but her own
  • forgiveness might have been more speedy, had she known how little
  • offence it had given her sister.
  • Before the middle of the day, they were visited by Sir John and Mrs.
  • Jennings, who, having heard of the arrival of a gentleman at the
  • cottage, came to take a survey of the guest. With the assistance of
  • his mother-in-law, Sir John was not long in discovering that the name
  • of Ferrars began with an F. and this prepared a future mine of raillery
  • against the devoted Elinor, which nothing but the newness of their
  • acquaintance with Edward could have prevented from being immediately
  • sprung. But, as it was, she only learned, from some very significant
  • looks, how far their penetration, founded on Margaret's instructions,
  • extended.
  • Sir John never came to the Dashwoods without either inviting them to
  • dine at the park the next day, or to drink tea with them that evening.
  • On the present occasion, for the better entertainment of their visitor,
  • towards whose amusement he felt himself bound to contribute, he wished
  • to engage them for both.
  • "You MUST drink tea with us to night," said he, "for we shall be quite
  • alone--and tomorrow you must absolutely dine with us, for we shall be a
  • large party."
  • Mrs. Jennings enforced the necessity. "And who knows but you may raise
  • a dance," said she. "And that will tempt YOU, Miss Marianne."
  • "A dance!" cried Marianne. "Impossible! Who is to dance?"
  • "Who! why yourselves, and the Careys, and Whitakers to be sure.--What!
  • you thought nobody could dance because a certain person that shall be
  • nameless is gone!"
  • "I wish with all my soul," cried Sir John, "that Willoughby were among
  • us again."
  • This, and Marianne's blushing, gave new suspicions to Edward. "And who
  • is Willoughby?" said he, in a low voice, to Miss Dashwood, by whom he
  • was sitting.
  • She gave him a brief reply. Marianne's countenance was more
  • communicative. Edward saw enough to comprehend, not only the meaning
  • of others, but such of Marianne's expressions as had puzzled him
  • before; and when their visitors left them, he went immediately round
  • her, and said, in a whisper, "I have been guessing. Shall I tell you
  • my guess?"
  • "What do you mean?"
  • "Shall I tell you."
  • "Certainly."
  • "Well then; I guess that Mr. Willoughby hunts."
  • Marianne was surprised and confused, yet she could not help smiling at
  • the quiet archness of his manner, and after a moment's silence, said,
  • "Oh, Edward! How can you?--But the time will come I hope...I am sure
  • you will like him."
  • "I do not doubt it," replied he, rather astonished at her earnestness
  • and warmth; for had he not imagined it to be a joke for the good of her
  • acquaintance in general, founded only on a something or a nothing
  • between Mr. Willoughby and herself, he would not have ventured to
  • mention it.
  • CHAPTER 19
  • Edward remained a week at the cottage; he was earnestly pressed by Mrs.
  • Dashwood to stay longer; but, as if he were bent only on
  • self-mortification, he seemed resolved to be gone when his enjoyment
  • among his friends was at the height. His spirits, during the last two
  • or three days, though still very unequal, were greatly improved--he
  • grew more and more partial to the house and environs--never spoke of
  • going away without a sigh--declared his time to be wholly
  • disengaged--even doubted to what place he should go when he left
  • them--but still, go he must. Never had any week passed so quickly--he
  • could hardly believe it to be gone. He said so repeatedly; other
  • things he said too, which marked the turn of his feelings and gave the
  • lie to his actions. He had no pleasure at Norland; he detested being
  • in town; but either to Norland or London, he must go. He valued their
  • kindness beyond any thing, and his greatest happiness was in being with
  • them. Yet, he must leave them at the end of a week, in spite of their
  • wishes and his own, and without any restraint on his time.
  • Elinor placed all that was astonishing in this way of acting to his
  • mother's account; and it was happy for her that he had a mother whose
  • character was so imperfectly known to her, as to be the general excuse
  • for every thing strange on the part of her son. Disappointed, however,
  • and vexed as she was, and sometimes displeased with his uncertain
  • behaviour to herself, she was very well disposed on the whole to regard
  • his actions with all the candid allowances and generous qualifications,
  • which had been rather more painfully extorted from her, for
  • Willoughby's service, by her mother. His want of spirits, of openness,
  • and of consistency, were most usually attributed to his want of
  • independence, and his better knowledge of Mrs. Ferrars's disposition
  • and designs. The shortness of his visit, the steadiness of his purpose
  • in leaving them, originated in the same fettered inclination, the same
  • inevitable necessity of temporizing with his mother. The old
  • well-established grievance of duty against will, parent against child,
  • was the cause of all. She would have been glad to know when these
  • difficulties were to cease, this opposition was to yield,--when Mrs.
  • Ferrars would be reformed, and her son be at liberty to be happy. But
  • from such vain wishes she was forced to turn for comfort to the renewal
  • of her confidence in Edward's affection, to the remembrance of every
  • mark of regard in look or word which fell from him while at Barton, and
  • above all to that flattering proof of it which he constantly wore round
  • his finger.
  • "I think, Edward," said Mrs. Dashwood, as they were at breakfast the
  • last morning, "you would be a happier man if you had any profession to
  • engage your time and give an interest to your plans and actions. Some
  • inconvenience to your friends, indeed, might result from it--you would
  • not be able to give them so much of your time. But (with a smile) you
  • would be materially benefited in one particular at least--you would
  • know where to go when you left them."
  • "I do assure you," he replied, "that I have long thought on this point,
  • as you think now. It has been, and is, and probably will always be a
  • heavy misfortune to me, that I have had no necessary business to engage
  • me, no profession to give me employment, or afford me any thing like
  • independence. But unfortunately my own nicety, and the nicety of my
  • friends, have made me what I am, an idle, helpless being. We never
  • could agree in our choice of a profession. I always preferred the
  • church, as I still do. But that was not smart enough for my family.
  • They recommended the army. That was a great deal too smart for me.
  • The law was allowed to be genteel enough; many young men, who had
  • chambers in the Temple, made a very good appearance in the first
  • circles, and drove about town in very knowing gigs. But I had no
  • inclination for the law, even in this less abstruse study of it, which
  • my family approved. As for the navy, it had fashion on its side, but I
  • was too old when the subject was first started to enter it--and, at
  • length, as there was no necessity for my having any profession at all,
  • as I might be as dashing and expensive without a red coat on my back as
  • with one, idleness was pronounced on the whole to be most advantageous
  • and honourable, and a young man of eighteen is not in general so
  • earnestly bent on being busy as to resist the solicitations of his
  • friends to do nothing. I was therefore entered at Oxford and have been
  • properly idle ever since."
  • "The consequence of which, I suppose, will be," said Mrs. Dashwood,
  • "since leisure has not promoted your own happiness, that your sons will
  • be brought up to as many pursuits, employments, professions, and trades
  • as Columella's."
  • "They will be brought up," said he, in a serious accent, "to be as
  • unlike myself as is possible. In feeling, in action, in condition, in
  • every thing."
  • "Come, come; this is all an effusion of immediate want of spirits,
  • Edward. You are in a melancholy humour, and fancy that any one unlike
  • yourself must be happy. But remember that the pain of parting from
  • friends will be felt by every body at times, whatever be their
  • education or state. Know your own happiness. You want nothing but
  • patience--or give it a more fascinating name, call it hope. Your
  • mother will secure to you, in time, that independence you are so
  • anxious for; it is her duty, and it will, it must ere long become her
  • happiness to prevent your whole youth from being wasted in discontent.
  • How much may not a few months do?"
  • "I think," replied Edward, "that I may defy many months to produce any
  • good to me."
  • This desponding turn of mind, though it could not be communicated to
  • Mrs. Dashwood, gave additional pain to them all in the parting, which
  • shortly took place, and left an uncomfortable impression on Elinor's
  • feelings especially, which required some trouble and time to subdue.
  • But as it was her determination to subdue it, and to prevent herself
  • from appearing to suffer more than what all her family suffered on his
  • going away, she did not adopt the method so judiciously employed by
  • Marianne, on a similar occasion, to augment and fix her sorrow, by
  • seeking silence, solitude and idleness. Their means were as different
  • as their objects, and equally suited to the advancement of each.
  • Elinor sat down to her drawing-table as soon as he was out of the
  • house, busily employed herself the whole day, neither sought nor
  • avoided the mention of his name, appeared to interest herself almost as
  • much as ever in the general concerns of the family, and if, by this
  • conduct, she did not lessen her own grief, it was at least prevented
  • from unnecessary increase, and her mother and sisters were spared much
  • solicitude on her account.
  • Such behaviour as this, so exactly the reverse of her own, appeared no
  • more meritorious to Marianne, than her own had seemed faulty to her.
  • The business of self-command she settled very easily;--with strong
  • affections it was impossible, with calm ones it could have no merit.
  • That her sister's affections WERE calm, she dared not deny, though she
  • blushed to acknowledge it; and of the strength of her own, she gave a
  • very striking proof, by still loving and respecting that sister, in
  • spite of this mortifying conviction.
  • Without shutting herself up from her family, or leaving the house in
  • determined solitude to avoid them, or lying awake the whole night to
  • indulge meditation, Elinor found every day afforded her leisure enough
  • to think of Edward, and of Edward's behaviour, in every possible
  • variety which the different state of her spirits at different times
  • could produce,--with tenderness, pity, approbation, censure, and doubt.
  • There were moments in abundance, when, if not by the absence of her
  • mother and sisters, at least by the nature of their employments,
  • conversation was forbidden among them, and every effect of solitude was
  • produced. Her mind was inevitably at liberty; her thoughts could not
  • be chained elsewhere; and the past and the future, on a subject so
  • interesting, must be before her, must force her attention, and engross
  • her memory, her reflection, and her fancy.
  • From a reverie of this kind, as she sat at her drawing-table, she was
  • roused one morning, soon after Edward's leaving them, by the arrival of
  • company. She happened to be quite alone. The closing of the little
  • gate, at the entrance of the green court in front of the house, drew
  • her eyes to the window, and she saw a large party walking up to the
  • door. Amongst them were Sir John and Lady Middleton and Mrs. Jennings,
  • but there were two others, a gentleman and lady, who were quite unknown
  • to her. She was sitting near the window, and as soon as Sir John
  • perceived her, he left the rest of the party to the ceremony of
  • knocking at the door, and stepping across the turf, obliged her to open
  • the casement to speak to him, though the space was so short between the
  • door and the window, as to make it hardly possible to speak at one
  • without being heard at the other.
  • "Well," said he, "we have brought you some strangers. How do you like
  • them?"
  • "Hush! they will hear you."
  • "Never mind if they do. It is only the Palmers. Charlotte is very
  • pretty, I can tell you. You may see her if you look this way."
  • As Elinor was certain of seeing her in a couple of minutes, without
  • taking that liberty, she begged to be excused.
  • "Where is Marianne? Has she run away because we are come? I see her
  • instrument is open."
  • "She is walking, I believe."
  • They were now joined by Mrs. Jennings, who had not patience enough to
  • wait till the door was opened before she told HER story. She came
  • hallooing to the window, "How do you do, my dear? How does Mrs.
  • Dashwood do? And where are your sisters? What! all alone! you will be
  • glad of a little company to sit with you. I have brought my other son
  • and daughter to see you. Only think of their coming so suddenly! I
  • thought I heard a carriage last night, while we were drinking our tea,
  • but it never entered my head that it could be them. I thought of
  • nothing but whether it might not be Colonel Brandon come back again; so
  • I said to Sir John, I do think I hear a carriage; perhaps it is Colonel
  • Brandon come back again"--
  • Elinor was obliged to turn from her, in the middle of her story, to
  • receive the rest of the party; Lady Middleton introduced the two
  • strangers; Mrs. Dashwood and Margaret came down stairs at the same
  • time, and they all sat down to look at one another, while Mrs. Jennings
  • continued her story as she walked through the passage into the parlour,
  • attended by Sir John.
  • Mrs. Palmer was several years younger than Lady Middleton, and totally
  • unlike her in every respect. She was short and plump, had a very
  • pretty face, and the finest expression of good humour in it that could
  • possibly be. Her manners were by no means so elegant as her sister's,
  • but they were much more prepossessing. She came in with a smile,
  • smiled all the time of her visit, except when she laughed, and smiled
  • when she went away. Her husband was a grave looking young man of five
  • or six and twenty, with an air of more fashion and sense than his wife,
  • but of less willingness to please or be pleased. He entered the room
  • with a look of self-consequence, slightly bowed to the ladies, without
  • speaking a word, and, after briefly surveying them and their
  • apartments, took up a newspaper from the table, and continued to read
  • it as long as he staid.
  • Mrs. Palmer, on the contrary, who was strongly endowed by nature with a
  • turn for being uniformly civil and happy, was hardly seated before her
  • admiration of the parlour and every thing in it burst forth.
  • "Well! what a delightful room this is! I never saw anything so
  • charming! Only think, Mama, how it is improved since I was here last!
  • I always thought it such a sweet place, ma'am! (turning to Mrs.
  • Dashwood) but you have made it so charming! Only look, sister, how
  • delightful every thing is! How I should like such a house for myself!
  • Should not you, Mr. Palmer?"
  • Mr. Palmer made her no answer, and did not even raise his eyes from the
  • newspaper.
  • "Mr. Palmer does not hear me," said she, laughing; "he never does
  • sometimes. It is so ridiculous!"
  • This was quite a new idea to Mrs. Dashwood; she had never been used to
  • find wit in the inattention of any one, and could not help looking with
  • surprise at them both.
  • Mrs. Jennings, in the meantime, talked on as loud as she could, and
  • continued her account of their surprise, the evening before, on seeing
  • their friends, without ceasing till every thing was told. Mrs. Palmer
  • laughed heartily at the recollection of their astonishment, and every
  • body agreed, two or three times over, that it had been quite an
  • agreeable surprise.
  • "You may believe how glad we all were to see them," added Mrs.
  • Jennings, leaning forward towards Elinor, and speaking in a low voice
  • as if she meant to be heard by no one else, though they were seated on
  • different sides of the room; "but, however, I can't help wishing they
  • had not travelled quite so fast, nor made such a long journey of it,
  • for they came all round by London upon account of some business, for
  • you know (nodding significantly and pointing to her daughter) it was
  • wrong in her situation. I wanted her to stay at home and rest this
  • morning, but she would come with us; she longed so much to see you all!"
  • Mrs. Palmer laughed, and said it would not do her any harm.
  • "She expects to be confined in February," continued Mrs. Jennings.
  • Lady Middleton could no longer endure such a conversation, and
  • therefore exerted herself to ask Mr. Palmer if there was any news in
  • the paper.
  • "No, none at all," he replied, and read on.
  • "Here comes Marianne," cried Sir John. "Now, Palmer, you shall see a
  • monstrous pretty girl."
  • He immediately went into the passage, opened the front door, and
  • ushered her in himself. Mrs. Jennings asked her, as soon as she
  • appeared, if she had not been to Allenham; and Mrs. Palmer laughed so
  • heartily at the question, as to show she understood it. Mr. Palmer
  • looked up on her entering the room, stared at her some minutes, and
  • then returned to his newspaper. Mrs. Palmer's eye was now caught by
  • the drawings which hung round the room. She got up to examine them.
  • "Oh! dear, how beautiful these are! Well! how delightful! Do but
  • look, mama, how sweet! I declare they are quite charming; I could look
  • at them for ever." And then sitting down again, she very soon forgot
  • that there were any such things in the room.
  • When Lady Middleton rose to go away, Mr. Palmer rose also, laid down
  • the newspaper, stretched himself and looked at them all around.
  • "My love, have you been asleep?" said his wife, laughing.
  • He made her no answer; and only observed, after again examining the
  • room, that it was very low pitched, and that the ceiling was crooked.
  • He then made his bow, and departed with the rest.
  • Sir John had been very urgent with them all to spend the next day at
  • the park. Mrs. Dashwood, who did not chuse to dine with them oftener
  • than they dined at the cottage, absolutely refused on her own account;
  • her daughters might do as they pleased. But they had no curiosity to
  • see how Mr. and Mrs. Palmer ate their dinner, and no expectation of
  • pleasure from them in any other way. They attempted, therefore,
  • likewise, to excuse themselves; the weather was uncertain, and not
  • likely to be good. But Sir John would not be satisfied--the carriage
  • should be sent for them and they must come. Lady Middleton too, though
  • she did not press their mother, pressed them. Mrs. Jennings and Mrs.
  • Palmer joined their entreaties, all seemed equally anxious to avoid a
  • family party; and the young ladies were obliged to yield.
  • "Why should they ask us?" said Marianne, as soon as they were gone.
  • "The rent of this cottage is said to be low; but we have it on very
  • hard terms, if we are to dine at the park whenever any one is staying
  • either with them, or with us."
  • "They mean no less to be civil and kind to us now," said Elinor, "by
  • these frequent invitations, than by those which we received from them a
  • few weeks ago. The alteration is not in them, if their parties are
  • grown tedious and dull. We must look for the change elsewhere."
  • CHAPTER 20
  • As the Miss Dashwoods entered the drawing-room of the park the next
  • day, at one door, Mrs. Palmer came running in at the other, looking as
  • good humoured and merry as before. She took them all most
  • affectionately by the hand, and expressed great delight in seeing them
  • again.
  • "I am so glad to see you!" said she, seating herself between Elinor and
  • Marianne, "for it is so bad a day I was afraid you might not come,
  • which would be a shocking thing, as we go away again tomorrow. We must
  • go, for the Westons come to us next week you know. It was quite a
  • sudden thing our coming at all, and I knew nothing of it till the
  • carriage was coming to the door, and then Mr. Palmer asked me if I
  • would go with him to Barton. He is so droll! He never tells me any
  • thing! I am so sorry we cannot stay longer; however we shall meet again
  • in town very soon, I hope."
  • They were obliged to put an end to such an expectation.
  • "Not go to town!" cried Mrs. Palmer, with a laugh, "I shall be quite
  • disappointed if you do not. I could get the nicest house in the world for
  • you, next door to ours, in Hanover-square. You must come, indeed. I
  • am sure I shall be very happy to chaperon you at any time till I am
  • confined, if Mrs. Dashwood should not like to go into public."
  • They thanked her; but were obliged to resist all her entreaties.
  • "Oh, my love," cried Mrs. Palmer to her husband, who just then entered
  • the room--"you must help me to persuade the Miss Dashwoods to go to
  • town this winter."
  • Her love made no answer; and after slightly bowing to the ladies, began
  • complaining of the weather.
  • "How horrid all this is!" said he. "Such weather makes every thing and
  • every body disgusting. Dullness is as much produced within doors as
  • without, by rain. It makes one detest all one's acquaintance. What
  • the devil does Sir John mean by not having a billiard room in his
  • house? How few people know what comfort is! Sir John is as stupid as
  • the weather."
  • The rest of the company soon dropt in.
  • "I am afraid, Miss Marianne," said Sir John, "you have not been able to
  • take your usual walk to Allenham today."
  • Marianne looked very grave and said nothing.
  • "Oh, don't be so sly before us," said Mrs. Palmer; "for we know all
  • about it, I assure you; and I admire your taste very much, for I think
  • he is extremely handsome. We do not live a great way from him in the
  • country, you know. Not above ten miles, I dare say."
  • "Much nearer thirty," said her husband.
  • "Ah, well! there is not much difference. I never was at his house; but
  • they say it is a sweet pretty place."
  • "As vile a spot as I ever saw in my life," said Mr. Palmer.
  • Marianne remained perfectly silent, though her countenance betrayed her
  • interest in what was said.
  • "Is it very ugly?" continued Mrs. Palmer--"then it must be some other
  • place that is so pretty I suppose."
  • When they were seated in the dining room, Sir John observed with regret
  • that they were only eight all together.
  • "My dear," said he to his lady, "it is very provoking that we should be
  • so few. Why did not you ask the Gilberts to come to us today?"
  • "Did not I tell you, Sir John, when you spoke to me about it before,
  • that it could not be done? They dined with us last."
  • "You and I, Sir John," said Mrs. Jennings, "should not stand upon such
  • ceremony."
  • "Then you would be very ill-bred," cried Mr. Palmer.
  • "My love you contradict every body," said his wife with her usual
  • laugh. "Do you know that you are quite rude?"
  • "I did not know I contradicted any body in calling your mother
  • ill-bred."
  • "Ay, you may abuse me as you please," said the good-natured old lady,
  • "you have taken Charlotte off my hands, and cannot give her back again.
  • So there I have the whip hand of you."
  • Charlotte laughed heartily to think that her husband could not get rid
  • of her; and exultingly said, she did not care how cross he was to her,
  • as they must live together. It was impossible for any one to be more
  • thoroughly good-natured, or more determined to be happy than Mrs.
  • Palmer. The studied indifference, insolence, and discontent of her
  • husband gave her no pain; and when he scolded or abused her, she was
  • highly diverted.
  • "Mr. Palmer is so droll!" said she, in a whisper, to Elinor. "He is
  • always out of humour."
  • Elinor was not inclined, after a little observation, to give him credit
  • for being so genuinely and unaffectedly ill-natured or ill-bred as he
  • wished to appear. His temper might perhaps be a little soured by
  • finding, like many others of his sex, that through some unaccountable
  • bias in favour of beauty, he was the husband of a very silly
  • woman,--but she knew that this kind of blunder was too common for any
  • sensible man to be lastingly hurt by it.-- It was rather a wish of
  • distinction, she believed, which produced his contemptuous treatment of
  • every body, and his general abuse of every thing before him. It was
  • the desire of appearing superior to other people. The motive was too
  • common to be wondered at; but the means, however they might succeed by
  • establishing his superiority in ill-breeding, were not likely to attach
  • any one to him except his wife.
  • "Oh, my dear Miss Dashwood," said Mrs. Palmer soon afterwards, "I have
  • got such a favour to ask of you and your sister. Will you come and
  • spend some time at Cleveland this Christmas? Now, pray do,--and come
  • while the Westons are with us. You cannot think how happy I shall be!
  • It will be quite delightful!--My love," applying to her husband, "don't
  • you long to have the Miss Dashwoods come to Cleveland?"
  • "Certainly," he replied, with a sneer--"I came into Devonshire with no
  • other view."
  • "There now,"--said his lady, "you see Mr. Palmer expects you; so you
  • cannot refuse to come."
  • They both eagerly and resolutely declined her invitation.
  • "But indeed you must and shall come. I am sure you will like it of all
  • things. The Westons will be with us, and it will be quite delightful.
  • You cannot think what a sweet place Cleveland is; and we are so gay
  • now, for Mr. Palmer is always going about the country canvassing
  • against the election; and so many people came to dine with us that I
  • never saw before, it is quite charming! But, poor fellow! it is very
  • fatiguing to him! for he is forced to make every body like him."
  • Elinor could hardly keep her countenance as she assented to the
  • hardship of such an obligation.
  • "How charming it will be," said Charlotte, "when he is in
  • Parliament!--won't it? How I shall laugh! It will be so ridiculous to
  • see all his letters directed to him with an M.P.--But do you know, he
  • says, he will never frank for me? He declares he won't. Don't you,
  • Mr. Palmer?"
  • Mr. Palmer took no notice of her.
  • "He cannot bear writing, you know," she continued--"he says it is quite
  • shocking."
  • "No," said he, "I never said any thing so irrational. Don't palm all
  • your abuses of languages upon me."
  • "There now; you see how droll he is. This is always the way with him!
  • Sometimes he won't speak to me for half a day together, and then he
  • comes out with something so droll--all about any thing in the world."
  • She surprised Elinor very much as they returned into the drawing-room,
  • by asking her whether she did not like Mr. Palmer excessively.
  • "Certainly," said Elinor; "he seems very agreeable."
  • "Well--I am so glad you do. I thought you would, he is so pleasant;
  • and Mr. Palmer is excessively pleased with you and your sisters I can
  • tell you, and you can't think how disappointed he will be if you don't
  • come to Cleveland.--I can't imagine why you should object to it."
  • Elinor was again obliged to decline her invitation; and by changing the
  • subject, put a stop to her entreaties. She thought it probable that as
  • they lived in the same county, Mrs. Palmer might be able to give some
  • more particular account of Willoughby's general character, than could
  • be gathered from the Middletons' partial acquaintance with him; and she
  • was eager to gain from any one, such a confirmation of his merits as
  • might remove the possibility of fear from Marianne. She began by
  • inquiring if they saw much of Mr. Willoughby at Cleveland, and whether
  • they were intimately acquainted with him.
  • "Oh dear, yes; I know him extremely well," replied Mrs. Palmer;--"Not
  • that I ever spoke to him, indeed; but I have seen him for ever in town.
  • Somehow or other I never happened to be staying at Barton while he was
  • at Allenham. Mama saw him here once before;--but I was with my uncle
  • at Weymouth. However, I dare say we should have seen a great deal of
  • him in Somersetshire, if it had not happened very unluckily that we
  • should never have been in the country together. He is very little at
  • Combe, I believe; but if he were ever so much there, I do not think Mr.
  • Palmer would visit him, for he is in the opposition, you know, and
  • besides it is such a way off. I know why you inquire about him, very
  • well; your sister is to marry him. I am monstrous glad of it, for then
  • I shall have her for a neighbour you know."
  • "Upon my word," replied Elinor, "you know much more of the matter than
  • I do, if you have any reason to expect such a match."
  • "Don't pretend to deny it, because you know it is what every body talks
  • of. I assure you I heard of it in my way through town."
  • "My dear Mrs. Palmer!"
  • "Upon my honour I did.--I met Colonel Brandon Monday morning in
  • Bond-street, just before we left town, and he told me of it directly."
  • "You surprise me very much. Colonel Brandon tell you of it! Surely
  • you must be mistaken. To give such intelligence to a person who could
  • not be interested in it, even if it were true, is not what I should
  • expect Colonel Brandon to do."
  • "But I do assure you it was so, for all that, and I will tell you how
  • it happened. When we met him, he turned back and walked with us; and
  • so we began talking of my brother and sister, and one thing and
  • another, and I said to him, 'So, Colonel, there is a new family come to
  • Barton cottage, I hear, and mama sends me word they are very pretty,
  • and that one of them is going to be married to Mr. Willoughby of Combe
  • Magna. Is it true, pray? for of course you must know, as you have been
  • in Devonshire so lately.'"
  • "And what did the Colonel say?"
  • "Oh--he did not say much; but he looked as if he knew it to be true, so
  • from that moment I set it down as certain. It will be quite
  • delightful, I declare! When is it to take place?"
  • "Mr. Brandon was very well I hope?"
  • "Oh! yes, quite well; and so full of your praises, he did nothing but
  • say fine things of you."
  • "I am flattered by his commendation. He seems an excellent man; and I
  • think him uncommonly pleasing."
  • "So do I.--He is such a charming man, that it is quite a pity he should
  • be so grave and so dull. Mama says HE was in love with your sister
  • too.-- I assure you it was a great compliment if he was, for he hardly
  • ever falls in love with any body."
  • "Is Mr. Willoughby much known in your part of Somersetshire?" said
  • Elinor.
  • "Oh! yes, extremely well; that is, I do not believe many people are
  • acquainted with him, because Combe Magna is so far off; but they all
  • think him extremely agreeable I assure you. Nobody is more liked than
  • Mr. Willoughby wherever he goes, and so you may tell your sister. She
  • is a monstrous lucky girl to get him, upon my honour; not but that he
  • is much more lucky in getting her, because she is so very handsome and
  • agreeable, that nothing can be good enough for her. However, I don't
  • think her hardly at all handsomer than you, I assure you; for I think
  • you both excessively pretty, and so does Mr. Palmer too I am sure,
  • though we could not get him to own it last night."
  • Mrs. Palmer's information respecting Willoughby was not very material;
  • but any testimony in his favour, however small, was pleasing to her.
  • "I am so glad we are got acquainted at last," continued
  • Charlotte.--"And now I hope we shall always be great friends. You
  • can't think how much I longed to see you! It is so delightful that you
  • should live at the cottage! Nothing can be like it, to be sure! And I
  • am so glad your sister is going to be well married! I hope you will be
  • a great deal at Combe Magna. It is a sweet place, by all accounts."
  • "You have been long acquainted with Colonel Brandon, have not you?"
  • "Yes, a great while; ever since my sister married.-- He was a
  • particular friend of Sir John's. I believe," she added in a low voice,
  • "he would have been very glad to have had me, if he could. Sir John
  • and Lady Middleton wished it very much. But mama did not think the
  • match good enough for me, otherwise Sir John would have mentioned it to
  • the Colonel, and we should have been married immediately."
  • "Did not Colonel Brandon know of Sir John's proposal to your mother
  • before it was made? Had he never owned his affection to yourself?"
  • "Oh, no; but if mama had not objected to it, I dare say he would have
  • liked it of all things. He had not seen me then above twice, for it
  • was before I left school. However, I am much happier as I am. Mr.
  • Palmer is the kind of man I like."
  • CHAPTER 21
  • The Palmers returned to Cleveland the next day, and the two families at
  • Barton were again left to entertain each other. But this did not last
  • long; Elinor had hardly got their last visitors out of her head, had
  • hardly done wondering at Charlotte's being so happy without a cause, at
  • Mr. Palmer's acting so simply, with good abilities, and at the strange
  • unsuitableness which often existed between husband and wife, before Sir
  • John's and Mrs. Jennings's active zeal in the cause of society,
  • procured her some other new acquaintance to see and observe.
  • In a morning's excursion to Exeter, they had met with two young ladies,
  • whom Mrs. Jennings had the satisfaction of discovering to be her
  • relations, and this was enough for Sir John to invite them directly to
  • the park, as soon as their present engagements at Exeter were over.
  • Their engagements at Exeter instantly gave way before such an
  • invitation, and Lady Middleton was thrown into no little alarm on the
  • return of Sir John, by hearing that she was very soon to receive a
  • visit from two girls whom she had never seen in her life, and of whose
  • elegance,--whose tolerable gentility even, she could have no proof; for
  • the assurances of her husband and mother on that subject went for
  • nothing at all. Their being her relations too made it so much the
  • worse; and Mrs. Jennings's attempts at consolation were therefore
  • unfortunately founded, when she advised her daughter not to care about
  • their being so fashionable; because they were all cousins and must put
  • up with one another. As it was impossible, however, now to prevent
  • their coming, Lady Middleton resigned herself to the idea of it, with
  • all the philosophy of a well-bred woman, contenting herself with merely
  • giving her husband a gentle reprimand on the subject five or six times
  • every day.
  • The young ladies arrived: their appearance was by no means ungenteel or
  • unfashionable. Their dress was very smart, their manners very civil,
  • they were delighted with the house, and in raptures with the furniture,
  • and they happened to be so doatingly fond of children that Lady
  • Middleton's good opinion was engaged in their favour before they had
  • been an hour at the Park. She declared them to be very agreeable girls
  • indeed, which for her ladyship was enthusiastic admiration. Sir John's
  • confidence in his own judgment rose with this animated praise, and he
  • set off directly for the cottage to tell the Miss Dashwoods of the Miss
  • Steeles' arrival, and to assure them of their being the sweetest girls
  • in the world. From such commendation as this, however, there was not
  • much to be learned; Elinor well knew that the sweetest girls in the
  • world were to be met with in every part of England, under every
  • possible variation of form, face, temper and understanding. Sir John
  • wanted the whole family to walk to the Park directly and look at his
  • guests. Benevolent, philanthropic man! It was painful to him even to
  • keep a third cousin to himself.
  • "Do come now," said he--"pray come--you must come--I declare you shall
  • come--You can't think how you will like them. Lucy is monstrous
  • pretty, and so good humoured and agreeable! The children are all
  • hanging about her already, as if she was an old acquaintance. And they
  • both long to see you of all things, for they have heard at Exeter that
  • you are the most beautiful creatures in the world; and I have told them
  • it is all very true, and a great deal more. You will be delighted with
  • them I am sure. They have brought the whole coach full of playthings
  • for the children. How can you be so cross as not to come? Why they
  • are your cousins, you know, after a fashion. YOU are my cousins, and
  • they are my wife's, so you must be related."
  • But Sir John could not prevail. He could only obtain a promise of
  • their calling at the Park within a day or two, and then left them in
  • amazement at their indifference, to walk home and boast anew of their
  • attractions to the Miss Steeles, as he had been already boasting of the
  • Miss Steeles to them.
  • When their promised visit to the Park and consequent introduction to
  • these young ladies took place, they found in the appearance of the
  • eldest, who was nearly thirty, with a very plain and not a sensible
  • face, nothing to admire; but in the other, who was not more than two or
  • three and twenty, they acknowledged considerable beauty; her features
  • were pretty, and she had a sharp quick eye, and a smartness of air,
  • which though it did not give actual elegance or grace, gave distinction
  • to her person.-- Their manners were particularly civil, and Elinor soon
  • allowed them credit for some kind of sense, when she saw with what
  • constant and judicious attention they were making themselves agreeable
  • to Lady Middleton. With her children they were in continual raptures,
  • extolling their beauty, courting their notice, and humouring their
  • whims; and such of their time as could be spared from the importunate
  • demands which this politeness made on it, was spent in admiration of
  • whatever her ladyship was doing, if she happened to be doing any thing,
  • or in taking patterns of some elegant new dress, in which her
  • appearance the day before had thrown them into unceasing delight.
  • Fortunately for those who pay their court through such foibles, a fond
  • mother, though, in pursuit of praise for her children, the most
  • rapacious of human beings, is likewise the most credulous; her demands
  • are exorbitant; but she will swallow any thing; and the excessive
  • affection and endurance of the Miss Steeles towards her offspring were
  • viewed therefore by Lady Middleton without the smallest surprise or
  • distrust. She saw with maternal complacency all the impertinent
  • encroachments and mischievous tricks to which her cousins submitted.
  • She saw their sashes untied, their hair pulled about their ears, their
  • work-bags searched, and their knives and scissors stolen away, and felt
  • no doubt of its being a reciprocal enjoyment. It suggested no other
  • surprise than that Elinor and Marianne should sit so composedly by,
  • without claiming a share in what was passing.
  • "John is in such spirits today!" said she, on his taking Miss Steeles's
  • pocket handkerchief, and throwing it out of window--"He is full of
  • monkey tricks."
  • And soon afterwards, on the second boy's violently pinching one of the
  • same lady's fingers, she fondly observed, "How playful William is!"
  • "And here is my sweet little Annamaria," she added, tenderly caressing
  • a little girl of three years old, who had not made a noise for the last
  • two minutes; "And she is always so gentle and quiet--Never was there
  • such a quiet little thing!"
  • But unfortunately in bestowing these embraces, a pin in her ladyship's
  • head dress slightly scratching the child's neck, produced from this
  • pattern of gentleness such violent screams, as could hardly be outdone
  • by any creature professedly noisy. The mother's consternation was
  • excessive; but it could not surpass the alarm of the Miss Steeles, and
  • every thing was done by all three, in so critical an emergency, which
  • affection could suggest as likely to assuage the agonies of the little
  • sufferer. She was seated in her mother's lap, covered with kisses, her
  • wound bathed with lavender-water, by one of the Miss Steeles, who was
  • on her knees to attend her, and her mouth stuffed with sugar plums by
  • the other. With such a reward for her tears, the child was too wise to
  • cease crying. She still screamed and sobbed lustily, kicked her two
  • brothers for offering to touch her, and all their united soothings were
  • ineffectual till Lady Middleton luckily remembering that in a scene of
  • similar distress last week, some apricot marmalade had been
  • successfully applied for a bruised temple, the same remedy was eagerly
  • proposed for this unfortunate scratch, and a slight intermission of
  • screams in the young lady on hearing it, gave them reason to hope that
  • it would not be rejected.-- She was carried out of the room therefore
  • in her mother's arms, in quest of this medicine, and as the two boys
  • chose to follow, though earnestly entreated by their mother to stay
  • behind, the four young ladies were left in a quietness which the room
  • had not known for many hours.
  • "Poor little creatures!" said Miss Steele, as soon as they were gone.
  • "It might have been a very sad accident."
  • "Yet I hardly know how," cried Marianne, "unless it had been under
  • totally different circumstances. But this is the usual way of
  • heightening alarm, where there is nothing to be alarmed at in reality."
  • "What a sweet woman Lady Middleton is!" said Lucy Steele.
  • Marianne was silent; it was impossible for her to say what she did not
  • feel, however trivial the occasion; and upon Elinor therefore the whole
  • task of telling lies when politeness required it, always fell. She did
  • her best when thus called on, by speaking of Lady Middleton with more
  • warmth than she felt, though with far less than Miss Lucy.
  • "And Sir John too," cried the elder sister, "what a charming man he is!"
  • Here too, Miss Dashwood's commendation, being only simple and just,
  • came in without any eclat. She merely observed that he was perfectly
  • good humoured and friendly.
  • "And what a charming little family they have! I never saw such fine
  • children in my life.--I declare I quite doat upon them already, and
  • indeed I am always distractedly fond of children."
  • "I should guess so," said Elinor, with a smile, "from what I have
  • witnessed this morning."
  • "I have a notion," said Lucy, "you think the little Middletons rather
  • too much indulged; perhaps they may be the outside of enough; but it is
  • so natural in Lady Middleton; and for my part, I love to see children
  • full of life and spirits; I cannot bear them if they are tame and
  • quiet."
  • "I confess," replied Elinor, "that while I am at Barton Park, I never
  • think of tame and quiet children with any abhorrence."
  • A short pause succeeded this speech, which was first broken by Miss
  • Steele, who seemed very much disposed for conversation, and who now
  • said rather abruptly, "And how do you like Devonshire, Miss Dashwood?
  • I suppose you were very sorry to leave Sussex."
  • In some surprise at the familiarity of this question, or at least of
  • the manner in which it was spoken, Elinor replied that she was.
  • "Norland is a prodigious beautiful place, is not it?" added Miss Steele.
  • "We have heard Sir John admire it excessively," said Lucy, who seemed
  • to think some apology necessary for the freedom of her sister.
  • "I think every one MUST admire it," replied Elinor, "who ever saw the
  • place; though it is not to be supposed that any one can estimate its
  • beauties as we do."
  • "And had you a great many smart beaux there? I suppose you have not so
  • many in this part of the world; for my part, I think they are a vast
  • addition always."
  • "But why should you think," said Lucy, looking ashamed of her sister,
  • "that there are not as many genteel young men in Devonshire as Sussex?"
  • "Nay, my dear, I'm sure I don't pretend to say that there an't. I'm
  • sure there's a vast many smart beaux in Exeter; but you know, how could
  • I tell what smart beaux there might be about Norland; and I was only
  • afraid the Miss Dashwoods might find it dull at Barton, if they had not
  • so many as they used to have. But perhaps you young ladies may not
  • care about the beaux, and had as lief be without them as with them.
  • For my part, I think they are vastly agreeable, provided they dress
  • smart and behave civil. But I can't bear to see them dirty and nasty.
  • Now there's Mr. Rose at Exeter, a prodigious smart young man, quite a
  • beau, clerk to Mr. Simpson, you know, and yet if you do but meet him of
  • a morning, he is not fit to be seen.-- I suppose your brother was quite
  • a beau, Miss Dashwood, before he married, as he was so rich?"
  • "Upon my word," replied Elinor, "I cannot tell you, for I do not
  • perfectly comprehend the meaning of the word. But this I can say, that
  • if he ever was a beau before he married, he is one still for there is
  • not the smallest alteration in him."
  • "Oh! dear! one never thinks of married men's being beaux--they have
  • something else to do."
  • "Lord! Anne," cried her sister, "you can talk of nothing but
  • beaux;--you will make Miss Dashwood believe you think of nothing else."
  • And then to turn the discourse, she began admiring the house and the
  • furniture.
  • This specimen of the Miss Steeles was enough. The vulgar freedom and
  • folly of the eldest left her no recommendation, and as Elinor was not
  • blinded by the beauty, or the shrewd look of the youngest, to her want
  • of real elegance and artlessness, she left the house without any wish
  • of knowing them better.
  • Not so the Miss Steeles.--They came from Exeter, well provided with
  • admiration for the use of Sir John Middleton, his family, and all his
  • relations, and no niggardly proportion was now dealt out to his fair
  • cousins, whom they declared to be the most beautiful, elegant,
  • accomplished, and agreeable girls they had ever beheld, and with whom
  • they were particularly anxious to be better acquainted.-- And to be
  • better acquainted therefore, Elinor soon found was their inevitable
  • lot, for as Sir John was entirely on the side of the Miss Steeles,
  • their party would be too strong for opposition, and that kind of
  • intimacy must be submitted to, which consists of sitting an hour or two
  • together in the same room almost every day. Sir John could do no more;
  • but he did not know that any more was required: to be together was, in
  • his opinion, to be intimate, and while his continual schemes for their
  • meeting were effectual, he had not a doubt of their being established
  • friends.
  • To do him justice, he did every thing in his power to promote their
  • unreserve, by making the Miss Steeles acquainted with whatever he knew
  • or supposed of his cousins' situations in the most delicate
  • particulars,--and Elinor had not seen them more than twice, before the
  • eldest of them wished her joy on her sister's having been so lucky as
  • to make a conquest of a very smart beau since she came to Barton.
  • "'Twill be a fine thing to have her married so young to be sure," said
  • she, "and I hear he is quite a beau, and prodigious handsome. And I
  • hope you may have as good luck yourself soon,--but perhaps you may have
  • a friend in the corner already."
  • Elinor could not suppose that Sir John would be more nice in
  • proclaiming his suspicions of her regard for Edward, than he had been
  • with respect to Marianne; indeed it was rather his favourite joke of
  • the two, as being somewhat newer and more conjectural; and since
  • Edward's visit, they had never dined together without his drinking to
  • her best affections with so much significancy and so many nods and
  • winks, as to excite general attention. The letter F--had been likewise
  • invariably brought forward, and found productive of such countless
  • jokes, that its character as the wittiest letter in the alphabet had
  • been long established with Elinor.
  • The Miss Steeles, as she expected, had now all the benefit of these
  • jokes, and in the eldest of them they raised a curiosity to know the
  • name of the gentleman alluded to, which, though often impertinently
  • expressed, was perfectly of a piece with her general inquisitiveness
  • into the concerns of their family. But Sir John did not sport long
  • with the curiosity which he delighted to raise, for he had at least as
  • much pleasure in telling the name, as Miss Steele had in hearing it.
  • "His name is Ferrars," said he, in a very audible whisper; "but pray do
  • not tell it, for it's a great secret."
  • "Ferrars!" repeated Miss Steele; "Mr. Ferrars is the happy man, is he?
  • What! your sister-in-law's brother, Miss Dashwood? a very agreeable
  • young man to be sure; I know him very well."
  • "How can you say so, Anne?" cried Lucy, who generally made an amendment
  • to all her sister's assertions. "Though we have seen him once or twice
  • at my uncle's, it is rather too much to pretend to know him very well."
  • Elinor heard all this with attention and surprise. "And who was this
  • uncle? Where did he live? How came they acquainted?" She wished very
  • much to have the subject continued, though she did not chuse to join in
  • it herself; but nothing more of it was said, and for the first time in
  • her life, she thought Mrs. Jennings deficient either in curiosity after
  • petty information, or in a disposition to communicate it. The manner
  • in which Miss Steele had spoken of Edward, increased her curiosity; for
  • it struck her as being rather ill-natured, and suggested the suspicion
  • of that lady's knowing, or fancying herself to know something to his
  • disadvantage.--But her curiosity was unavailing, for no farther notice
  • was taken of Mr. Ferrars's name by Miss Steele when alluded to, or even
  • openly mentioned by Sir John.
  • CHAPTER 22
  • Marianne, who had never much toleration for any thing like
  • impertinence, vulgarity, inferiority of parts, or even difference of
  • taste from herself, was at this time particularly ill-disposed, from
  • the state of her spirits, to be pleased with the Miss Steeles, or to
  • encourage their advances; and to the invariable coldness of her
  • behaviour towards them, which checked every endeavour at intimacy on
  • their side, Elinor principally attributed that preference of herself
  • which soon became evident in the manners of both, but especially of
  • Lucy, who missed no opportunity of engaging her in conversation, or of
  • striving to improve their acquaintance by an easy and frank
  • communication of her sentiments.
  • Lucy was naturally clever; her remarks were often just and amusing; and
  • as a companion for half an hour Elinor frequently found her agreeable;
  • but her powers had received no aid from education: she was ignorant and
  • illiterate; and her deficiency of all mental improvement, her want of
  • information in the most common particulars, could not be concealed from
  • Miss Dashwood, in spite of her constant endeavour to appear to
  • advantage. Elinor saw, and pitied her for, the neglect of abilities
  • which education might have rendered so respectable; but she saw, with
  • less tenderness of feeling, the thorough want of delicacy, of
  • rectitude, and integrity of mind, which her attentions, her
  • assiduities, her flatteries at the Park betrayed; and she could have no
  • lasting satisfaction in the company of a person who joined insincerity
  • with ignorance; whose want of instruction prevented their meeting in
  • conversation on terms of equality, and whose conduct toward others made
  • every shew of attention and deference towards herself perfectly
  • valueless.
  • "You will think my question an odd one, I dare say," said Lucy to her
  • one day, as they were walking together from the park to the
  • cottage--"but pray, are you personally acquainted with your
  • sister-in-law's mother, Mrs. Ferrars?"
  • Elinor DID think the question a very odd one, and her countenance
  • expressed it, as she answered that she had never seen Mrs. Ferrars.
  • "Indeed!" replied Lucy; "I wonder at that, for I thought you must have
  • seen her at Norland sometimes. Then, perhaps, you cannot tell me what
  • sort of a woman she is?"
  • "No," returned Elinor, cautious of giving her real opinion of Edward's
  • mother, and not very desirous of satisfying what seemed impertinent
  • curiosity-- "I know nothing of her."
  • "I am sure you think me very strange, for enquiring about her in such a
  • way," said Lucy, eyeing Elinor attentively as she spoke; "but perhaps
  • there may be reasons--I wish I might venture; but however I hope you
  • will do me the justice of believing that I do not mean to be
  • impertinent."
  • Elinor made her a civil reply, and they walked on for a few minutes in
  • silence. It was broken by Lucy, who renewed the subject again by
  • saying, with some hesitation,
  • "I cannot bear to have you think me impertinently curious. I am sure I
  • would rather do any thing in the world than be thought so by a person
  • whose good opinion is so well worth having as yours. And I am sure I
  • should not have the smallest fear of trusting YOU; indeed, I should be
  • very glad of your advice how to manage in such an uncomfortable
  • situation as I am; but, however, there is no occasion to trouble YOU.
  • I am sorry you do not happen to know Mrs. Ferrars."
  • "I am sorry I do NOT," said Elinor, in great astonishment, "if it could
  • be of any use to YOU to know my opinion of her. But really I never
  • understood that you were at all connected with that family, and
  • therefore I am a little surprised, I confess, at so serious an inquiry
  • into her character."
  • "I dare say you are, and I am sure I do not at all wonder at it. But
  • if I dared tell you all, you would not be so much surprised. Mrs.
  • Ferrars is certainly nothing to me at present--but the time MAY
  • come--how soon it will come must depend upon herself--when we may be
  • very intimately connected."
  • She looked down as she said this, amiably bashful, with only one side
  • glance at her companion to observe its effect on her.
  • "Good heavens!" cried Elinor, "what do you mean? Are you acquainted
  • with Mr. Robert Ferrars? Can you be?" And she did not feel much
  • delighted with the idea of such a sister-in-law.
  • "No," replied Lucy, "not to Mr. ROBERT Ferrars--I never saw him in my
  • life; but," fixing her eyes upon Elinor, "to his eldest brother."
  • What felt Elinor at that moment? Astonishment, that would have been as
  • painful as it was strong, had not an immediate disbelief of the
  • assertion attended it. She turned towards Lucy in silent amazement,
  • unable to divine the reason or object of such a declaration; and though
  • her complexion varied, she stood firm in incredulity, and felt in no
  • danger of an hysterical fit, or a swoon.
  • "You may well be surprised," continued Lucy; "for to be sure you could
  • have had no idea of it before; for I dare say he never dropped the
  • smallest hint of it to you or any of your family; because it was always
  • meant to be a great secret, and I am sure has been faithfully kept so
  • by me to this hour. Not a soul of all my relations know of it but
  • Anne, and I never should have mentioned it to you, if I had not felt
  • the greatest dependence in the world upon your secrecy; and I really
  • thought my behaviour in asking so many questions about Mrs. Ferrars
  • must seem so odd, that it ought to be explained. And I do not think
  • Mr. Ferrars can be displeased, when he knows I have trusted you,
  • because I know he has the highest opinion in the world of all your
  • family, and looks upon yourself and the other Miss Dashwoods quite as
  • his own sisters."--She paused.
  • Elinor for a few moments remained silent. Her astonishment at what she
  • heard was at first too great for words; but at length forcing herself
  • to speak, and to speak cautiously, she said, with calmness of manner,
  • which tolerably well concealed her surprise and solicitude-- "May I ask
  • if your engagement is of long standing?"
  • "We have been engaged these four years."
  • "Four years!"
  • "Yes."
  • Elinor, though greatly shocked, still felt unable to believe it.
  • "I did not know," said she, "that you were even acquainted till the
  • other day."
  • "Our acquaintance, however, is of many years date. He was under my
  • uncle's care, you know, a considerable while."
  • "Your uncle!"
  • "Yes; Mr. Pratt. Did you never hear him talk of Mr. Pratt?"
  • "I think I have," replied Elinor, with an exertion of spirits, which
  • increased with her increase of emotion.
  • "He was four years with my uncle, who lives at Longstaple, near
  • Plymouth. It was there our acquaintance begun, for my sister and me
  • was often staying with my uncle, and it was there our engagement was
  • formed, though not till a year after he had quitted as a pupil; but he
  • was almost always with us afterwards. I was very unwilling to enter
  • into it, as you may imagine, without the knowledge and approbation of
  • his mother; but I was too young, and loved him too well, to be so
  • prudent as I ought to have been.-- Though you do not know him so well
  • as me, Miss Dashwood, you must have seen enough of him to be sensible
  • he is very capable of making a woman sincerely attached to him."
  • "Certainly," answered Elinor, without knowing what she said; but after
  • a moment's reflection, she added, with revived security of Edward's
  • honour and love, and her companion's falsehood--"Engaged to Mr. Edward
  • Ferrars!--I confess myself so totally surprised at what you tell me,
  • that really--I beg your pardon; but surely there must be some mistake
  • of person or name. We cannot mean the same Mr. Ferrars."
  • "We can mean no other," cried Lucy, smiling. "Mr. Edward Ferrars, the
  • eldest son of Mrs. Ferrars, of Park Street, and brother of your
  • sister-in-law, Mrs. John Dashwood, is the person I mean; you must allow
  • that I am not likely to be deceived as to the name of the man on who
  • all my happiness depends."
  • "It is strange," replied Elinor, in a most painful perplexity, "that I
  • should never have heard him even mention your name."
  • "No; considering our situation, it was not strange. Our first care has
  • been to keep the matter secret.-- You knew nothing of me, or my family,
  • and, therefore, there could be no OCCASION for ever mentioning my name
  • to you; and, as he was always particularly afraid of his sister's
  • suspecting any thing, THAT was reason enough for his not mentioning it."
  • She was silent.--Elinor's security sunk; but her self-command did not
  • sink with it.
  • "Four years you have been engaged," said she with a firm voice.
  • "Yes; and heaven knows how much longer we may have to wait. Poor
  • Edward! It puts him quite out of heart." Then taking a small miniature
  • from her pocket, she added, "To prevent the possibility of mistake, be
  • so good as to look at this face. It does not do him justice, to be
  • sure, but yet I think you cannot be deceived as to the person it was
  • drew for.--I have had it above these three years."
  • She put it into her hands as she spoke; and when Elinor saw the
  • painting, whatever other doubts her fear of a too hasty decision, or
  • her wish of detecting falsehood might suffer to linger in her mind, she
  • could have none of its being Edward's face. She returned it almost
  • instantly, acknowledging the likeness.
  • "I have never been able," continued Lucy, "to give him my picture in
  • return, which I am very much vexed at, for he has been always so
  • anxious to get it! But I am determined to set for it the very first
  • opportunity."
  • "You are quite in the right," replied Elinor calmly. They then
  • proceeded a few paces in silence. Lucy spoke first.
  • "I am sure," said she, "I have no doubt in the world of your faithfully
  • keeping this secret, because you must know of what importance it is to
  • us, not to have it reach his mother; for she would never approve of it,
  • I dare say. I shall have no fortune, and I fancy she is an exceeding
  • proud woman."
  • "I certainly did not seek your confidence," said Elinor; "but you do me
  • no more than justice in imagining that I may be depended on. Your
  • secret is safe with me; but pardon me if I express some surprise at so
  • unnecessary a communication. You must at least have felt that my being
  • acquainted with it could not add to its safety."
  • As she said this, she looked earnestly at Lucy, hoping to discover
  • something in her countenance; perhaps the falsehood of the greatest
  • part of what she had been saying; but Lucy's countenance suffered no
  • change.
  • "I was afraid you would think I was taking a great liberty with you,"
  • said she, "in telling you all this. I have not known you long to be
  • sure, personally at least, but I have known you and all your family by
  • description a great while; and as soon as I saw you, I felt almost as
  • if you was an old acquaintance. Besides in the present case, I really
  • thought some explanation was due to you after my making such particular
  • inquiries about Edward's mother; and I am so unfortunate, that I have
  • not a creature whose advice I can ask. Anne is the only person that
  • knows of it, and she has no judgment at all; indeed, she does me a
  • great deal more harm than good, for I am in constant fear of her
  • betraying me. She does not know how to hold her tongue, as you must
  • perceive, and I am sure I was in the greatest fright in the world
  • t'other day, when Edward's name was mentioned by Sir John, lest she
  • should out with it all. You can't think how much I go through in my
  • mind from it altogether. I only wonder that I am alive after what I
  • have suffered for Edward's sake these last four years. Every thing in
  • such suspense and uncertainty; and seeing him so seldom--we can hardly
  • meet above twice a-year. I am sure I wonder my heart is not quite
  • broke."
  • Here she took out her handkerchief; but Elinor did not feel very
  • compassionate.
  • "Sometimes." continued Lucy, after wiping her eyes, "I think whether it
  • would not be better for us both to break off the matter entirely." As
  • she said this, she looked directly at her companion. "But then at
  • other times I have not resolution enough for it.-- I cannot bear the
  • thoughts of making him so miserable, as I know the very mention of such
  • a thing would do. And on my own account too--so dear as he is to me--I
  • don't think I could be equal to it. What would you advise me to do in
  • such a case, Miss Dashwood? What would you do yourself?"
  • "Pardon me," replied Elinor, startled by the question; "but I can give
  • you no advice under such circumstances. Your own judgment must direct
  • you."
  • "To be sure," continued Lucy, after a few minutes silence on both
  • sides, "his mother must provide for him sometime or other; but poor
  • Edward is so cast down by it! Did you not think him dreadful
  • low-spirited when he was at Barton? He was so miserable when he left
  • us at Longstaple, to go to you, that I was afraid you would think him
  • quite ill."
  • "Did he come from your uncle's, then, when he visited us?"
  • "Oh, yes; he had been staying a fortnight with us. Did you think he
  • came directly from town?"
  • "No," replied Elinor, most feelingly sensible of every fresh
  • circumstance in favour of Lucy's veracity; "I remember he told us, that
  • he had been staying a fortnight with some friends near Plymouth." She
  • remembered too, her own surprise at the time, at his mentioning nothing
  • farther of those friends, at his total silence with respect even to
  • their names.
  • "Did not you think him sadly out of spirits?" repeated Lucy.
  • "We did, indeed, particularly so when he first arrived."
  • "I begged him to exert himself for fear you should suspect what was the
  • matter; but it made him so melancholy, not being able to stay more than
  • a fortnight with us, and seeing me so much affected.-- Poor fellow!--I
  • am afraid it is just the same with him now; for he writes in wretched
  • spirits. I heard from him just before I left Exeter;" taking a letter
  • from her pocket and carelessly showing the direction to Elinor. "You
  • know his hand, I dare say, a charming one it is; but that is not
  • written so well as usual.--He was tired, I dare say, for he had just
  • filled the sheet to me as full as possible."
  • Elinor saw that it WAS his hand, and she could doubt no longer. This
  • picture, she had allowed herself to believe, might have been
  • accidentally obtained; it might not have been Edward's gift; but a
  • correspondence between them by letter, could subsist only under a
  • positive engagement, could be authorised by nothing else; for a few
  • moments, she was almost overcome--her heart sunk within her, and she
  • could hardly stand; but exertion was indispensably necessary; and she
  • struggled so resolutely against the oppression of her feelings, that
  • her success was speedy, and for the time complete.
  • "Writing to each other," said Lucy, returning the letter into her
  • pocket, "is the only comfort we have in such long separations. Yes, I
  • have one other comfort in his picture, but poor Edward has not even
  • THAT. If he had but my picture, he says he should be easy. I gave him
  • a lock of my hair set in a ring when he was at Longstaple last, and
  • that was some comfort to him, he said, but not equal to a picture.
  • Perhaps you might notice the ring when you saw him?"
  • "I did," said Elinor, with a composure of voice, under which was
  • concealed an emotion and distress beyond any thing she had ever felt
  • before. She was mortified, shocked, confounded.
  • Fortunately for her, they had now reached the cottage, and the
  • conversation could be continued no farther. After sitting with them a
  • few minutes, the Miss Steeles returned to the Park, and Elinor was then
  • at liberty to think and be wretched.
  • [At this point in the first and second editions, Volume 1 ends.]
  • CHAPTER 23
  • However small Elinor's general dependence on Lucy's veracity might be,
  • it was impossible for her on serious reflection to suspect it in the
  • present case, where no temptation could be answerable to the folly of
  • inventing a falsehood of such a description. What Lucy had asserted to
  • be true, therefore, Elinor could not, dared not longer doubt; supported
  • as it was too on every side by such probabilities and proofs, and
  • contradicted by nothing but her own wishes. Their opportunity of
  • acquaintance in the house of Mr. Pratt was a foundation for the rest,
  • at once indisputable and alarming; and Edward's visit near Plymouth,
  • his melancholy state of mind, his dissatisfaction at his own prospects,
  • his uncertain behaviour towards herself, the intimate knowledge of the
  • Miss Steeles as to Norland and their family connections, which had
  • often surprised her, the picture, the letter, the ring, formed
  • altogether such a body of evidence, as overcame every fear of
  • condemning him unfairly, and established as a fact, which no partiality
  • could set aside, his ill-treatment of herself.--Her resentment of such
  • behaviour, her indignation at having been its dupe, for a short time
  • made her feel only for herself; but other ideas, other considerations,
  • soon arose. Had Edward been intentionally deceiving her? Had he
  • feigned a regard for her which he did not feel? Was his engagement to
  • Lucy an engagement of the heart? No; whatever it might once have been,
  • she could not believe it such at present. His affection was all her
  • own. She could not be deceived in that. Her mother, sisters, Fanny,
  • all had been conscious of his regard for her at Norland; it was not an
  • illusion of her own vanity. He certainly loved her. What a softener
  • of the heart was this persuasion! How much could it not tempt her to
  • forgive! He had been blamable, highly blamable, in remaining at
  • Norland after he first felt her influence over him to be more than it
  • ought to be. In that, he could not be defended; but if he had injured
  • her, how much more had he injured himself; if her case were pitiable,
  • his was hopeless. His imprudence had made her miserable for a while;
  • but it seemed to have deprived himself of all chance of ever being
  • otherwise. She might in time regain tranquillity; but HE, what had he
  • to look forward to? Could he ever be tolerably happy with Lucy Steele;
  • could he, were his affection for herself out of the question, with his
  • integrity, his delicacy, and well-informed mind, be satisfied with a
  • wife like her--illiterate, artful, and selfish?
  • The youthful infatuation of nineteen would naturally blind him to every
  • thing but her beauty and good nature; but the four succeeding
  • years--years, which if rationally spent, give such improvement to the
  • understanding, must have opened his eyes to her defects of education,
  • while the same period of time, spent on her side in inferior society
  • and more frivolous pursuits, had perhaps robbed her of that simplicity
  • which might once have given an interesting character to her beauty.
  • If in the supposition of his seeking to marry herself, his difficulties
  • from his mother had seemed great, how much greater were they now likely
  • to be, when the object of his engagement was undoubtedly inferior in
  • connections, and probably inferior in fortune to herself. These
  • difficulties, indeed, with a heart so alienated from Lucy, might not
  • press very hard upon his patience; but melancholy was the state of the
  • person by whom the expectation of family opposition and unkindness,
  • could be felt as a relief!
  • As these considerations occurred to her in painful succession, she wept
  • for him, more than for herself. Supported by the conviction of having
  • done nothing to merit her present unhappiness, and consoled by the
  • belief that Edward had done nothing to forfeit her esteem, she thought
  • she could even now, under the first smart of the heavy blow, command
  • herself enough to guard every suspicion of the truth from her mother
  • and sisters. And so well was she able to answer her own expectations,
  • that when she joined them at dinner only two hours after she had first
  • suffered the extinction of all her dearest hopes, no one would have
  • supposed from the appearance of the sisters, that Elinor was mourning
  • in secret over obstacles which must divide her for ever from the object
  • of her love, and that Marianne was internally dwelling on the
  • perfections of a man, of whose whole heart she felt thoroughly
  • possessed, and whom she expected to see in every carriage which drove
  • near their house.
  • The necessity of concealing from her mother and Marianne, what had been
  • entrusted in confidence to herself, though it obliged her to unceasing
  • exertion, was no aggravation of Elinor's distress. On the contrary it
  • was a relief to her, to be spared the communication of what would give
  • such affliction to them, and to be saved likewise from hearing that
  • condemnation of Edward, which would probably flow from the excess of
  • their partial affection for herself, and which was more than she felt
  • equal to support.
  • From their counsel, or their conversation, she knew she could receive
  • no assistance, their tenderness and sorrow must add to her distress,
  • while her self-command would neither receive encouragement from their
  • example nor from their praise. She was stronger alone, and her own
  • good sense so well supported her, that her firmness was as unshaken,
  • her appearance of cheerfulness as invariable, as with regrets so
  • poignant and so fresh, it was possible for them to be.
  • Much as she had suffered from her first conversation with Lucy on the
  • subject, she soon felt an earnest wish of renewing it; and this for
  • more reasons than one. She wanted to hear many particulars of their
  • engagement repeated again, she wanted more clearly to understand what
  • Lucy really felt for Edward, whether there were any sincerity in her
  • declaration of tender regard for him, and she particularly wanted to
  • convince Lucy, by her readiness to enter on the matter again, and her
  • calmness in conversing on it, that she was no otherwise interested in
  • it than as a friend, which she very much feared her involuntary
  • agitation, in their morning discourse, must have left at least
  • doubtful. That Lucy was disposed to be jealous of her appeared very
  • probable: it was plain that Edward had always spoken highly in her
  • praise, not merely from Lucy's assertion, but from her venturing to
  • trust her on so short a personal acquaintance, with a secret so
  • confessedly and evidently important. And even Sir John's joking
  • intelligence must have had some weight. But indeed, while Elinor
  • remained so well assured within herself of being really beloved by
  • Edward, it required no other consideration of probabilities to make it
  • natural that Lucy should be jealous; and that she was so, her very
  • confidence was a proof. What other reason for the disclosure of the
  • affair could there be, but that Elinor might be informed by it of
  • Lucy's superior claims on Edward, and be taught to avoid him in future?
  • She had little difficulty in understanding thus much of her rival's
  • intentions, and while she was firmly resolved to act by her as every
  • principle of honour and honesty directed, to combat her own affection
  • for Edward and to see him as little as possible; she could not deny
  • herself the comfort of endeavouring to convince Lucy that her heart was
  • unwounded. And as she could now have nothing more painful to hear on
  • the subject than had already been told, she did not mistrust her own
  • ability of going through a repetition of particulars with composure.
  • But it was not immediately that an opportunity of doing so could be
  • commanded, though Lucy was as well disposed as herself to take
  • advantage of any that occurred; for the weather was not often fine
  • enough to allow of their joining in a walk, where they might most
  • easily separate themselves from the others; and though they met at
  • least every other evening either at the park or cottage, and chiefly at
  • the former, they could not be supposed to meet for the sake of
  • conversation. Such a thought would never enter either Sir John or Lady
  • Middleton's head; and therefore very little leisure was ever given for
  • a general chat, and none at all for particular discourse. They met for
  • the sake of eating, drinking, and laughing together, playing at cards,
  • or consequences, or any other game that was sufficiently noisy.
  • One or two meetings of this kind had taken place, without affording
  • Elinor any chance of engaging Lucy in private, when Sir John called at
  • the cottage one morning, to beg, in the name of charity, that they
  • would all dine with Lady Middleton that day, as he was obliged to
  • attend the club at Exeter, and she would otherwise be quite alone,
  • except her mother and the two Miss Steeles. Elinor, who foresaw a
  • fairer opening for the point she had in view, in such a party as this
  • was likely to be, more at liberty among themselves under the tranquil
  • and well-bred direction of Lady Middleton than when her husband united
  • them together in one noisy purpose, immediately accepted the
  • invitation; Margaret, with her mother's permission, was equally
  • compliant, and Marianne, though always unwilling to join any of their
  • parties, was persuaded by her mother, who could not bear to have her
  • seclude herself from any chance of amusement, to go likewise.
  • The young ladies went, and Lady Middleton was happily preserved from
  • the frightful solitude which had threatened her. The insipidity of the
  • meeting was exactly such as Elinor had expected; it produced not one
  • novelty of thought or expression, and nothing could be less interesting
  • than the whole of their discourse both in the dining parlour and
  • drawing room: to the latter, the children accompanied them, and while
  • they remained there, she was too well convinced of the impossibility of
  • engaging Lucy's attention to attempt it. They quitted it only with the
  • removal of the tea-things. The card-table was then placed, and Elinor
  • began to wonder at herself for having ever entertained a hope of
  • finding time for conversation at the park. They all rose up in
  • preparation for a round game.
  • "I am glad," said Lady Middleton to Lucy, "you are not going to finish
  • poor little Annamaria's basket this evening; for I am sure it must hurt
  • your eyes to work filigree by candlelight. And we will make the dear
  • little love some amends for her disappointment to-morrow, and then I
  • hope she will not much mind it."
  • This hint was enough, Lucy recollected herself instantly and replied,
  • "Indeed you are very much mistaken, Lady Middleton; I am only waiting
  • to know whether you can make your party without me, or I should have
  • been at my filigree already. I would not disappoint the little angel
  • for all the world: and if you want me at the card-table now, I am
  • resolved to finish the basket after supper."
  • "You are very good, I hope it won't hurt your eyes--will you ring the
  • bell for some working candles? My poor little girl would be sadly
  • disappointed, I know, if the basket was not finished tomorrow, for
  • though I told her it certainly would not, I am sure she depends upon
  • having it done."
  • Lucy directly drew her work table near her and reseated herself with an
  • alacrity and cheerfulness which seemed to infer that she could taste no
  • greater delight than in making a filigree basket for a spoilt child.
  • Lady Middleton proposed a rubber of Casino to the others. No one made
  • any objection but Marianne, who with her usual inattention to the forms
  • of general civility, exclaimed, "Your Ladyship will have the goodness
  • to excuse ME--you know I detest cards. I shall go to the piano-forte;
  • I have not touched it since it was tuned." And without farther
  • ceremony, she turned away and walked to the instrument.
  • Lady Middleton looked as if she thanked heaven that SHE had never made
  • so rude a speech.
  • "Marianne can never keep long from that instrument you know, ma'am,"
  • said Elinor, endeavouring to smooth away the offence; "and I do not
  • much wonder at it; for it is the very best toned piano-forte I ever
  • heard."
  • The remaining five were now to draw their cards.
  • "Perhaps," continued Elinor, "if I should happen to cut out, I may be
  • of some use to Miss Lucy Steele, in rolling her papers for her; and
  • there is so much still to be done to the basket, that it must be
  • impossible I think for her labour singly, to finish it this evening. I
  • should like the work exceedingly, if she would allow me a share in it."
  • "Indeed I shall be very much obliged to you for your help," cried Lucy,
  • "for I find there is more to be done to it than I thought there was;
  • and it would be a shocking thing to disappoint dear Annamaria after
  • all."
  • "Oh! that would be terrible, indeed," said Miss Steele-- "Dear little
  • soul, how I do love her!"
  • "You are very kind," said Lady Middleton to Elinor; "and as you really
  • like the work, perhaps you will be as well pleased not to cut in till
  • another rubber, or will you take your chance now?"
  • Elinor joyfully profited by the first of these proposals, and thus by a
  • little of that address which Marianne could never condescend to
  • practise, gained her own end, and pleased Lady Middleton at the same
  • time. Lucy made room for her with ready attention, and the two fair
  • rivals were thus seated side by side at the same table, and, with the
  • utmost harmony, engaged in forwarding the same work. The pianoforte at
  • which Marianne, wrapped up in her own music and her own thoughts, had
  • by this time forgotten that any body was in the room besides herself,
  • was luckily so near them that Miss Dashwood now judged she might
  • safely, under the shelter of its noise, introduce the interesting
  • subject, without any risk of being heard at the card-table.
  • CHAPTER 24
  • In a firm, though cautious tone, Elinor thus began.
  • "I should be undeserving of the confidence you have honoured me with,
  • if I felt no desire for its continuance, or no farther curiosity on its
  • subject. I will not apologize therefore for bringing it forward again."
  • "Thank you," cried Lucy warmly, "for breaking the ice; you have set my
  • heart at ease by it; for I was somehow or other afraid I had offended
  • you by what I told you that Monday."
  • "Offended me! How could you suppose so? Believe me," and Elinor spoke
  • it with the truest sincerity, "nothing could be farther from my
  • intention than to give you such an idea. Could you have a motive for
  • the trust, that was not honourable and flattering to me?"
  • "And yet I do assure you," replied Lucy, her little sharp eyes full of
  • meaning, "there seemed to me to be a coldness and displeasure in your
  • manner that made me quite uncomfortable. I felt sure that you was
  • angry with me; and have been quarrelling with myself ever since, for
  • having took such a liberty as to trouble you with my affairs. But I am
  • very glad to find it was only my own fancy, and that you really do not
  • blame me. If you knew what a consolation it was to me to relieve my
  • heart speaking to you of what I am always thinking of every moment of
  • my life, your compassion would make you overlook every thing else I am
  • sure."
  • "Indeed, I can easily believe that it was a very great relief to you,
  • to acknowledge your situation to me, and be assured that you shall
  • never have reason to repent it. Your case is a very unfortunate one;
  • you seem to me to be surrounded with difficulties, and you will have
  • need of all your mutual affection to support you under them. Mr.
  • Ferrars, I believe, is entirely dependent on his mother."
  • "He has only two thousand pounds of his own; it would be madness to
  • marry upon that, though for my own part, I could give up every prospect
  • of more without a sigh. I have been always used to a very small
  • income, and could struggle with any poverty for him; but I love him too
  • well to be the selfish means of robbing him, perhaps, of all that his
  • mother might give him if he married to please her. We must wait, it
  • may be for many years. With almost every other man in the world, it
  • would be an alarming prospect; but Edward's affection and constancy
  • nothing can deprive me of I know."
  • "That conviction must be every thing to you; and he is undoubtedly
  • supported by the same trust in your's. If the strength of your
  • reciprocal attachment had failed, as between many people, and under
  • many circumstances it naturally would during a four years' engagement,
  • your situation would have been pitiable, indeed."
  • Lucy here looked up; but Elinor was careful in guarding her countenance
  • from every expression that could give her words a suspicious tendency.
  • "Edward's love for me," said Lucy, "has been pretty well put to the
  • test, by our long, very long absence since we were first engaged, and
  • it has stood the trial so well, that I should be unpardonable to doubt
  • it now. I can safely say that he has never gave me one moment's alarm
  • on that account from the first."
  • Elinor hardly knew whether to smile or sigh at this assertion.
  • Lucy went on. "I am rather of a jealous temper too by nature, and from
  • our different situations in life, from his being so much more in the
  • world than me, and our continual separation, I was enough inclined for
  • suspicion, to have found out the truth in an instant, if there had been
  • the slightest alteration in his behaviour to me when we met, or any
  • lowness of spirits that I could not account for, or if he had talked
  • more of one lady than another, or seemed in any respect less happy at
  • Longstaple than he used to be. I do not mean to say that I am
  • particularly observant or quick-sighted in general, but in such a case
  • I am sure I could not be deceived."
  • "All this," thought Elinor, "is very pretty; but it can impose upon
  • neither of us."
  • "But what," said she after a short silence, "are your views? or have
  • you none but that of waiting for Mrs. Ferrars's death, which is a
  • melancholy and shocking extremity?--Is her son determined to submit to
  • this, and to all the tediousness of the many years of suspense in which
  • it may involve you, rather than run the risk of her displeasure for a
  • while by owning the truth?"
  • "If we could be certain that it would be only for a while! But Mrs.
  • Ferrars is a very headstrong proud woman, and in her first fit of anger
  • upon hearing it, would very likely secure every thing to Robert, and
  • the idea of that, for Edward's sake, frightens away all my inclination
  • for hasty measures."
  • "And for your own sake too, or you are carrying your disinterestedness
  • beyond reason."
  • Lucy looked at Elinor again, and was silent.
  • "Do you know Mr. Robert Ferrars?" asked Elinor.
  • "Not at all--I never saw him; but I fancy he is very unlike his
  • brother--silly and a great coxcomb."
  • "A great coxcomb!" repeated Miss Steele, whose ear had caught those
  • words by a sudden pause in Marianne's music.-- "Oh, they are talking of
  • their favourite beaux, I dare say."
  • "No sister," cried Lucy, "you are mistaken there, our favourite beaux
  • are NOT great coxcombs."
  • "I can answer for it that Miss Dashwood's is not," said Mrs. Jennings,
  • laughing heartily; "for he is one of the modestest, prettiest behaved
  • young men I ever saw; but as for Lucy, she is such a sly little
  • creature, there is no finding out who SHE likes."
  • "Oh," cried Miss Steele, looking significantly round at them, "I dare
  • say Lucy's beau is quite as modest and pretty behaved as Miss
  • Dashwood's."
  • Elinor blushed in spite of herself. Lucy bit her lip, and looked
  • angrily at her sister. A mutual silence took place for some time.
  • Lucy first put an end to it by saying in a lower tone, though Marianne
  • was then giving them the powerful protection of a very magnificent
  • concerto--
  • "I will honestly tell you of one scheme which has lately come into my
  • head, for bringing matters to bear; indeed I am bound to let you into
  • the secret, for you are a party concerned. I dare say you have seen
  • enough of Edward to know that he would prefer the church to every other
  • profession; now my plan is that he should take orders as soon as he
  • can, and then through your interest, which I am sure you would be kind
  • enough to use out of friendship for him, and I hope out of some regard
  • to me, your brother might be persuaded to give him Norland living;
  • which I understand is a very good one, and the present incumbent not
  • likely to live a great while. That would be enough for us to marry
  • upon, and we might trust to time and chance for the rest."
  • "I should always be happy," replied Elinor, "to show any mark of my
  • esteem and friendship for Mr. Ferrars; but do you not perceive that my
  • interest on such an occasion would be perfectly unnecessary? He is
  • brother to Mrs. John Dashwood--THAT must be recommendation enough to
  • her husband."
  • "But Mrs. John Dashwood would not much approve of Edward's going into
  • orders."
  • "Then I rather suspect that my interest would do very little."
  • They were again silent for many minutes. At length Lucy exclaimed with
  • a deep sigh,
  • "I believe it would be the wisest way to put an end to the business at
  • once by dissolving the engagement. We seem so beset with difficulties
  • on every side, that though it would make us miserable for a time, we
  • should be happier perhaps in the end. But you will not give me your
  • advice, Miss Dashwood?"
  • "No," answered Elinor, with a smile, which concealed very agitated
  • feelings, "on such a subject I certainly will not. You know very well
  • that my opinion would have no weight with you, unless it were on the
  • side of your wishes."
  • "Indeed you wrong me," replied Lucy, with great solemnity; "I know
  • nobody of whose judgment I think so highly as I do of yours; and I do
  • really believe, that if you was to say to me, 'I advise you by all
  • means to put an end to your engagement with Edward Ferrars, it will be
  • more for the happiness of both of you,' I should resolve upon doing it
  • immediately."
  • Elinor blushed for the insincerity of Edward's future wife, and
  • replied, "This compliment would effectually frighten me from giving any
  • opinion on the subject had I formed one. It raises my influence much
  • too high; the power of dividing two people so tenderly attached is too
  • much for an indifferent person."
  • "'Tis because you are an indifferent person," said Lucy, with some
  • pique, and laying a particular stress on those words, "that your
  • judgment might justly have such weight with me. If you could be
  • supposed to be biased in any respect by your own feelings, your opinion
  • would not be worth having."
  • Elinor thought it wisest to make no answer to this, lest they might
  • provoke each other to an unsuitable increase of ease and unreserve; and
  • was even partly determined never to mention the subject again. Another
  • pause therefore of many minutes' duration, succeeded this speech, and
  • Lucy was still the first to end it.
  • "Shall you be in town this winter, Miss Dashwood?" said she with all
  • her accustomary complacency.
  • "Certainly not."
  • "I am sorry for that," returned the other, while her eyes brightened at
  • the information, "it would have gave me such pleasure to meet you
  • there! But I dare say you will go for all that. To be sure, your
  • brother and sister will ask you to come to them."
  • "It will not be in my power to accept their invitation if they do."
  • "How unlucky that is! I had quite depended upon meeting you there.
  • Anne and me are to go the latter end of January to some relations who
  • have been wanting us to visit them these several years! But I only go
  • for the sake of seeing Edward. He will be there in February, otherwise
  • London would have no charms for me; I have not spirits for it."
  • Elinor was soon called to the card-table by the conclusion of the first
  • rubber, and the confidential discourse of the two ladies was therefore
  • at an end, to which both of them submitted without any reluctance, for
  • nothing had been said on either side to make them dislike each other
  • less than they had done before; and Elinor sat down to the card table
  • with the melancholy persuasion that Edward was not only without
  • affection for the person who was to be his wife; but that he had not
  • even the chance of being tolerably happy in marriage, which sincere
  • affection on HER side would have given, for self-interest alone could
  • induce a woman to keep a man to an engagement, of which she seemed so
  • thoroughly aware that he was weary.
  • From this time the subject was never revived by Elinor, and when
  • entered on by Lucy, who seldom missed an opportunity of introducing it,
  • and was particularly careful to inform her confidante, of her happiness
  • whenever she received a letter from Edward, it was treated by the
  • former with calmness and caution, and dismissed as soon as civility
  • would allow; for she felt such conversations to be an indulgence which
  • Lucy did not deserve, and which were dangerous to herself.
  • The visit of the Miss Steeles at Barton Park was lengthened far beyond
  • what the first invitation implied. Their favour increased; they could
  • not be spared; Sir John would not hear of their going; and in spite of
  • their numerous and long arranged engagements in Exeter, in spite of the
  • absolute necessity of returning to fulfill them immediately, which was
  • in full force at the end of every week, they were prevailed on to stay
  • nearly two months at the park, and to assist in the due celebration of
  • that festival which requires a more than ordinary share of private
  • balls and large dinners to proclaim its importance.
  • CHAPTER 25
  • Though Mrs. Jennings was in the habit of spending a large portion of
  • the year at the houses of her children and friends, she was not without
  • a settled habitation of her own. Since the death of her husband, who
  • had traded with success in a less elegant part of the town, she had
  • resided every winter in a house in one of the streets near Portman
  • Square. Towards this home, she began on the approach of January to
  • turn her thoughts, and thither she one day abruptly, and very
  • unexpectedly by them, asked the elder Misses Dashwood to accompany her.
  • Elinor, without observing the varying complexion of her sister, and the
  • animated look which spoke no indifference to the plan, immediately gave
  • a grateful but absolute denial for both, in which she believed herself
  • to be speaking their united inclinations. The reason alleged was their
  • determined resolution of not leaving their mother at that time of the
  • year. Mrs. Jennings received the refusal with some surprise, and
  • repeated her invitation immediately.
  • "Oh, Lord! I am sure your mother can spare you very well, and I DO beg
  • you will favour me with your company, for I've quite set my heart upon
  • it. Don't fancy that you will be any inconvenience to me, for I shan't
  • put myself at all out of my way for you. It will only be sending Betty
  • by the coach, and I hope I can afford THAT. We three shall be able to
  • go very well in my chaise; and when we are in town, if you do not like
  • to go wherever I do, well and good, you may always go with one of my
  • daughters. I am sure your mother will not object to it; for I have had
  • such good luck in getting my own children off my hands that she will
  • think me a very fit person to have the charge of you; and if I don't
  • get one of you at least well married before I have done with you, it
  • shall not be my fault. I shall speak a good word for you to all the
  • young men, you may depend upon it."
  • "I have a notion," said Sir John, "that Miss Marianne would not object
  • to such a scheme, if her elder sister would come into it. It is very
  • hard indeed that she should not have a little pleasure, because Miss
  • Dashwood does not wish it. So I would advise you two, to set off for
  • town, when you are tired of Barton, without saying a word to Miss
  • Dashwood about it."
  • "Nay," cried Mrs. Jennings, "I am sure I shall be monstrous glad of
  • Miss Marianne's company, whether Miss Dashwood will go or not, only the
  • more the merrier say I, and I thought it would be more comfortable for
  • them to be together; because, if they got tired of me, they might talk
  • to one another, and laugh at my old ways behind my back. But one or
  • the other, if not both of them, I must have. Lord bless me! how do you
  • think I can live poking by myself, I who have been always used till
  • this winter to have Charlotte with me. Come, Miss Marianne, let us
  • strike hands upon the bargain, and if Miss Dashwood will change her
  • mind by and bye, why so much the better."
  • "I thank you, ma'am, sincerely thank you," said Marianne, with warmth:
  • "your invitation has insured my gratitude for ever, and it would give
  • me such happiness, yes, almost the greatest happiness I am capable of,
  • to be able to accept it. But my mother, my dearest, kindest mother,--I
  • feel the justice of what Elinor has urged, and if she were to be made
  • less happy, less comfortable by our absence--Oh! no, nothing should
  • tempt me to leave her. It should not, must not be a struggle."
  • Mrs. Jennings repeated her assurance that Mrs. Dashwood could spare
  • them perfectly well; and Elinor, who now understood her sister, and saw
  • to what indifference to almost every thing else she was carried by her
  • eagerness to be with Willoughby again, made no farther direct
  • opposition to the plan, and merely referred it to her mother's
  • decision, from whom however she scarcely expected to receive any
  • support in her endeavour to prevent a visit, which she could not
  • approve of for Marianne, and which on her own account she had
  • particular reasons to avoid. Whatever Marianne was desirous of, her
  • mother would be eager to promote--she could not expect to influence the
  • latter to cautiousness of conduct in an affair respecting which she had
  • never been able to inspire her with distrust; and she dared not explain
  • the motive of her own disinclination for going to London. That
  • Marianne, fastidious as she was, thoroughly acquainted with Mrs.
  • Jennings' manners, and invariably disgusted by them, should overlook
  • every inconvenience of that kind, should disregard whatever must be
  • most wounding to her irritable feelings, in her pursuit of one object,
  • was such a proof, so strong, so full, of the importance of that object
  • to her, as Elinor, in spite of all that had passed, was not prepared to
  • witness.
  • On being informed of the invitation, Mrs. Dashwood, persuaded that such
  • an excursion would be productive of much amusement to both her
  • daughters, and perceiving through all her affectionate attention to
  • herself, how much the heart of Marianne was in it, would not hear of
  • their declining the offer upon HER account; insisted on their both
  • accepting it directly; and then began to foresee, with her usual
  • cheerfulness, a variety of advantages that would accrue to them all,
  • from this separation.
  • "I am delighted with the plan," she cried, "it is exactly what I could
  • wish. Margaret and I shall be as much benefited by it as yourselves.
  • When you and the Middletons are gone, we shall go on so quietly and
  • happily together with our books and our music! You will find Margaret
  • so improved when you come back again! I have a little plan of
  • alteration for your bedrooms too, which may now be performed without
  • any inconvenience to any one. It is very right that you SHOULD go to
  • town; I would have every young woman of your condition in life
  • acquainted with the manners and amusements of London. You will be
  • under the care of a motherly good sort of woman, of whose kindness to
  • you I can have no doubt. And in all probability you will see your
  • brother, and whatever may be his faults, or the faults of his wife,
  • when I consider whose son he is, I cannot bear to have you so wholly
  • estranged from each other."
  • "Though with your usual anxiety for our happiness," said Elinor, "you
  • have been obviating every impediment to the present scheme which
  • occurred to you, there is still one objection which, in my opinion,
  • cannot be so easily removed."
  • Marianne's countenance sunk.
  • "And what," said Mrs. Dashwood, "is my dear prudent Elinor going to
  • suggest? What formidable obstacle is she now to bring forward? Do let
  • me hear a word about the expense of it."
  • "My objection is this; though I think very well of Mrs. Jennings's
  • heart, she is not a woman whose society can afford us pleasure, or
  • whose protection will give us consequence."
  • "That is very true," replied her mother, "but of her society,
  • separately from that of other people, you will scarcely have any thing
  • at all, and you will almost always appear in public with Lady
  • Middleton."
  • "If Elinor is frightened away by her dislike of Mrs. Jennings," said
  • Marianne, "at least it need not prevent MY accepting her invitation. I
  • have no such scruples, and I am sure I could put up with every
  • unpleasantness of that kind with very little effort."
  • Elinor could not help smiling at this display of indifference towards
  • the manners of a person, to whom she had often had difficulty in
  • persuading Marianne to behave with tolerable politeness; and resolved
  • within herself, that if her sister persisted in going, she would go
  • likewise, as she did not think it proper that Marianne should be left
  • to the sole guidance of her own judgment, or that Mrs. Jennings should
  • be abandoned to the mercy of Marianne for all the comfort of her
  • domestic hours. To this determination she was the more easily
  • reconciled, by recollecting that Edward Ferrars, by Lucy's account, was
  • not to be in town before February; and that their visit, without any
  • unreasonable abridgement, might be previously finished.
  • "I will have you BOTH go," said Mrs. Dashwood; "these objections are
  • nonsensical. You will have much pleasure in being in London, and
  • especially in being together; and if Elinor would ever condescend to
  • anticipate enjoyment, she would foresee it there from a variety of
  • sources; she would, perhaps, expect some from improving her
  • acquaintance with her sister-in-law's family."
  • Elinor had often wished for an opportunity of attempting to weaken her
  • mother's dependence on the attachment of Edward and herself, that the
  • shock might be less when the whole truth were revealed, and now on this
  • attack, though almost hopeless of success, she forced herself to begin
  • her design by saying, as calmly as she could, "I like Edward Ferrars
  • very much, and shall always be glad to see him; but as to the rest of
  • the family, it is a matter of perfect indifference to me, whether I am
  • ever known to them or not."
  • Mrs. Dashwood smiled, and said nothing. Marianne lifted up her eyes in
  • astonishment, and Elinor conjectured that she might as well have held
  • her tongue.
  • After very little farther discourse, it was finally settled that the
  • invitation should be fully accepted. Mrs. Jennings received the
  • information with a great deal of joy, and many assurances of kindness
  • and care; nor was it a matter of pleasure merely to her. Sir John was
  • delighted; for to a man, whose prevailing anxiety was the dread of
  • being alone, the acquisition of two, to the number of inhabitants in
  • London, was something. Even Lady Middleton took the trouble of being
  • delighted, which was putting herself rather out of her way; and as for
  • the Miss Steeles, especially Lucy, they had never been so happy in
  • their lives as this intelligence made them.
  • Elinor submitted to the arrangement which counteracted her wishes with
  • less reluctance than she had expected to feel. With regard to herself,
  • it was now a matter of unconcern whether she went to town or not, and
  • when she saw her mother so thoroughly pleased with the plan, and her
  • sister exhilarated by it in look, voice, and manner, restored to all
  • her usual animation, and elevated to more than her usual gaiety, she
  • could not be dissatisfied with the cause, and would hardly allow
  • herself to distrust the consequence.
  • Marianne's joy was almost a degree beyond happiness, so great was the
  • perturbation of her spirits and her impatience to be gone. Her
  • unwillingness to quit her mother was her only restorative to calmness;
  • and at the moment of parting her grief on that score was excessive.
  • Her mother's affliction was hardly less, and Elinor was the only one of
  • the three, who seemed to consider the separation as any thing short of
  • eternal.
  • Their departure took place in the first week in January. The
  • Middletons were to follow in about a week. The Miss Steeles kept their
  • station at the park, and were to quit it only with the rest of the
  • family.
  • CHAPTER 26
  • Elinor could not find herself in the carriage with Mrs. Jennings, and
  • beginning a journey to London under her protection, and as her guest,
  • without wondering at her own situation, so short had their acquaintance
  • with that lady been, so wholly unsuited were they in age and
  • disposition, and so many had been her objections against such a measure
  • only a few days before! But these objections had all, with that happy
  • ardour of youth which Marianne and her mother equally shared, been
  • overcome or overlooked; and Elinor, in spite of every occasional doubt
  • of Willoughby's constancy, could not witness the rapture of delightful
  • expectation which filled the whole soul and beamed in the eyes of
  • Marianne, without feeling how blank was her own prospect, how cheerless
  • her own state of mind in the comparison, and how gladly she would
  • engage in the solicitude of Marianne's situation to have the same
  • animating object in view, the same possibility of hope. A short, a
  • very short time however must now decide what Willoughby's intentions
  • were; in all probability he was already in town. Marianne's eagerness
  • to be gone declared her dependence on finding him there; and Elinor was
  • resolved not only upon gaining every new light as to his character
  • which her own observation or the intelligence of others could give her,
  • but likewise upon watching his behaviour to her sister with such
  • zealous attention, as to ascertain what he was and what he meant,
  • before many meetings had taken place. Should the result of her
  • observations be unfavourable, she was determined at all events to open
  • the eyes of her sister; should it be otherwise, her exertions would be
  • of a different nature--she must then learn to avoid every selfish
  • comparison, and banish every regret which might lessen her satisfaction
  • in the happiness of Marianne.
  • They were three days on their journey, and Marianne's behaviour as they
  • travelled was a happy specimen of what future complaisance and
  • companionableness to Mrs. Jennings might be expected to be. She sat in
  • silence almost all the way, wrapt in her own meditations, and scarcely
  • ever voluntarily speaking, except when any object of picturesque beauty
  • within their view drew from her an exclamation of delight exclusively
  • addressed to her sister. To atone for this conduct therefore, Elinor
  • took immediate possession of the post of civility which she had
  • assigned herself, behaved with the greatest attention to Mrs. Jennings,
  • talked with her, laughed with her, and listened to her whenever she
  • could; and Mrs. Jennings on her side treated them both with all
  • possible kindness, was solicitous on every occasion for their ease and
  • enjoyment, and only disturbed that she could not make them choose their
  • own dinners at the inn, nor extort a confession of their preferring
  • salmon to cod, or boiled fowls to veal cutlets. They reached town by
  • three o'clock the third day, glad to be released, after such a journey,
  • from the confinement of a carriage, and ready to enjoy all the luxury
  • of a good fire.
  • The house was handsome, and handsomely fitted up, and the young ladies
  • were immediately put in possession of a very comfortable apartment. It
  • had formerly been Charlotte's, and over the mantelpiece still hung a
  • landscape in coloured silks of her performance, in proof of her having
  • spent seven years at a great school in town to some effect.
  • As dinner was not to be ready in less than two hours from their
  • arrival, Elinor determined to employ the interval in writing to her
  • mother, and sat down for that purpose. In a few moments Marianne did
  • the same. "I am writing home, Marianne," said Elinor; "had not you
  • better defer your letter for a day or two?"
  • "I am NOT going to write to my mother," replied Marianne, hastily, and
  • as if wishing to avoid any farther inquiry. Elinor said no more; it
  • immediately struck her that she must then be writing to Willoughby; and
  • the conclusion which as instantly followed was, that, however
  • mysteriously they might wish to conduct the affair, they must be
  • engaged. This conviction, though not entirely satisfactory, gave her
  • pleasure, and she continued her letter with greater alacrity.
  • Marianne's was finished in a very few minutes; in length it could be no
  • more than a note; it was then folded up, sealed, and directed with
  • eager rapidity. Elinor thought she could distinguish a large W in the
  • direction; and no sooner was it complete than Marianne, ringing the
  • bell, requested the footman who answered it to get that letter conveyed
  • for her to the two-penny post. This decided the matter at once.
  • Her spirits still continued very high; but there was a flutter in them
  • which prevented their giving much pleasure to her sister, and this
  • agitation increased as the evening drew on. She could scarcely eat any
  • dinner, and when they afterwards returned to the drawing room, seemed
  • anxiously listening to the sound of every carriage.
  • It was a great satisfaction to Elinor that Mrs. Jennings, by being much
  • engaged in her own room, could see little of what was passing. The tea
  • things were brought in, and already had Marianne been disappointed more
  • than once by a rap at a neighbouring door, when a loud one was suddenly
  • heard which could not be mistaken for one at any other house, Elinor
  • felt secure of its announcing Willoughby's approach, and Marianne,
  • starting up, moved towards the door. Every thing was silent; this
  • could not be borne many seconds; she opened the door, advanced a few
  • steps towards the stairs, and after listening half a minute, returned
  • into the room in all the agitation which a conviction of having heard
  • him would naturally produce; in the ecstasy of her feelings at that
  • instant she could not help exclaiming, "Oh, Elinor, it is Willoughby,
  • indeed it is!" and seemed almost ready to throw herself into his arms,
  • when Colonel Brandon appeared.
  • It was too great a shock to be borne with calmness, and she immediately
  • left the room. Elinor was disappointed too; but at the same time her
  • regard for Colonel Brandon ensured his welcome with her; and she felt
  • particularly hurt that a man so partial to her sister should perceive
  • that she experienced nothing but grief and disappointment in seeing
  • him. She instantly saw that it was not unnoticed by him, that he even
  • observed Marianne as she quitted the room, with such astonishment and
  • concern, as hardly left him the recollection of what civility demanded
  • towards herself.
  • "Is your sister ill?" said he.
  • Elinor answered in some distress that she was, and then talked of
  • head-aches, low spirits, and over fatigues; and of every thing to which
  • she could decently attribute her sister's behaviour.
  • He heard her with the most earnest attention, but seeming to recollect
  • himself, said no more on the subject, and began directly to speak of
  • his pleasure at seeing them in London, making the usual inquiries about
  • their journey, and the friends they had left behind.
  • In this calm kind of way, with very little interest on either side,
  • they continued to talk, both of them out of spirits, and the thoughts
  • of both engaged elsewhere. Elinor wished very much to ask whether
  • Willoughby were then in town, but she was afraid of giving him pain by
  • any enquiry after his rival; and at length, by way of saying something,
  • she asked if he had been in London ever since she had seen him last.
  • "Yes," he replied, with some embarrassment, "almost ever since; I have
  • been once or twice at Delaford for a few days, but it has never been in
  • my power to return to Barton."
  • This, and the manner in which it was said, immediately brought back to
  • her remembrance all the circumstances of his quitting that place, with
  • the uneasiness and suspicions they had caused to Mrs. Jennings, and she
  • was fearful that her question had implied much more curiosity on the
  • subject than she had ever felt.
  • Mrs. Jennings soon came in. "Oh! Colonel," said she, with her usual
  • noisy cheerfulness, "I am monstrous glad to see you--sorry I could not
  • come before--beg your pardon, but I have been forced to look about me a
  • little, and settle my matters; for it is a long while since I have been
  • at home, and you know one has always a world of little odd things to do
  • after one has been away for any time; and then I have had Cartwright to
  • settle with-- Lord, I have been as busy as a bee ever since dinner!
  • But pray, Colonel, how came you to conjure out that I should be in town
  • today?"
  • "I had the pleasure of hearing it at Mr. Palmer's, where I have been
  • dining."
  • "Oh, you did; well, and how do they all do at their house? How does
  • Charlotte do? I warrant you she is a fine size by this time."
  • "Mrs. Palmer appeared quite well, and I am commissioned to tell you,
  • that you will certainly see her to-morrow."
  • "Ay, to be sure, I thought as much. Well, Colonel, I have brought two
  • young ladies with me, you see--that is, you see but one of them now,
  • but there is another somewhere. Your friend, Miss Marianne, too--which
  • you will not be sorry to hear. I do not know what you and Mr.
  • Willoughby will do between you about her. Ay, it is a fine thing to be
  • young and handsome. Well! I was young once, but I never was very
  • handsome--worse luck for me. However, I got a very good husband, and I
  • don't know what the greatest beauty can do more. Ah! poor man! he has
  • been dead these eight years and better. But Colonel, where have you
  • been to since we parted? And how does your business go on? Come,
  • come, let's have no secrets among friends."
  • He replied with his accustomary mildness to all her inquiries, but
  • without satisfying her in any. Elinor now began to make the tea, and
  • Marianne was obliged to appear again.
  • After her entrance, Colonel Brandon became more thoughtful and silent
  • than he had been before, and Mrs. Jennings could not prevail on him to
  • stay long. No other visitor appeared that evening, and the ladies were
  • unanimous in agreeing to go early to bed.
  • Marianne rose the next morning with recovered spirits and happy looks.
  • The disappointment of the evening before seemed forgotten in the
  • expectation of what was to happen that day. They had not long finished
  • their breakfast before Mrs. Palmer's barouche stopped at the door, and
  • in a few minutes she came laughing into the room: so delighted to see
  • them all, that it was hard to say whether she received most pleasure
  • from meeting her mother or the Miss Dashwoods again. So surprised at
  • their coming to town, though it was what she had rather expected all
  • along; so angry at their accepting her mother's invitation after having
  • declined her own, though at the same time she would never have forgiven
  • them if they had not come!
  • "Mr. Palmer will be so happy to see you," said she; "What do you think
  • he said when he heard of your coming with Mama? I forget what it was
  • now, but it was something so droll!"
  • After an hour or two spent in what her mother called comfortable chat,
  • or in other words, in every variety of inquiry concerning all their
  • acquaintance on Mrs. Jennings's side, and in laughter without cause on
  • Mrs. Palmer's, it was proposed by the latter that they should all
  • accompany her to some shops where she had business that morning, to
  • which Mrs. Jennings and Elinor readily consented, as having likewise
  • some purchases to make themselves; and Marianne, though declining it at
  • first was induced to go likewise.
  • Wherever they went, she was evidently always on the watch. In Bond
  • Street especially, where much of their business lay, her eyes were in
  • constant inquiry; and in whatever shop the party were engaged, her mind
  • was equally abstracted from every thing actually before them, from all
  • that interested and occupied the others. Restless and dissatisfied
  • every where, her sister could never obtain her opinion of any article
  • of purchase, however it might equally concern them both: she received
  • no pleasure from anything; was only impatient to be at home again, and
  • could with difficulty govern her vexation at the tediousness of Mrs.
  • Palmer, whose eye was caught by every thing pretty, expensive, or new;
  • who was wild to buy all, could determine on none, and dawdled away her
  • time in rapture and indecision.
  • It was late in the morning before they returned home; and no sooner had
  • they entered the house than Marianne flew eagerly up stairs, and when
  • Elinor followed, she found her turning from the table with a sorrowful
  • countenance, which declared that no Willoughby had been there.
  • "Has no letter been left here for me since we went out?" said she to
  • the footman who then entered with the parcels. She was answered in the
  • negative. "Are you quite sure of it?" she replied. "Are you certain
  • that no servant, no porter has left any letter or note?"
  • The man replied that none had.
  • "How very odd!" said she, in a low and disappointed voice, as she
  • turned away to the window.
  • "How odd, indeed!" repeated Elinor within herself, regarding her sister
  • with uneasiness. "If she had not known him to be in town she would not
  • have written to him, as she did; she would have written to Combe Magna;
  • and if he is in town, how odd that he should neither come nor write!
  • Oh! my dear mother, you must be wrong in permitting an engagement
  • between a daughter so young, a man so little known, to be carried on in
  • so doubtful, so mysterious a manner! I long to inquire; and how will
  • MY interference be borne."
  • She determined, after some consideration, that if appearances continued
  • many days longer as unpleasant as they now were, she would represent in
  • the strongest manner to her mother the necessity of some serious
  • enquiry into the affair.
  • Mrs. Palmer and two elderly ladies of Mrs. Jennings's intimate
  • acquaintance, whom she had met and invited in the morning, dined with
  • them. The former left them soon after tea to fulfill her evening
  • engagements; and Elinor was obliged to assist in making a whist table
  • for the others. Marianne was of no use on these occasions, as she
  • would never learn the game; but though her time was therefore at her
  • own disposal, the evening was by no means more productive of pleasure
  • to her than to Elinor, for it was spent in all the anxiety of
  • expectation and the pain of disappointment. She sometimes endeavoured
  • for a few minutes to read; but the book was soon thrown aside, and she
  • returned to the more interesting employment of walking backwards and
  • forwards across the room, pausing for a moment whenever she came to the
  • window, in hopes of distinguishing the long-expected rap.
  • CHAPTER 27
  • "If this open weather holds much longer," said Mrs. Jennings, when they
  • met at breakfast the following morning, "Sir John will not like leaving
  • Barton next week; 'tis a sad thing for sportsmen to lose a day's
  • pleasure. Poor souls! I always pity them when they do; they seem to
  • take it so much to heart."
  • "That is true," cried Marianne, in a cheerful voice, and walking to the
  • window as she spoke, to examine the day. "I had not thought of that.
  • This weather will keep many sportsmen in the country."
  • It was a lucky recollection, all her good spirits were restored by it.
  • "It is charming weather for THEM indeed," she continued, as she sat
  • down to the breakfast table with a happy countenance. "How much they
  • must enjoy it! But" (with a little return of anxiety) "it cannot be
  • expected to last long. At this time of the year, and after such a
  • series of rain, we shall certainly have very little more of it. Frosts
  • will soon set in, and in all probability with severity. In another day
  • or two perhaps; this extreme mildness can hardly last longer--nay,
  • perhaps it may freeze tonight!"
  • "At any rate," said Elinor, wishing to prevent Mrs. Jennings from
  • seeing her sister's thoughts as clearly as she did, "I dare say we
  • shall have Sir John and Lady Middleton in town by the end of next week."
  • "Ay, my dear, I'll warrant you we do. Mary always has her own way."
  • "And now," silently conjectured Elinor, "she will write to Combe by
  • this day's post."
  • But if she DID, the letter was written and sent away with a privacy
  • which eluded all her watchfulness to ascertain the fact. Whatever the
  • truth of it might be, and far as Elinor was from feeling thorough
  • contentment about it, yet while she saw Marianne in spirits, she could
  • not be very uncomfortable herself. And Marianne was in spirits; happy
  • in the mildness of the weather, and still happier in her expectation of
  • a frost.
  • The morning was chiefly spent in leaving cards at the houses of Mrs.
  • Jennings's acquaintance to inform them of her being in town; and
  • Marianne was all the time busy in observing the direction of the wind,
  • watching the variations of the sky and imagining an alteration in the
  • air.
  • "Don't you find it colder than it was in the morning, Elinor? There
  • seems to me a very decided difference. I can hardly keep my hands warm
  • even in my muff. It was not so yesterday, I think. The clouds seem
  • parting too, the sun will be out in a moment, and we shall have a clear
  • afternoon."
  • Elinor was alternately diverted and pained; but Marianne persevered,
  • and saw every night in the brightness of the fire, and every morning in
  • the appearance of the atmosphere, the certain symptoms of approaching
  • frost.
  • The Miss Dashwoods had no greater reason to be dissatisfied with Mrs.
  • Jennings's style of living, and set of acquaintance, than with her
  • behaviour to themselves, which was invariably kind. Every thing in her
  • household arrangements was conducted on the most liberal plan, and
  • excepting a few old city friends, whom, to Lady Middleton's regret, she
  • had never dropped, she visited no one to whom an introduction could at
  • all discompose the feelings of her young companions. Pleased to find
  • herself more comfortably situated in that particular than she had
  • expected, Elinor was very willing to compound for the want of much real
  • enjoyment from any of their evening parties, which, whether at home or
  • abroad, formed only for cards, could have little to amuse her.
  • Colonel Brandon, who had a general invitation to the house, was with
  • them almost every day; he came to look at Marianne and talk to Elinor,
  • who often derived more satisfaction from conversing with him than from
  • any other daily occurrence, but who saw at the same time with much
  • concern his continued regard for her sister. She feared it was a
  • strengthening regard. It grieved her to see the earnestness with which
  • he often watched Marianne, and his spirits were certainly worse than
  • when at Barton.
  • About a week after their arrival, it became certain that Willoughby was
  • also arrived. His card was on the table when they came in from the
  • morning's drive.
  • "Good God!" cried Marianne, "he has been here while we were out."
  • Elinor, rejoiced to be assured of his being in London, now ventured to
  • say, "Depend upon it, he will call again tomorrow." But Marianne
  • seemed hardly to hear her, and on Mrs. Jennings's entrance, escaped with
  • the precious card.
  • This event, while it raised the spirits of Elinor, restored to those of
  • her sister all, and more than all, their former agitation. From this
  • moment her mind was never quiet; the expectation of seeing him every
  • hour of the day, made her unfit for any thing. She insisted on being
  • left behind, the next morning, when the others went out.
  • Elinor's thoughts were full of what might be passing in Berkeley Street
  • during their absence; but a moment's glance at her sister when they
  • returned was enough to inform her, that Willoughby had paid no second
  • visit there. A note was just then brought in, and laid on the table.
  • "For me!" cried Marianne, stepping hastily forward.
  • "No, ma'am, for my mistress."
  • But Marianne, not convinced, took it instantly up.
  • "It is indeed for Mrs. Jennings; how provoking!"
  • "You are expecting a letter, then?" said Elinor, unable to be longer
  • silent.
  • "Yes, a little--not much."
  • After a short pause. "You have no confidence in me, Marianne."
  • "Nay, Elinor, this reproach from YOU--you who have confidence in no
  • one!"
  • "Me!" returned Elinor in some confusion; "indeed, Marianne, I have
  • nothing to tell."
  • "Nor I," answered Marianne with energy, "our situations then are alike.
  • We have neither of us any thing to tell; you, because you do not
  • communicate, and I, because I conceal nothing."
  • Elinor, distressed by this charge of reserve in herself, which she was
  • not at liberty to do away, knew not how, under such circumstances, to
  • press for greater openness in Marianne.
  • Mrs. Jennings soon appeared, and the note being given her, she read it
  • aloud. It was from Lady Middleton, announcing their arrival in Conduit
  • Street the night before, and requesting the company of her mother and
  • cousins the following evening. Business on Sir John's part, and a
  • violent cold on her own, prevented their calling in Berkeley Street.
  • The invitation was accepted; but when the hour of appointment drew
  • near, necessary as it was in common civility to Mrs. Jennings, that
  • they should both attend her on such a visit, Elinor had some difficulty
  • in persuading her sister to go, for still she had seen nothing of
  • Willoughby; and therefore was not more indisposed for amusement abroad,
  • than unwilling to run the risk of his calling again in her absence.
  • Elinor found, when the evening was over, that disposition is not
  • materially altered by a change of abode, for although scarcely settled
  • in town, Sir John had contrived to collect around him, nearly twenty
  • young people, and to amuse them with a ball. This was an affair,
  • however, of which Lady Middleton did not approve. In the country, an
  • unpremeditated dance was very allowable; but in London, where the
  • reputation of elegance was more important and less easily attained, it
  • was risking too much for the gratification of a few girls, to have it
  • known that Lady Middleton had given a small dance of eight or nine
  • couple, with two violins, and a mere side-board collation.
  • Mr. and Mrs. Palmer were of the party; from the former, whom they had
  • not seen before since their arrival in town, as he was careful to avoid
  • the appearance of any attention to his mother-in-law, and therefore
  • never came near her, they received no mark of recognition on their
  • entrance. He looked at them slightly, without seeming to know who they
  • were, and merely nodded to Mrs. Jennings from the other side of the
  • room. Marianne gave one glance round the apartment as she entered: it
  • was enough--HE was not there--and she sat down, equally ill-disposed to
  • receive or communicate pleasure. After they had been assembled about
  • an hour, Mr. Palmer sauntered towards the Miss Dashwoods to express his
  • surprise on seeing them in town, though Colonel Brandon had been first
  • informed of their arrival at his house, and he had himself said
  • something very droll on hearing that they were to come.
  • "I thought you were both in Devonshire," said he.
  • "Did you?" replied Elinor.
  • "When do you go back again?"
  • "I do not know." And thus ended their discourse.
  • Never had Marianne been so unwilling to dance in her life, as she was
  • that evening, and never so much fatigued by the exercise. She
  • complained of it as they returned to Berkeley Street.
  • "Aye, aye," said Mrs. Jennings, "we know the reason of all that very
  • well; if a certain person who shall be nameless, had been there, you
  • would not have been a bit tired: and to say the truth it was not very
  • pretty of him not to give you the meeting when he was invited."
  • "Invited!" cried Marianne.
  • "So my daughter Middleton told me, for it seems Sir John met him
  • somewhere in the street this morning." Marianne said no more, but
  • looked exceedingly hurt. Impatient in this situation to be doing
  • something that might lead to her sister's relief, Elinor resolved to
  • write the next morning to her mother, and hoped by awakening her fears
  • for the health of Marianne, to procure those inquiries which had been
  • so long delayed; and she was still more eagerly bent on this measure by
  • perceiving after breakfast on the morrow, that Marianne was again
  • writing to Willoughby, for she could not suppose it to be to any other
  • person.
  • About the middle of the day, Mrs. Jennings went out by herself on
  • business, and Elinor began her letter directly, while Marianne, too
  • restless for employment, too anxious for conversation, walked from one
  • window to the other, or sat down by the fire in melancholy meditation.
  • Elinor was very earnest in her application to her mother, relating all
  • that had passed, her suspicions of Willoughby's inconstancy, urging her
  • by every plea of duty and affection to demand from Marianne an account
  • of her real situation with respect to him.
  • Her letter was scarcely finished, when a rap foretold a visitor, and
  • Colonel Brandon was announced. Marianne, who had seen him from the
  • window, and who hated company of any kind, left the room before he
  • entered it. He looked more than usually grave, and though expressing
  • satisfaction at finding Miss Dashwood alone, as if he had somewhat in
  • particular to tell her, sat for some time without saying a word.
  • Elinor, persuaded that he had some communication to make in which her
  • sister was concerned, impatiently expected its opening. It was not the
  • first time of her feeling the same kind of conviction; for, more than
  • once before, beginning with the observation of "your sister looks
  • unwell to-day," or "your sister seems out of spirits," he had appeared
  • on the point, either of disclosing, or of inquiring, something
  • particular about her. After a pause of several minutes, their silence
  • was broken, by his asking her in a voice of some agitation, when he was
  • to congratulate her on the acquisition of a brother? Elinor was not
  • prepared for such a question, and having no answer ready, was obliged
  • to adopt the simple and common expedient, of asking what he meant? He
  • tried to smile as he replied, "your sister's engagement to Mr.
  • Willoughby is very generally known."
  • "It cannot be generally known," returned Elinor, "for her own family do
  • not know it."
  • He looked surprised and said, "I beg your pardon, I am afraid my
  • inquiry has been impertinent; but I had not supposed any secrecy
  • intended, as they openly correspond, and their marriage is universally
  • talked of."
  • "How can that be? By whom can you have heard it mentioned?"
  • "By many--by some of whom you know nothing, by others with whom you are
  • most intimate, Mrs. Jennings, Mrs. Palmer, and the Middletons. But
  • still I might not have believed it, for where the mind is perhaps
  • rather unwilling to be convinced, it will always find something to
  • support its doubts, if I had not, when the servant let me in today,
  • accidentally seen a letter in his hand, directed to Mr. Willoughby in
  • your sister's writing. I came to inquire, but I was convinced before I
  • could ask the question. Is every thing finally settled? Is it
  • impossible to-? But I have no right, and I could have no chance of
  • succeeding. Excuse me, Miss Dashwood. I believe I have been wrong in
  • saying so much, but I hardly know what to do, and on your prudence I
  • have the strongest dependence. Tell me that it is all absolutely
  • resolved on, that any attempt, that in short concealment, if
  • concealment be possible, is all that remains."
  • These words, which conveyed to Elinor a direct avowal of his love for
  • her sister, affected her very much. She was not immediately able to
  • say anything, and even when her spirits were recovered, she debated for
  • a short time, on the answer it would be most proper to give. The real
  • state of things between Willoughby and her sister was so little known
  • to herself, that in endeavouring to explain it, she might be as liable
  • to say too much as too little. Yet as she was convinced that
  • Marianne's affection for Willoughby, could leave no hope of Colonel
  • Brandon's success, whatever the event of that affection might be, and
  • at the same time wished to shield her conduct from censure, she thought
  • it most prudent and kind, after some consideration, to say more than
  • she really knew or believed. She acknowledged, therefore, that though
  • she had never been informed by themselves of the terms on which they
  • stood with each other, of their mutual affection she had no doubt, and
  • of their correspondence she was not astonished to hear.
  • He listened to her with silent attention, and on her ceasing to speak,
  • rose directly from his seat, and after saying in a voice of emotion,
  • "to your sister I wish all imaginable happiness; to Willoughby that he
  • may endeavour to deserve her,"--took leave, and went away.
  • Elinor derived no comfortable feelings from this conversation, to
  • lessen the uneasiness of her mind on other points; she was left, on the
  • contrary, with a melancholy impression of Colonel Brandon's
  • unhappiness, and was prevented even from wishing it removed, by her
  • anxiety for the very event that must confirm it.
  • CHAPTER 28
  • Nothing occurred during the next three or four days, to make Elinor
  • regret what she had done, in applying to her mother; for Willoughby
  • neither came nor wrote. They were engaged about the end of that time
  • to attend Lady Middleton to a party, from which Mrs. Jennings was kept
  • away by the indisposition of her youngest daughter; and for this party,
  • Marianne, wholly dispirited, careless of her appearance, and seeming
  • equally indifferent whether she went or staid, prepared, without one
  • look of hope or one expression of pleasure. She sat by the
  • drawing-room fire after tea, till the moment of Lady Middleton's
  • arrival, without once stirring from her seat, or altering her attitude,
  • lost in her own thoughts, and insensible of her sister's presence; and
  • when at last they were told that Lady Middleton waited for them at the
  • door, she started as if she had forgotten that any one was expected.
  • They arrived in due time at the place of destination, and as soon as
  • the string of carriages before them would allow, alighted, ascended the
  • stairs, heard their names announced from one landing-place to another
  • in an audible voice, and entered a room splendidly lit up, quite full
  • of company, and insufferably hot. When they had paid their tribute of
  • politeness by curtsying to the lady of the house, they were permitted
  • to mingle in the crowd, and take their share of the heat and
  • inconvenience, to which their arrival must necessarily add. After some
  • time spent in saying little or doing less, Lady Middleton sat down to
  • Cassino, and as Marianne was not in spirits for moving about, she and
  • Elinor luckily succeeding to chairs, placed themselves at no great
  • distance from the table.
  • They had not remained in this manner long, before Elinor perceived
  • Willoughby, standing within a few yards of them, in earnest
  • conversation with a very fashionable looking young woman. She soon
  • caught his eye, and he immediately bowed, but without attempting to
  • speak to her, or to approach Marianne, though he could not but see her;
  • and then continued his discourse with the same lady. Elinor turned
  • involuntarily to Marianne, to see whether it could be unobserved by
  • her. At that moment she first perceived him, and her whole countenance
  • glowing with sudden delight, she would have moved towards him
  • instantly, had not her sister caught hold of her.
  • "Good heavens!" she exclaimed, "he is there--he is there--Oh! why does
  • he not look at me? why cannot I speak to him?"
  • "Pray, pray be composed," cried Elinor, "and do not betray what you
  • feel to every body present. Perhaps he has not observed you yet."
  • This however was more than she could believe herself; and to be
  • composed at such a moment was not only beyond the reach of Marianne, it
  • was beyond her wish. She sat in an agony of impatience which affected
  • every feature.
  • At last he turned round again, and regarded them both; she started up,
  • and pronouncing his name in a tone of affection, held out her hand to
  • him. He approached, and addressing himself rather to Elinor than
  • Marianne, as if wishing to avoid her eye, and determined not to observe
  • her attitude, inquired in a hurried manner after Mrs. Dashwood, and
  • asked how long they had been in town. Elinor was robbed of all
  • presence of mind by such an address, and was unable to say a word. But
  • the feelings of her sister were instantly expressed. Her face was
  • crimsoned over, and she exclaimed, in a voice of the greatest emotion,
  • "Good God! Willoughby, what is the meaning of this? Have you not
  • received my letters? Will you not shake hands with me?"
  • He could not then avoid it, but her touch seemed painful to him, and he
  • held her hand only for a moment. During all this time he was evidently
  • struggling for composure. Elinor watched his countenance and saw its
  • expression becoming more tranquil. After a moment's pause, he spoke
  • with calmness.
  • "I did myself the honour of calling in Berkeley Street last Tuesday,
  • and very much regretted that I was not fortunate enough to find
  • yourselves and Mrs. Jennings at home. My card was not lost, I hope."
  • "But have you not received my notes?" cried Marianne in the wildest
  • anxiety. "Here is some mistake I am sure--some dreadful mistake. What
  • can be the meaning of it? Tell me, Willoughby; for heaven's sake tell
  • me, what is the matter?"
  • He made no reply; his complexion changed and all his embarrassment
  • returned; but as if, on catching the eye of the young lady with whom he
  • had been previously talking, he felt the necessity of instant exertion,
  • he recovered himself again, and after saying, "Yes, I had the pleasure
  • of receiving the information of your arrival in town, which you were so
  • good as to send me," turned hastily away with a slight bow and joined
  • his friend.
  • Marianne, now looking dreadfully white, and unable to stand, sunk into
  • her chair, and Elinor, expecting every moment to see her faint, tried
  • to screen her from the observation of others, while reviving her with
  • lavender water.
  • "Go to him, Elinor," she cried, as soon as she could speak, "and force
  • him to come to me. Tell him I must see him again--must speak to him
  • instantly.-- I cannot rest--I shall not have a moment's peace till this
  • is explained--some dreadful misapprehension or other.-- Oh go to him
  • this moment."
  • "How can that be done? No, my dearest Marianne, you must wait. This is
  • not the place for explanations. Wait only till tomorrow."
  • With difficulty however could she prevent her from following him
  • herself; and to persuade her to check her agitation, to wait, at least,
  • with the appearance of composure, till she might speak to him with more
  • privacy and more effect, was impossible; for Marianne continued
  • incessantly to give way in a low voice to the misery of her feelings,
  • by exclamations of wretchedness. In a short time Elinor saw Willoughby
  • quit the room by the door towards the staircase, and telling Marianne
  • that he was gone, urged the impossibility of speaking to him again that
  • evening, as a fresh argument for her to be calm. She instantly begged
  • her sister would entreat Lady Middleton to take them home, as she was
  • too miserable to stay a minute longer.
  • Lady Middleton, though in the middle of a rubber, on being informed
  • that Marianne was unwell, was too polite to object for a moment to her
  • wish of going away, and making over her cards to a friend, they
  • departed as soon the carriage could be found. Scarcely a word was
  • spoken during their return to Berkeley Street. Marianne was in a
  • silent agony, too much oppressed even for tears; but as Mrs. Jennings
  • was luckily not come home, they could go directly to their own room,
  • where hartshorn restored her a little to herself. She was soon
  • undressed and in bed, and as she seemed desirous of being alone, her
  • sister then left her, and while she waited the return of Mrs. Jennings,
  • had leisure enough for thinking over the past.
  • That some kind of engagement had subsisted between Willoughby and
  • Marianne she could not doubt, and that Willoughby was weary of it,
  • seemed equally clear; for however Marianne might still feed her own
  • wishes, SHE could not attribute such behaviour to mistake or
  • misapprehension of any kind. Nothing but a thorough change of
  • sentiment could account for it. Her indignation would have been still
  • stronger than it was, had she not witnessed that embarrassment which
  • seemed to speak a consciousness of his own misconduct, and prevented
  • her from believing him so unprincipled as to have been sporting with
  • the affections of her sister from the first, without any design that
  • would bear investigation. Absence might have weakened his regard, and
  • convenience might have determined him to overcome it, but that such a
  • regard had formerly existed she could not bring herself to doubt.
  • As for Marianne, on the pangs which so unhappy a meeting must already
  • have given her, and on those still more severe which might await her in
  • its probable consequence, she could not reflect without the deepest
  • concern. Her own situation gained in the comparison; for while she
  • could ESTEEM Edward as much as ever, however they might be divided in
  • future, her mind might be always supported. But every circumstance
  • that could embitter such an evil seemed uniting to heighten the misery
  • of Marianne in a final separation from Willoughby--in an immediate and
  • irreconcilable rupture with him.
  • CHAPTER 29
  • Before the house-maid had lit their fire the next day, or the sun
  • gained any power over a cold, gloomy morning in January, Marianne, only
  • half dressed, was kneeling against one of the window-seats for the sake
  • of all the little light she could command from it, and writing as fast
  • as a continual flow of tears would permit her. In this situation,
  • Elinor, roused from sleep by her agitation and sobs, first perceived
  • her; and after observing her for a few moments with silent anxiety,
  • said, in a tone of the most considerate gentleness,
  • "Marianne, may I ask-?"
  • "No, Elinor," she replied, "ask nothing; you will soon know all."
  • The sort of desperate calmness with which this was said, lasted no
  • longer than while she spoke, and was immediately followed by a return
  • of the same excessive affliction. It was some minutes before she could
  • go on with her letter, and the frequent bursts of grief which still
  • obliged her, at intervals, to withhold her pen, were proofs enough of
  • her feeling how more than probable it was that she was writing for the
  • last time to Willoughby.
  • Elinor paid her every quiet and unobtrusive attention in her power; and
  • she would have tried to sooth and tranquilize her still more, had not
  • Marianne entreated her, with all the eagerness of the most nervous
  • irritability, not to speak to her for the world. In such
  • circumstances, it was better for both that they should not be long
  • together; and the restless state of Marianne's mind not only prevented
  • her from remaining in the room a moment after she was dressed, but
  • requiring at once solitude and continual change of place, made her
  • wander about the house till breakfast time, avoiding the sight of every
  • body.
  • At breakfast she neither ate, nor attempted to eat any thing; and
  • Elinor's attention was then all employed, not in urging her, not in
  • pitying her, nor in appearing to regard her, but in endeavouring to
  • engage Mrs. Jennings's notice entirely to herself.
  • As this was a favourite meal with Mrs. Jennings, it lasted a
  • considerable time, and they were just setting themselves, after it,
  • round the common working table, when a letter was delivered to
  • Marianne, which she eagerly caught from the servant, and, turning of a
  • death-like paleness, instantly ran out of the room. Elinor, who saw as
  • plainly by this, as if she had seen the direction, that it must come
  • from Willoughby, felt immediately such a sickness at heart as made her
  • hardly able to hold up her head, and sat in such a general tremour as
  • made her fear it impossible to escape Mrs. Jennings's notice. That good
  • lady, however, saw only that Marianne had received a letter from
  • Willoughby, which appeared to her a very good joke, and which she
  • treated accordingly, by hoping, with a laugh, that she would find it to
  • her liking. Of Elinor's distress, she was too busily employed in
  • measuring lengths of worsted for her rug, to see any thing at all; and
  • calmly continuing her talk, as soon as Marianne disappeared, she said,
  • "Upon my word, I never saw a young woman so desperately in love in my
  • life! MY girls were nothing to her, and yet they used to be foolish
  • enough; but as for Miss Marianne, she is quite an altered creature. I
  • hope, from the bottom of my heart, he won't keep her waiting much
  • longer, for it is quite grievous to see her look so ill and forlorn.
  • Pray, when are they to be married?"
  • Elinor, though never less disposed to speak than at that moment,
  • obliged herself to answer such an attack as this, and, therefore,
  • trying to smile, replied, "And have you really, Ma'am, talked yourself
  • into a persuasion of my sister's being engaged to Mr. Willoughby? I
  • thought it had been only a joke, but so serious a question seems to
  • imply more; and I must beg, therefore, that you will not deceive
  • yourself any longer. I do assure you that nothing would surprise me
  • more than to hear of their being going to be married."
  • "For shame, for shame, Miss Dashwood! how can you talk so? Don't we
  • all know that it must be a match, that they were over head and ears in
  • love with each other from the first moment they met? Did not I see
  • them together in Devonshire every day, and all day long; and did not I
  • know that your sister came to town with me on purpose to buy wedding
  • clothes? Come, come, this won't do. Because you are so sly about it
  • yourself, you think nobody else has any senses; but it is no such
  • thing, I can tell you, for it has been known all over town this ever so
  • long. I tell every body of it and so does Charlotte."
  • "Indeed, Ma'am," said Elinor, very seriously, "you are mistaken.
  • Indeed, you are doing a very unkind thing in spreading the report, and
  • you will find that you have though you will not believe me now."
  • Mrs. Jennings laughed again, but Elinor had not spirits to say more,
  • and eager at all events to know what Willoughby had written, hurried
  • away to their room, where, on opening the door, she saw Marianne
  • stretched on the bed, almost choked by grief, one letter in her hand,
  • and two or three others laying by her. Elinor drew near, but without
  • saying a word; and seating herself on the bed, took her hand, kissed
  • her affectionately several times, and then gave way to a burst of
  • tears, which at first was scarcely less violent than Marianne's. The
  • latter, though unable to speak, seemed to feel all the tenderness of
  • this behaviour, and after some time thus spent in joint affliction, she
  • put all the letters into Elinor's hands; and then covering her face
  • with her handkerchief, almost screamed with agony. Elinor, who knew
  • that such grief, shocking as it was to witness it, must have its
  • course, watched by her till this excess of suffering had somewhat spent
  • itself, and then turning eagerly to Willoughby's letter, read as
  • follows:
  • "Bond Street, January.
  • "MY DEAR MADAM,
  • "I have just had the honour of receiving your
  • letter, for which I beg to return my sincere
  • acknowledgments. I am much concerned to find there
  • was anything in my behaviour last night that did
  • not meet your approbation; and though I am quite at
  • a loss to discover in what point I could be so
  • unfortunate as to offend you, I entreat your
  • forgiveness of what I can assure you to have been
  • perfectly unintentional. I shall never reflect on
  • my former acquaintance with your family in Devonshire
  • without the most grateful pleasure, and flatter
  • myself it will not be broken by any mistake or
  • misapprehension of my actions. My esteem for your
  • whole family is very sincere; but if I have been so
  • unfortunate as to give rise to a belief of more than
  • I felt, or meant to express, I shall reproach myself
  • for not having been more guarded in my professions
  • of that esteem. That I should ever have meant more
  • you will allow to be impossible, when you understand
  • that my affections have been long engaged elsewhere,
  • and it will not be many weeks, I believe, before
  • this engagement is fulfilled. It is with great
  • regret that I obey your commands in returning the
  • letters with which I have been honoured from you,
  • and the lock of hair, which you so obligingly bestowed
  • on me.
  • "I am, dear Madam,
  • "Your most obedient
  • "humble servant,
  • "JOHN WILLOUGHBY."
  • With what indignation such a letter as this must be read by Miss
  • Dashwood, may be imagined. Though aware, before she began it, that it
  • must bring a confession of his inconstancy, and confirm their
  • separation for ever, she was not aware that such language could be
  • suffered to announce it; nor could she have supposed Willoughby capable
  • of departing so far from the appearance of every honourable and
  • delicate feeling--so far from the common decorum of a gentleman, as to
  • send a letter so impudently cruel: a letter which, instead of bringing
  • with his desire of a release any professions of regret, acknowledged no
  • breach of faith, denied all peculiar affection whatever--a letter of
  • which every line was an insult, and which proclaimed its writer to be
  • deep in hardened villainy.
  • She paused over it for some time with indignant astonishment; then read
  • it again and again; but every perusal only served to increase her
  • abhorrence of the man, and so bitter were her feelings against him,
  • that she dared not trust herself to speak, lest she might wound
  • Marianne still deeper by treating their disengagement, not as a loss to
  • her of any possible good but as an escape from the worst and most
  • irremediable of all evils, a connection, for life, with an unprincipled
  • man, as a deliverance the most real, a blessing the most important.
  • In her earnest meditations on the contents of the letter, on the
  • depravity of that mind which could dictate it, and probably, on the
  • very different mind of a very different person, who had no other
  • connection whatever with the affair than what her heart gave him with
  • every thing that passed, Elinor forgot the immediate distress of her
  • sister, forgot that she had three letters on her lap yet unread, and so
  • entirely forgot how long she had been in the room, that when on hearing
  • a carriage drive up to the door, she went to the window to see who
  • could be coming so unreasonably early, she was all astonishment to
  • perceive Mrs. Jennings's chariot, which she knew had not been ordered
  • till one. Determined not to quit Marianne, though hopeless of
  • contributing, at present, to her ease, she hurried away to excuse
  • herself from attending Mrs. Jennings, on account of her sister being
  • indisposed. Mrs. Jennings, with a thoroughly good-humoured concern for
  • its cause, admitted the excuse most readily, and Elinor, after seeing
  • her safe off, returned to Marianne, whom she found attempting to rise
  • from the bed, and whom she reached just in time to prevent her from
  • falling on the floor, faint and giddy from a long want of proper rest
  • and food; for it was many days since she had any appetite, and many
  • nights since she had really slept; and now, when her mind was no longer
  • supported by the fever of suspense, the consequence of all this was
  • felt in an aching head, a weakened stomach, and a general nervous
  • faintness. A glass of wine, which Elinor procured for her directly,
  • made her more comfortable, and she was at last able to express some
  • sense of her kindness, by saying,
  • "Poor Elinor! how unhappy I make you!"
  • "I only wish," replied her sister, "there were any thing I COULD do,
  • which might be of comfort to you."
  • This, as every thing else would have been, was too much for Marianne,
  • who could only exclaim, in the anguish of her heart, "Oh! Elinor, I am
  • miserable, indeed," before her voice was entirely lost in sobs.
  • Elinor could no longer witness this torrent of unresisted grief in
  • silence.
  • "Exert yourself, dear Marianne," she cried, "if you would not kill
  • yourself and all who love you. Think of your mother; think of her
  • misery while YOU suffer: for her sake you must exert yourself."
  • "I cannot, I cannot," cried Marianne; "leave me, leave me, if I
  • distress you; leave me, hate me, forget me! but do not torture me so.
  • Oh! how easy for those, who have no sorrow of their own to talk of
  • exertion! Happy, happy Elinor, YOU cannot have an idea of what I
  • suffer."
  • "Do you call ME happy, Marianne? Ah! if you knew!--And can you believe
  • me to be so, while I see you so wretched!"
  • "Forgive me, forgive me," throwing her arms round her sister's neck; "I
  • know you feel for me; I know what a heart you have; but yet you
  • are--you must be happy; Edward loves you--what, oh what, can do away
  • such happiness as that?"
  • "Many, many circumstances," said Elinor, solemnly.
  • "No, no, no," cried Marianne wildly, "he loves you, and only you. You
  • CAN have no grief."
  • "I can have no pleasure while I see you in this state."
  • "And you will never see me otherwise. Mine is a misery which nothing
  • can do away."
  • "You must not talk so, Marianne. Have you no comforts? no friends? Is
  • your loss such as leaves no opening for consolation? Much as you
  • suffer now, think of what you would have suffered if the discovery of
  • his character had been delayed to a later period--if your engagement
  • had been carried on for months and months, as it might have been,
  • before he chose to put an end to it. Every additional day of unhappy
  • confidence, on your side, would have made the blow more dreadful."
  • "Engagement!" cried Marianne, "there has been no engagement."
  • "No engagement!"
  • "No, he is not so unworthy as you believe him. He has broken no faith
  • with me."
  • "But he told you that he loved you."
  • "Yes--no--never absolutely. It was every day implied, but never
  • professedly declared. Sometimes I thought it had been--but it never
  • was."
  • "Yet you wrote to him?"--
  • "Yes--could that be wrong after all that had passed?-- But I cannot
  • talk."
  • Elinor said no more, and turning again to the three letters which now
  • raised a much stronger curiosity than before, directly ran over the
  • contents of all. The first, which was what her sister had sent him on
  • their arrival in town, was to this effect.
  • Berkeley Street, January.
  • "How surprised you will be, Willoughby, on
  • receiving this; and I think you will feel something
  • more than surprise, when you know that I am in town.
  • An opportunity of coming hither, though with Mrs.
  • Jennings, was a temptation we could not resist.
  • I wish you may receive this in time to come here
  • to-night, but I will not depend on it. At any rate
  • I shall expect you to-morrow. For the present, adieu.
  • "M.D."
  • Her second note, which had been written on the morning after the dance
  • at the Middletons', was in these words:--
  • "I cannot express my disappointment in having
  • missed you the day before yesterday, nor my astonishment
  • at not having received any answer to a note which
  • I sent you above a week ago. I have been expecting
  • to hear from you, and still more to see you, every
  • hour of the day. Pray call again as soon as possible,
  • and explain the reason of my having expected this
  • in vain. You had better come earlier another time,
  • because we are generally out by one. We were last
  • night at Lady Middleton's, where there was a dance.
  • I have been told that you were asked to be of the
  • party. But could it be so? You must be very much
  • altered indeed since we parted, if that could be
  • the case, and you not there. But I will not suppose
  • this possible, and I hope very soon to receive your
  • personal assurance of its being otherwise.
  • "M.D."
  • The contents of her last note to him were these:--
  • "What am I to imagine, Willoughby, by your
  • behaviour last night? Again I demand an explanation
  • of it. I was prepared to meet you with the pleasure
  • which our separation naturally produced, with the
  • familiarity which our intimacy at Barton appeared
  • to me to justify. I was repulsed indeed! I have
  • passed a wretched night in endeavouring to excuse
  • a conduct which can scarcely be called less than
  • insulting; but though I have not yet been able to
  • form any reasonable apology for your behaviour,
  • I am perfectly ready to hear your justification of
  • it. You have perhaps been misinformed, or purposely
  • deceived, in something concerning me, which may have
  • lowered me in your opinion. Tell me what it is,
  • explain the grounds on which you acted, and I shall
  • be satisfied, in being able to satisfy you. It
  • would grieve me indeed to be obliged to think ill
  • of you; but if I am to do it, if I am to learn that
  • you are not what we have hitherto believed you, that
  • your regard for us all was insincere, that your
  • behaviour to me was intended only to deceive, let
  • it be told as soon as possible. My feelings are at
  • present in a state of dreadful indecision; I wish
  • to acquit you, but certainty on either side will be
  • ease to what I now suffer. If your sentiments are
  • no longer what they were, you will return my notes,
  • and the lock of my hair which is in your possession.
  • "M.D."
  • That such letters, so full of affection and confidence, could have been
  • so answered, Elinor, for Willoughby's sake, would have been unwilling
  • to believe. But her condemnation of him did not blind her to the
  • impropriety of their having been written at all; and she was silently
  • grieving over the imprudence which had hazarded such unsolicited proofs
  • of tenderness, not warranted by anything preceding, and most severely
  • condemned by the event, when Marianne, perceiving that she had finished
  • the letters, observed to her that they contained nothing but what any
  • one would have written in the same situation.
  • "I felt myself," she added, "to be as solemnly engaged to him, as if
  • the strictest legal covenant had bound us to each other."
  • "I can believe it," said Elinor; "but unfortunately he did not feel the
  • same."
  • "He DID feel the same, Elinor--for weeks and weeks he felt it. I know
  • he did. Whatever may have changed him now, (and nothing but the
  • blackest art employed against me can have done it), I was once as dear
  • to him as my own soul could wish. This lock of hair, which now he can
  • so readily give up, was begged of me with the most earnest
  • supplication. Had you seen his look, his manner, had you heard his
  • voice at that moment! Have you forgot the last evening of our being
  • together at Barton? The morning that we parted too! When he told me
  • that it might be many weeks before we met again--his distress--can I
  • ever forget his distress?"
  • For a moment or two she could say no more; but when this emotion had
  • passed away, she added, in a firmer tone,
  • "Elinor, I have been cruelly used; but not by Willoughby."
  • "Dearest Marianne, who but himself? By whom can he have been
  • instigated?"
  • "By all the world, rather than by his own heart. I could rather
  • believe every creature of my acquaintance leagued together to ruin me
  • in his opinion, than believe his nature capable of such cruelty. This
  • woman of whom he writes--whoever she be--or any one, in short, but your
  • own dear self, mama, and Edward, may have been so barbarous to bely me.
  • Beyond you three, is there a creature in the world whom I would not
  • rather suspect of evil than Willoughby, whose heart I know so well?"
  • Elinor would not contend, and only replied, "Whoever may have been so
  • detestably your enemy, let them be cheated of their malignant triumph,
  • my dear sister, by seeing how nobly the consciousness of your own
  • innocence and good intentions supports your spirits. It is a
  • reasonable and laudable pride which resists such malevolence."
  • "No, no," cried Marianne, "misery such as mine has no pride. I care
  • not who knows that I am wretched. The triumph of seeing me so may be
  • open to all the world. Elinor, Elinor, they who suffer little may be
  • proud and independent as they like--may resist insult, or return
  • mortification--but I cannot. I must feel--I must be wretched--and they
  • are welcome to enjoy the consciousness of it that can."
  • "But for my mother's sake and mine--"
  • "I would do more than for my own. But to appear happy when I am so
  • miserable--Oh! who can require it?"
  • Again they were both silent. Elinor was employed in walking
  • thoughtfully from the fire to the window, from the window to the fire,
  • without knowing that she received warmth from one, or discerning
  • objects through the other; and Marianne, seated at the foot of the bed,
  • with her head leaning against one of its posts, again took up
  • Willoughby's letter, and, after shuddering over every sentence,
  • exclaimed--
  • "It is too much! Oh, Willoughby, Willoughby, could this be yours!
  • Cruel, cruel--nothing can acquit you. Elinor, nothing can. Whatever
  • he might have heard against me--ought he not to have suspended his
  • belief? ought he not to have told me of it, to have given me the power
  • of clearing myself? 'The lock of hair, (repeating it from the letter,)
  • which you so obligingly bestowed on me'--That is unpardonable.
  • Willoughby, where was your heart when you wrote those words? Oh,
  • barbarously insolent!--Elinor, can he be justified?"
  • "No, Marianne, in no possible way."
  • "And yet this woman--who knows what her art may have been?--how long it
  • may have been premeditated, and how deeply contrived by her!--Who is
  • she?--Who can she be?--Whom did I ever hear him talk of as young and
  • attractive among his female acquaintance?--Oh! no one, no one--he
  • talked to me only of myself."
  • Another pause ensued; Marianne was greatly agitated, and it ended thus.
  • "Elinor, I must go home. I must go and comfort mama. Can not we be
  • gone to-morrow?"
  • "To-morrow, Marianne!"
  • "Yes, why should I stay here? I came only for Willoughby's sake--and
  • now who cares for me? Who regards me?"
  • "It would be impossible to go to-morrow. We owe Mrs. Jennings much more
  • than civility; and civility of the commonest kind must prevent such a
  • hasty removal as that."
  • "Well then, another day or two, perhaps; but I cannot stay here long, I
  • cannot stay to endure the questions and remarks of all these people.
  • The Middletons and Palmers--how am I to bear their pity? The pity of
  • such a woman as Lady Middleton! Oh, what would HE say to that!"
  • Elinor advised her to lie down again, and for a moment she did so; but
  • no attitude could give her ease; and in restless pain of mind and body
  • she moved from one posture to another, till growing more and more
  • hysterical, her sister could with difficulty keep her on the bed at
  • all, and for some time was fearful of being constrained to call for
  • assistance. Some lavender drops, however, which she was at length
  • persuaded to take, were of use; and from that time till Mrs. Jennings
  • returned, she continued on the bed quiet and motionless.
  • CHAPTER 30
  • Mrs. Jennings came immediately to their room on her return, and without
  • waiting to have her request of admittance answered, opened the door and
  • walked in with a look of real concern.
  • "How do you do my dear?"--said she in a voice of great compassion to
  • Marianne, who turned away her face without attempting to answer.
  • "How is she, Miss Dashwood?--Poor thing! she looks very bad.-- No
  • wonder. Ay, it is but too true. He is to be married very soon--a
  • good-for-nothing fellow! I have no patience with him. Mrs. Taylor
  • told me of it half an hour ago, and she was told it by a particular
  • friend of Miss Grey herself, else I am sure I should not have believed
  • it; and I was almost ready to sink as it was. Well, said I, all I can
  • say is, that if this be true, he has used a young lady of my
  • acquaintance abominably ill, and I wish with all my soul his wife may
  • plague his heart out. And so I shall always say, my dear, you may
  • depend on it. I have no notion of men's going on in this way; and if
  • ever I meet him again, I will give him such a dressing as he has not
  • had this many a day. But there is one comfort, my dear Miss Marianne;
  • he is not the only young man in the world worth having; and with your
  • pretty face you will never want admirers. Well, poor thing! I won't
  • disturb her any longer, for she had better have her cry out at once and
  • have done with. The Parrys and Sandersons luckily are coming tonight
  • you know, and that will amuse her."
  • She then went away, walking on tiptoe out of the room, as if she
  • supposed her young friend's affliction could be increased by noise.
  • Marianne, to the surprise of her sister, determined on dining with
  • them. Elinor even advised her against it. But "no, she would go down;
  • she could bear it very well, and the bustle about her would be less."
  • Elinor, pleased to have her governed for a moment by such a motive,
  • though believing it hardly possible that she could sit out the dinner,
  • said no more; and adjusting her dress for her as well as she could,
  • while Marianne still remained on the bed, was ready to assist her into
  • the dining room as soon as they were summoned to it.
  • When there, though looking most wretchedly, she ate more and was calmer
  • than her sister had expected. Had she tried to speak, or had she been
  • conscious of half Mrs. Jennings's well-meant but ill-judged attentions
  • to her, this calmness could not have been maintained; but not a
  • syllable escaped her lips; and the abstraction of her thoughts
  • preserved her in ignorance of every thing that was passing before her.
  • Elinor, who did justice to Mrs. Jennings's kindness, though its
  • effusions were often distressing, and sometimes almost ridiculous, made
  • her those acknowledgments, and returned her those civilities, which her
  • sister could not make or return for herself. Their good friend saw
  • that Marianne was unhappy, and felt that every thing was due to her
  • which might make her at all less so. She treated her therefore, with
  • all the indulgent fondness of a parent towards a favourite child on the
  • last day of its holidays. Marianne was to have the best place by the
  • fire, was to be tempted to eat by every delicacy in the house, and to
  • be amused by the relation of all the news of the day. Had not Elinor,
  • in the sad countenance of her sister, seen a check to all mirth, she
  • could have been entertained by Mrs. Jennings's endeavours to cure a
  • disappointment in love, by a variety of sweetmeats and olives, and a
  • good fire. As soon, however, as the consciousness of all this was
  • forced by continual repetition on Marianne, she could stay no longer.
  • With a hasty exclamation of Misery, and a sign to her sister not to
  • follow her, she directly got up and hurried out of the room.
  • "Poor soul!" cried Mrs. Jennings, as soon as she was gone, "how it
  • grieves me to see her! And I declare if she is not gone away without
  • finishing her wine! And the dried cherries too! Lord! nothing seems
  • to do her any good. I am sure if I knew of any thing she would like, I
  • would send all over the town for it. Well, it is the oddest thing to
  • me, that a man should use such a pretty girl so ill! But when there is
  • plenty of money on one side, and next to none on the other, Lord bless
  • you! they care no more about such things!--"
  • "The lady then--Miss Grey I think you called her--is very rich?"
  • "Fifty thousand pounds, my dear. Did you ever see her? a smart,
  • stylish girl they say, but not handsome. I remember her aunt very
  • well, Biddy Henshawe; she married a very wealthy man. But the family
  • are all rich together. Fifty thousand pounds! and by all accounts, it
  • won't come before it's wanted; for they say he is all to pieces. No
  • wonder! dashing about with his curricle and hunters! Well, it don't
  • signify talking; but when a young man, be who he will, comes and makes
  • love to a pretty girl, and promises marriage, he has no business to fly
  • off from his word only because he grows poor, and a richer girl is
  • ready to have him. Why don't he, in such a case, sell his horses, let
  • his house, turn off his servants, and make a thorough reform at once? I
  • warrant you, Miss Marianne would have been ready to wait till matters
  • came round. But that won't do now-a-days; nothing in the way of
  • pleasure can ever be given up by the young men of this age."
  • "Do you know what kind of a girl Miss Grey is? Is she said to be
  • amiable?"
  • "I never heard any harm of her; indeed I hardly ever heard her
  • mentioned; except that Mrs. Taylor did say this morning, that one day
  • Miss Walker hinted to her, that she believed Mr. and Mrs. Ellison would
  • not be sorry to have Miss Grey married, for she and Mrs. Ellison could
  • never agree."--
  • "And who are the Ellisons?"
  • "Her guardians, my dear. But now she is of age and may choose for
  • herself; and a pretty choice she has made!--What now," after pausing a
  • moment--"your poor sister is gone to her own room, I suppose, to moan
  • by herself. Is there nothing one can get to comfort her? Poor dear,
  • it seems quite cruel to let her be alone. Well, by-and-by we shall
  • have a few friends, and that will amuse her a little. What shall we
  • play at? She hates whist I know; but is there no round game she cares
  • for?"
  • "Dear ma'am, this kindness is quite unnecessary. Marianne, I dare say,
  • will not leave her room again this evening. I shall persuade her if I
  • can to go early to bed, for I am sure she wants rest."
  • "Aye, I believe that will be best for her. Let her name her own
  • supper, and go to bed. Lord! no wonder she has been looking so bad and
  • so cast down this last week or two, for this matter I suppose has been
  • hanging over her head as long as that. And so the letter that came
  • today finished it! Poor soul! I am sure if I had had a notion of it,
  • I would not have joked her about it for all my money. But then you
  • know, how should I guess such a thing? I made sure of its being
  • nothing but a common love letter, and you know young people like to be
  • laughed at about them. Lord! how concerned Sir John and my daughters
  • will be when they hear it! If I had my senses about me I might have
  • called in Conduit Street in my way home, and told them of it. But I
  • shall see them tomorrow."
  • "It would be unnecessary I am sure, for you to caution Mrs. Palmer and
  • Sir John against ever naming Mr. Willoughby, or making the slightest
  • allusion to what has passed, before my sister. Their own good-nature
  • must point out to them the real cruelty of appearing to know any thing
  • about it when she is present; and the less that may ever be said to
  • myself on the subject, the more my feelings will be spared, as you my
  • dear madam will easily believe."
  • "Oh! Lord! yes, that I do indeed. It must be terrible for you to hear
  • it talked of; and as for your sister, I am sure I would not mention a
  • word about it to her for the world. You saw I did not all dinner time.
  • No more would Sir John, nor my daughters, for they are all very
  • thoughtful and considerate; especially if I give them a hint, as I
  • certainly will. For my part, I think the less that is said about such
  • things, the better, the sooner 'tis blown over and forgot. And what
  • does talking ever do you know?"
  • "In this affair it can only do harm; more so perhaps than in many cases
  • of a similar kind, for it has been attended by circumstances which, for
  • the sake of every one concerned in it, make it unfit to become the
  • public conversation. I must do THIS justice to Mr. Willoughby--he has
  • broken no positive engagement with my sister."
  • "Law, my dear! Don't pretend to defend him. No positive engagement
  • indeed! after taking her all over Allenham House, and fixing on the
  • very rooms they were to live in hereafter!"
  • Elinor, for her sister's sake, could not press the subject farther, and
  • she hoped it was not required of her for Willoughby's; since, though
  • Marianne might lose much, he could gain very little by the enforcement
  • of the real truth. After a short silence on both sides, Mrs. Jennings,
  • with all her natural hilarity, burst forth again.
  • "Well, my dear, 'tis a true saying about an ill-wind, for it will be
  • all the better for Colonel Brandon. He will have her at last; aye,
  • that he will. Mind me, now, if they an't married by Mid-summer. Lord!
  • how he'll chuckle over this news! I hope he will come tonight. It
  • will be all to one a better match for your sister. Two thousand a year
  • without debt or drawback--except the little love-child, indeed; aye, I
  • had forgot her; but she may be 'prenticed out at a small cost, and then
  • what does it signify? Delaford is a nice place, I can tell you;
  • exactly what I call a nice old fashioned place, full of comforts and
  • conveniences; quite shut in with great garden walls that are covered
  • with the best fruit-trees in the country; and such a mulberry tree in
  • one corner! Lord! how Charlotte and I did stuff the only time we were
  • there! Then, there is a dove-cote, some delightful stew-ponds, and a
  • very pretty canal; and every thing, in short, that one could wish for;
  • and, moreover, it is close to the church, and only a quarter of a mile
  • from the turnpike-road, so 'tis never dull, for if you only go and sit
  • up in an old yew arbour behind the house, you may see all the carriages
  • that pass along. Oh! 'tis a nice place! A butcher hard by in the
  • village, and the parsonage-house within a stone's throw. To my fancy,
  • a thousand times prettier than Barton Park, where they are forced to
  • send three miles for their meat, and have not a neighbour nearer than
  • your mother. Well, I shall spirit up the Colonel as soon as I can.
  • One shoulder of mutton, you know, drives another down. If we CAN but
  • put Willoughby out of her head!"
  • "Ay, if we can do THAT, Ma'am," said Elinor, "we shall do very well
  • with or without Colonel Brandon." And then rising, she went away to
  • join Marianne, whom she found, as she expected, in her own room,
  • leaning, in silent misery, over the small remains of a fire, which,
  • till Elinor's entrance, had been her only light.
  • "You had better leave me," was all the notice that her sister received
  • from her.
  • "I will leave you," said Elinor, "if you will go to bed." But this,
  • from the momentary perverseness of impatient suffering, she at first
  • refused to do. Her sister's earnest, though gentle persuasion,
  • however, soon softened her to compliance, and Elinor saw her lay her
  • aching head on the pillow, and as she hoped, in a way to get some quiet
  • rest before she left her.
  • In the drawing-room, whither she then repaired, she was soon joined by
  • Mrs. Jennings, with a wine-glass, full of something, in her hand.
  • "My dear," said she, entering, "I have just recollected that I have
  • some of the finest old Constantia wine in the house that ever was
  • tasted, so I have brought a glass of it for your sister. My poor
  • husband! how fond he was of it! Whenever he had a touch of his old
  • colicky gout, he said it did him more good than any thing else in the
  • world. Do take it to your sister."
  • "Dear Ma'am," replied Elinor, smiling at the difference of the
  • complaints for which it was recommended, "how good you are! But I have
  • just left Marianne in bed, and, I hope, almost asleep; and as I think
  • nothing will be of so much service to her as rest, if you will give me
  • leave, I will drink the wine myself."
  • Mrs. Jennings, though regretting that she had not been five minutes
  • earlier, was satisfied with the compromise; and Elinor, as she
  • swallowed the chief of it, reflected, that though its effects on a
  • colicky gout were, at present, of little importance to her, its healing
  • powers, on a disappointed heart might be as reasonably tried on herself
  • as on her sister.
  • Colonel Brandon came in while the party were at tea, and by his manner
  • of looking round the room for Marianne, Elinor immediately fancied that
  • he neither expected nor wished to see her there, and, in short, that he
  • was already aware of what occasioned her absence. Mrs. Jennings was
  • not struck by the same thought; for soon after his entrance, she walked
  • across the room to the tea-table where Elinor presided, and whispered--
  • "The Colonel looks as grave as ever you see. He knows nothing of it;
  • do tell him, my dear."
  • He shortly afterwards drew a chair close to hers, and, with a look
  • which perfectly assured her of his good information, inquired after her
  • sister.
  • "Marianne is not well," said she. "She has been indisposed all day,
  • and we have persuaded her to go to bed."
  • "Perhaps, then," he hesitatingly replied, "what I heard this morning
  • may be--there may be more truth in it than I could believe possible at
  • first."
  • "What did you hear?"
  • "That a gentleman, whom I had reason to think--in short, that a man,
  • whom I KNEW to be engaged--but how shall I tell you? If you know it
  • already, as surely you must, I may be spared."
  • "You mean," answered Elinor, with forced calmness, "Mr. Willoughby's
  • marriage with Miss Grey. Yes, we DO know it all. This seems to have
  • been a day of general elucidation, for this very morning first unfolded
  • it to us. Mr. Willoughby is unfathomable! Where did you hear it?"
  • "In a stationer's shop in Pall Mall, where I had business. Two ladies
  • were waiting for their carriage, and one of them was giving the other
  • an account of the intended match, in a voice so little attempting
  • concealment, that it was impossible for me not to hear all. The name
  • of Willoughby, John Willoughby, frequently repeated, first caught my
  • attention; and what followed was a positive assertion that every thing
  • was now finally settled respecting his marriage with Miss Grey--it was
  • no longer to be a secret--it would take place even within a few weeks,
  • with many particulars of preparations and other matters. One thing,
  • especially, I remember, because it served to identify the man still
  • more:--as soon as the ceremony was over, they were to go to Combe
  • Magna, his seat in Somersetshire. My astonishment!--but it would be
  • impossible to describe what I felt. The communicative lady I learnt,
  • on inquiry, for I stayed in the shop till they were gone, was a Mrs.
  • Ellison, and that, as I have been since informed, is the name of Miss
  • Grey's guardian."
  • "It is. But have you likewise heard that Miss Grey has fifty thousand
  • pounds? In that, if in any thing, we may find an explanation."
  • "It may be so; but Willoughby is capable--at least I think"--he stopped
  • a moment; then added in a voice which seemed to distrust itself, "And
  • your sister--how did she--"
  • "Her sufferings have been very severe. I have only to hope that they
  • may be proportionately short. It has been, it is a most cruel
  • affliction. Till yesterday, I believe, she never doubted his regard;
  • and even now, perhaps--but I am almost convinced that he never was
  • really attached to her. He has been very deceitful! and, in some
  • points, there seems a hardness of heart about him."
  • "Ah!" said Colonel Brandon, "there is, indeed! But your sister does
  • not--I think you said so--she does not consider quite as you do?"
  • "You know her disposition, and may believe how eagerly she would still
  • justify him if she could."
  • He made no answer; and soon afterwards, by the removal of the
  • tea-things, and the arrangement of the card parties, the subject was
  • necessarily dropped. Mrs. Jennings, who had watched them with pleasure
  • while they were talking, and who expected to see the effect of Miss
  • Dashwood's communication, in such an instantaneous gaiety on Colonel
  • Brandon's side, as might have become a man in the bloom of youth, of
  • hope and happiness, saw him, with amazement, remain the whole evening
  • more serious and thoughtful than usual.
  • CHAPTER 31
  • From a night of more sleep than she had expected, Marianne awoke the
  • next morning to the same consciousness of misery in which she had
  • closed her eyes.
  • Elinor encouraged her as much as possible to talk of what she felt; and
  • before breakfast was ready, they had gone through the subject again and
  • again; and with the same steady conviction and affectionate counsel on
  • Elinor's side, the same impetuous feelings and varying opinions on
  • Marianne's, as before. Sometimes she could believe Willoughby to be as
  • unfortunate and as innocent as herself, and at others, lost every
  • consolation in the impossibility of acquitting him. At one moment she
  • was absolutely indifferent to the observation of all the world, at
  • another she would seclude herself from it for ever, and at a third
  • could resist it with energy. In one thing, however, she was uniform,
  • when it came to the point, in avoiding, where it was possible, the
  • presence of Mrs. Jennings, and in a determined silence when obliged to
  • endure it. Her heart was hardened against the belief of Mrs.
  • Jennings's entering into her sorrows with any compassion.
  • "No, no, no, it cannot be," she cried; "she cannot feel. Her kindness
  • is not sympathy; her good-nature is not tenderness. All that she wants
  • is gossip, and she only likes me now because I supply it."
  • Elinor had not needed this to be assured of the injustice to which her
  • sister was often led in her opinion of others, by the irritable
  • refinement of her own mind, and the too great importance placed by her
  • on the delicacies of a strong sensibility, and the graces of a polished
  • manner. Like half the rest of the world, if more than half there be
  • that are clever and good, Marianne, with excellent abilities and an
  • excellent disposition, was neither reasonable nor candid. She expected
  • from other people the same opinions and feelings as her own, and she
  • judged of their motives by the immediate effect of their actions on
  • herself. Thus a circumstance occurred, while the sisters were together
  • in their own room after breakfast, which sunk the heart of Mrs.
  • Jennings still lower in her estimation; because, through her own
  • weakness, it chanced to prove a source of fresh pain to herself, though
  • Mrs. Jennings was governed in it by an impulse of the utmost goodwill.
  • With a letter in her outstretched hand, and countenance gaily smiling,
  • from the persuasion of bringing comfort, she entered their room, saying,
  • "Now, my dear, I bring you something that I am sure will do you good."
  • Marianne heard enough. In one moment her imagination placed before her
  • a letter from Willoughby, full of tenderness and contrition,
  • explanatory of all that had passed, satisfactory, convincing; and
  • instantly followed by Willoughby himself, rushing eagerly into the room
  • to inforce, at her feet, by the eloquence of his eyes, the assurances
  • of his letter. The work of one moment was destroyed by the next. The
  • hand writing of her mother, never till then unwelcome, was before her;
  • and, in the acuteness of the disappointment which followed such an
  • ecstasy of more than hope, she felt as if, till that instant, she had
  • never suffered.
  • The cruelty of Mrs. Jennings no language, within her reach in her
  • moments of happiest eloquence, could have expressed; and now she could
  • reproach her only by the tears which streamed from her eyes with
  • passionate violence--a reproach, however, so entirely lost on its
  • object, that after many expressions of pity, she withdrew, still
  • referring her to the letter of comfort. But the letter, when she was
  • calm enough to read it, brought little comfort. Willoughby filled
  • every page. Her mother, still confident of their engagement, and
  • relying as warmly as ever on his constancy, had only been roused by
  • Elinor's application, to intreat from Marianne greater openness towards
  • them both; and this, with such tenderness towards her, such affection
  • for Willoughby, and such a conviction of their future happiness in each
  • other, that she wept with agony through the whole of it.
  • All her impatience to be at home again now returned; her mother was
  • dearer to her than ever; dearer through the very excess of her mistaken
  • confidence in Willoughby, and she was wildly urgent to be gone.
  • Elinor, unable herself to determine whether it were better for Marianne
  • to be in London or at Barton, offered no counsel of her own except of
  • patience till their mother's wishes could be known; and at length she
  • obtained her sister's consent to wait for that knowledge.
  • Mrs. Jennings left them earlier than usual; for she could not be easy
  • till the Middletons and Palmers were able to grieve as much as herself;
  • and positively refusing Elinor's offered attendance, went out alone for
  • the rest of the morning. Elinor, with a very heavy heart, aware of the
  • pain she was going to communicate, and perceiving, by Marianne's
  • letter, how ill she had succeeded in laying any foundation for it, then
  • sat down to write her mother an account of what had passed, and entreat
  • her directions for the future; while Marianne, who came into the
  • drawing-room on Mrs. Jennings's going away, remained fixed at the table
  • where Elinor wrote, watching the advancement of her pen, grieving over
  • her for the hardship of such a task, and grieving still more fondly
  • over its effect on her mother.
  • In this manner they had continued about a quarter of an hour, when
  • Marianne, whose nerves could not then bear any sudden noise, was
  • startled by a rap at the door.
  • "Who can this be?" cried Elinor. "So early too! I thought we HAD been
  • safe."
  • Marianne moved to the window--
  • "It is Colonel Brandon!" said she, with vexation. "We are never safe
  • from HIM."
  • "He will not come in, as Mrs. Jennings is from home."
  • "I will not trust to THAT," retreating to her own room. "A man who has
  • nothing to do with his own time has no conscience in his intrusion on
  • that of others."
  • The event proved her conjecture right, though it was founded on
  • injustice and error; for Colonel Brandon DID come in; and Elinor, who
  • was convinced that solicitude for Marianne brought him thither, and who
  • saw THAT solicitude in his disturbed and melancholy look, and in his
  • anxious though brief inquiry after her, could not forgive her sister
  • for esteeming him so lightly.
  • "I met Mrs. Jennings in Bond Street," said he, after the first
  • salutation, "and she encouraged me to come on; and I was the more
  • easily encouraged, because I thought it probable that I might find you
  • alone, which I was very desirous of doing. My object--my wish--my sole
  • wish in desiring it--I hope, I believe it is--is to be a means of
  • giving comfort;--no, I must not say comfort--not present comfort--but
  • conviction, lasting conviction to your sister's mind. My regard for
  • her, for yourself, for your mother--will you allow me to prove it, by
  • relating some circumstances which nothing but a VERY sincere
  • regard--nothing but an earnest desire of being useful--I think I am
  • justified--though where so many hours have been spent in convincing
  • myself that I am right, is there not some reason to fear I may be
  • wrong?" He stopped.
  • "I understand you," said Elinor. "You have something to tell me of Mr.
  • Willoughby, that will open his character farther. Your telling it will
  • be the greatest act of friendship that can be shewn Marianne. MY
  • gratitude will be insured immediately by any information tending to
  • that end, and HERS must be gained by it in time. Pray, pray let me
  • hear it."
  • "You shall; and, to be brief, when I quitted Barton last October,--but
  • this will give you no idea--I must go farther back. You will find me a
  • very awkward narrator, Miss Dashwood; I hardly know where to begin. A
  • short account of myself, I believe, will be necessary, and it SHALL be
  • a short one. On such a subject," sighing heavily, "can I have little
  • temptation to be diffuse."
  • He stopt a moment for recollection, and then, with another sigh, went
  • on.
  • "You have probably entirely forgotten a conversation--(it is not to be
  • supposed that it could make any impression on you)--a conversation
  • between us one evening at Barton Park--it was the evening of a
  • dance--in which I alluded to a lady I had once known, as resembling, in
  • some measure, your sister Marianne."
  • "Indeed," answered Elinor, "I have NOT forgotten it." He looked pleased
  • by this remembrance, and added,
  • "If I am not deceived by the uncertainty, the partiality of tender
  • recollection, there is a very strong resemblance between them, as well
  • in mind as person. The same warmth of heart, the same eagerness of
  • fancy and spirits. This lady was one of my nearest relations, an
  • orphan from her infancy, and under the guardianship of my father. Our
  • ages were nearly the same, and from our earliest years we were
  • playfellows and friends. I cannot remember the time when I did not
  • love Eliza; and my affection for her, as we grew up, was such, as
  • perhaps, judging from my present forlorn and cheerless gravity, you
  • might think me incapable of having ever felt. Hers, for me, was, I
  • believe, fervent as the attachment of your sister to Mr. Willoughby and
  • it was, though from a different cause, no less unfortunate. At
  • seventeen she was lost to me for ever. She was married--married
  • against her inclination to my brother. Her fortune was large, and our
  • family estate much encumbered. And this, I fear, is all that can be
  • said for the conduct of one, who was at once her uncle and guardian.
  • My brother did not deserve her; he did not even love her. I had hoped
  • that her regard for me would support her under any difficulty, and for
  • some time it did; but at last the misery of her situation, for she
  • experienced great unkindness, overcame all her resolution, and though
  • she had promised me that nothing--but how blindly I relate! I have
  • never told you how this was brought on. We were within a few hours of
  • eloping together for Scotland. The treachery, or the folly, of my
  • cousin's maid betrayed us. I was banished to the house of a relation
  • far distant, and she was allowed no liberty, no society, no amusement,
  • till my father's point was gained. I had depended on her fortitude too
  • far, and the blow was a severe one--but had her marriage been happy, so
  • young as I then was, a few months must have reconciled me to it, or at
  • least I should not have now to lament it. This however was not the
  • case. My brother had no regard for her; his pleasures were not what
  • they ought to have been, and from the first he treated her unkindly.
  • The consequence of this, upon a mind so young, so lively, so
  • inexperienced as Mrs. Brandon's, was but too natural. She resigned
  • herself at first to all the misery of her situation; and happy had it
  • been if she had not lived to overcome those regrets which the
  • remembrance of me occasioned. But can we wonder that, with such a
  • husband to provoke inconstancy, and without a friend to advise or
  • restrain her (for my father lived only a few months after their
  • marriage, and I was with my regiment in the East Indies) she should
  • fall? Had I remained in England, perhaps--but I meant to promote the
  • happiness of both by removing from her for years, and for that purpose
  • had procured my exchange. The shock which her marriage had given me,"
  • he continued, in a voice of great agitation, "was of trifling
  • weight--was nothing to what I felt when I heard, about two years
  • afterwards, of her divorce. It was THAT which threw this gloom,--even
  • now the recollection of what I suffered--"
  • He could say no more, and rising hastily walked for a few minutes about
  • the room. Elinor, affected by his relation, and still more by his
  • distress, could not speak. He saw her concern, and coming to her, took
  • her hand, pressed it, and kissed it with grateful respect. A few
  • minutes more of silent exertion enabled him to proceed with composure.
  • "It was nearly three years after this unhappy period before I returned
  • to England. My first care, when I DID arrive, was of course to seek
  • for her; but the search was as fruitless as it was melancholy. I could
  • not trace her beyond her first seducer, and there was every reason to
  • fear that she had removed from him only to sink deeper in a life of
  • sin. Her legal allowance was not adequate to her fortune, nor
  • sufficient for her comfortable maintenance, and I learnt from my
  • brother that the power of receiving it had been made over some months
  • before to another person. He imagined, and calmly could he imagine it,
  • that her extravagance, and consequent distress, had obliged her to
  • dispose of it for some immediate relief. At last, however, and after I
  • had been six months in England, I DID find her. Regard for a former
  • servant of my own, who had since fallen into misfortune, carried me to
  • visit him in a spunging-house, where he was confined for debt; and
  • there, in the same house, under a similar confinement, was my unfortunate
  • sister. So altered--so faded--worn down by acute suffering of every
  • kind! hardly could I believe the melancholy and sickly figure before
  • me, to be the remains of the lovely, blooming, healthful girl, on whom
  • I had once doted. What I endured in so beholding her--but I have no
  • right to wound your feelings by attempting to describe it--I have
  • pained you too much already. That she was, to all appearance, in the
  • last stage of a consumption, was--yes, in such a situation it was my
  • greatest comfort. Life could do nothing for her, beyond giving time
  • for a better preparation for death; and that was given. I saw her
  • placed in comfortable lodgings, and under proper attendants; I visited
  • her every day during the rest of her short life: I was with her in her
  • last moments."
  • Again he stopped to recover himself; and Elinor spoke her feelings in
  • an exclamation of tender concern, at the fate of his unfortunate friend.
  • "Your sister, I hope, cannot be offended," said he, "by the resemblance
  • I have fancied between her and my poor disgraced relation. Their
  • fates, their fortunes, cannot be the same; and had the natural sweet
  • disposition of the one been guarded by a firmer mind, or a happier
  • marriage, she might have been all that you will live to see the other
  • be. But to what does all this lead? I seem to have been distressing
  • you for nothing. Ah! Miss Dashwood--a subject such as this--untouched
  • for fourteen years--it is dangerous to handle it at all! I WILL be
  • more collected--more concise. She left to my care her only child, a
  • little girl, the offspring of her first guilty connection, who was then
  • about three years old. She loved the child, and had always kept it
  • with her. It was a valued, a precious trust to me; and gladly would I
  • have discharged it in the strictest sense, by watching over her
  • education myself, had the nature of our situations allowed it; but I
  • had no family, no home; and my little Eliza was therefore placed at
  • school. I saw her there whenever I could, and after the death of my
  • brother, (which happened about five years ago, and which left to me the
  • possession of the family property,) she visited me at Delaford. I
  • called her a distant relation; but I am well aware that I have in
  • general been suspected of a much nearer connection with her. It is now
  • three years ago (she had just reached her fourteenth year,) that I
  • removed her from school, to place her under the care of a very
  • respectable woman, residing in Dorsetshire, who had the charge of four
  • or five other girls of about the same time of life; and for two years I
  • had every reason to be pleased with her situation. But last February,
  • almost a twelvemonth back, she suddenly disappeared. I had allowed
  • her, (imprudently, as it has since turned out,) at her earnest desire,
  • to go to Bath with one of her young friends, who was attending her
  • father there for his health. I knew him to be a very good sort of man,
  • and I thought well of his daughter--better than she deserved, for, with
  • a most obstinate and ill-judged secrecy, she would tell nothing, would
  • give no clue, though she certainly knew all. He, her father, a
  • well-meaning, but not a quick-sighted man, could really, I believe,
  • give no information; for he had been generally confined to the house,
  • while the girls were ranging over the town and making what acquaintance
  • they chose; and he tried to convince me, as thoroughly as he was
  • convinced himself, of his daughter's being entirely unconcerned in the
  • business. In short, I could learn nothing but that she was gone; all
  • the rest, for eight long months, was left to conjecture. What I
  • thought, what I feared, may be imagined; and what I suffered too."
  • "Good heavens!" cried Elinor, "could it be--could Willoughby!"--
  • "The first news that reached me of her," he continued, "came in a
  • letter from herself, last October. It was forwarded to me from
  • Delaford, and I received it on the very morning of our intended party
  • to Whitwell; and this was the reason of my leaving Barton so suddenly,
  • which I am sure must at the time have appeared strange to every body,
  • and which I believe gave offence to some. Little did Mr. Willoughby
  • imagine, I suppose, when his looks censured me for incivility in
  • breaking up the party, that I was called away to the relief of one whom
  • he had made poor and miserable; but HAD he known it, what would it have
  • availed? Would he have been less gay or less happy in the smiles of
  • your sister? No, he had already done that, which no man who CAN feel
  • for another would do. He had left the girl whose youth and innocence
  • he had seduced, in a situation of the utmost distress, with no
  • creditable home, no help, no friends, ignorant of his address! He had
  • left her, promising to return; he neither returned, nor wrote, nor
  • relieved her."
  • "This is beyond every thing!" exclaimed Elinor.
  • "His character is now before you; expensive, dissipated, and worse than
  • both. Knowing all this, as I have now known it many weeks, guess what
  • I must have felt on seeing your sister as fond of him as ever, and on
  • being assured that she was to marry him: guess what I must have felt
  • for all your sakes. When I came to you last week and found you alone,
  • I came determined to know the truth; though irresolute what to do when
  • it WAS known. My behaviour must have seemed strange to you then; but
  • now you will comprehend it. To suffer you all to be so deceived; to
  • see your sister--but what could I do? I had no hope of interfering
  • with success; and sometimes I thought your sister's influence might yet
  • reclaim him. But now, after such dishonorable usage, who can tell what
  • were his designs on her. Whatever they may have been, however, she may
  • now, and hereafter doubtless WILL turn with gratitude towards her own
  • condition, when she compares it with that of my poor Eliza, when she
  • considers the wretched and hopeless situation of this poor girl, and
  • pictures her to herself, with an affection for him so strong, still as
  • strong as her own, and with a mind tormented by self-reproach, which
  • must attend her through life. Surely this comparison must have its use
  • with her. She will feel her own sufferings to be nothing. They
  • proceed from no misconduct, and can bring no disgrace. On the
  • contrary, every friend must be made still more her friend by them.
  • Concern for her unhappiness, and respect for her fortitude under it,
  • must strengthen every attachment. Use your own discretion, however, in
  • communicating to her what I have told you. You must know best what
  • will be its effect; but had I not seriously, and from my heart believed
  • it might be of service, might lessen her regrets, I would not have
  • suffered myself to trouble you with this account of my family
  • afflictions, with a recital which may seem to have been intended to
  • raise myself at the expense of others."
  • Elinor's thanks followed this speech with grateful earnestness;
  • attended too with the assurance of her expecting material advantage to
  • Marianne, from the communication of what had passed.
  • "I have been more pained," said she, "by her endeavors to acquit him
  • than by all the rest; for it irritates her mind more than the most
  • perfect conviction of his unworthiness can do. Now, though at first
  • she will suffer much, I am sure she will soon become easier. Have
  • you," she continued, after a short silence, "ever seen Mr. Willoughby
  • since you left him at Barton?"
  • "Yes," he replied gravely, "once I have. One meeting was unavoidable."
  • Elinor, startled by his manner, looked at him anxiously, saying,
  • "What? have you met him to--"
  • "I could meet him no other way. Eliza had confessed to me, though most
  • reluctantly, the name of her lover; and when he returned to town, which
  • was within a fortnight after myself, we met by appointment, he to
  • defend, I to punish his conduct. We returned unwounded, and the
  • meeting, therefore, never got abroad."
  • Elinor sighed over the fancied necessity of this; but to a man and a
  • soldier she presumed not to censure it.
  • "Such," said Colonel Brandon, after a pause, "has been the unhappy
  • resemblance between the fate of mother and daughter! and so imperfectly
  • have I discharged my trust!"
  • "Is she still in town?"
  • "No; as soon as she recovered from her lying-in, for I found her near
  • her delivery, I removed her and her child into the country, and there
  • she remains."
  • Recollecting, soon afterwards, that he was probably dividing Elinor
  • from her sister, he put an end to his visit, receiving from her again
  • the same grateful acknowledgments, and leaving her full of compassion
  • and esteem for him.
  • CHAPTER 32
  • When the particulars of this conversation were repeated by Miss
  • Dashwood to her sister, as they very soon were, the effect on her was
  • not entirely such as the former had hoped to see. Not that Marianne
  • appeared to distrust the truth of any part of it, for she listened to
  • it all with the most steady and submissive attention, made neither
  • objection nor remark, attempted no vindication of Willoughby, and
  • seemed to shew by her tears that she felt it to be impossible. But
  • though this behaviour assured Elinor that the conviction of this guilt
  • WAS carried home to her mind, though she saw with satisfaction the
  • effect of it, in her no longer avoiding Colonel Brandon when he called,
  • in her speaking to him, even voluntarily speaking, with a kind of
  • compassionate respect, and though she saw her spirits less violently
  • irritated than before, she did not see her less wretched. Her mind did
  • become settled, but it was settled in a gloomy dejection. She felt the
  • loss of Willoughby's character yet more heavily than she had felt the
  • loss of his heart; his seduction and desertion of Miss Williams, the
  • misery of that poor girl, and the doubt of what his designs might ONCE
  • have been on herself, preyed altogether so much on her spirits, that
  • she could not bring herself to speak of what she felt even to Elinor;
  • and, brooding over her sorrows in silence, gave more pain to her sister
  • than could have been communicated by the most open and most frequent
  • confession of them.
  • To give the feelings or the language of Mrs. Dashwood on receiving and
  • answering Elinor's letter would be only to give a repetition of what
  • her daughters had already felt and said; of a disappointment hardly
  • less painful than Marianne's, and an indignation even greater than
  • Elinor's. Long letters from her, quickly succeeding each other,
  • arrived to tell all that she suffered and thought; to express her
  • anxious solicitude for Marianne, and entreat she would bear up with
  • fortitude under this misfortune. Bad indeed must the nature of
  • Marianne's affliction be, when her mother could talk of fortitude!
  • mortifying and humiliating must be the origin of those regrets, which
  • SHE could wish her not to indulge!
  • Against the interest of her own individual comfort, Mrs. Dashwood had
  • determined that it would be better for Marianne to be any where, at
  • that time, than at Barton, where every thing within her view would be
  • bringing back the past in the strongest and most afflicting manner, by
  • constantly placing Willoughby before her, such as she had always seen
  • him there. She recommended it to her daughters, therefore, by all
  • means not to shorten their visit to Mrs. Jennings; the length of which,
  • though never exactly fixed, had been expected by all to comprise at
  • least five or six weeks. A variety of occupations, of objects, and of
  • company, which could not be procured at Barton, would be inevitable
  • there, and might yet, she hoped, cheat Marianne, at times, into some
  • interest beyond herself, and even into some amusement, much as the
  • ideas of both might now be spurned by her.
  • From all danger of seeing Willoughby again, her mother considered her
  • to be at least equally safe in town as in the country, since his
  • acquaintance must now be dropped by all who called themselves her
  • friends. Design could never bring them in each other's way: negligence
  • could never leave them exposed to a surprise; and chance had less in
  • its favour in the crowd of London than even in the retirement of
  • Barton, where it might force him before her while paying that visit at
  • Allenham on his marriage, which Mrs. Dashwood, from foreseeing at first
  • as a probable event, had brought herself to expect as a certain one.
  • She had yet another reason for wishing her children to remain where
  • they were; a letter from her son-in-law had told her that he and his
  • wife were to be in town before the middle of February, and she judged
  • it right that they should sometimes see their brother.
  • Marianne had promised to be guided by her mother's opinion, and she
  • submitted to it therefore without opposition, though it proved
  • perfectly different from what she wished and expected, though she felt
  • it to be entirely wrong, formed on mistaken grounds, and that by
  • requiring her longer continuance in London it deprived her of the only
  • possible alleviation of her wretchedness, the personal sympathy of her
  • mother, and doomed her to such society and such scenes as must prevent
  • her ever knowing a moment's rest.
  • But it was a matter of great consolation to her, that what brought evil
  • to herself would bring good to her sister; and Elinor, on the other
  • hand, suspecting that it would not be in her power to avoid Edward
  • entirely, comforted herself by thinking, that though their longer stay
  • would therefore militate against her own happiness, it would be better
  • for Marianne than an immediate return into Devonshire.
  • Her carefulness in guarding her sister from ever hearing Willoughby's
  • name mentioned, was not thrown away. Marianne, though without knowing
  • it herself, reaped all its advantage; for neither Mrs. Jennings, nor
  • Sir John, nor even Mrs. Palmer herself, ever spoke of him before her.
  • Elinor wished that the same forbearance could have extended towards
  • herself, but that was impossible, and she was obliged to listen day
  • after day to the indignation of them all.
  • Sir John, could not have thought it possible. "A man of whom he had
  • always had such reason to think well! Such a good-natured fellow! He
  • did not believe there was a bolder rider in England! It was an
  • unaccountable business. He wished him at the devil with all his heart.
  • He would not speak another word to him, meet him where he might, for
  • all the world! No, not if it were to be by the side of Barton covert,
  • and they were kept watching for two hours together. Such a scoundrel
  • of a fellow! such a deceitful dog! It was only the last time they met
  • that he had offered him one of Folly's puppies! and this was the end of
  • it!"
  • Mrs. Palmer, in her way, was equally angry. "She was determined to
  • drop his acquaintance immediately, and she was very thankful that she
  • had never been acquainted with him at all. She wished with all her
  • heart Combe Magna was not so near Cleveland; but it did not signify,
  • for it was a great deal too far off to visit; she hated him so much
  • that she was resolved never to mention his name again, and she should
  • tell everybody she saw, how good-for-nothing he was."
  • The rest of Mrs. Palmer's sympathy was shewn in procuring all the
  • particulars in her power of the approaching marriage, and communicating
  • them to Elinor. She could soon tell at what coachmaker's the new
  • carriage was building, by what painter Mr. Willoughby's portrait was
  • drawn, and at what warehouse Miss Grey's clothes might be seen.
  • The calm and polite unconcern of Lady Middleton on the occasion was a
  • happy relief to Elinor's spirits, oppressed as they often were by the
  • clamorous kindness of the others. It was a great comfort to her to be
  • sure of exciting no interest in ONE person at least among their circle
  • of friends: a great comfort to know that there was ONE who would meet
  • her without feeling any curiosity after particulars, or any anxiety for
  • her sister's health.
  • Every qualification is raised at times, by the circumstances of the
  • moment, to more than its real value; and she was sometimes worried down
  • by officious condolence to rate good-breeding as more indispensable to
  • comfort than good-nature.
  • Lady Middleton expressed her sense of the affair about once every day,
  • or twice, if the subject occurred very often, by saying, "It is very
  • shocking, indeed!" and by the means of this continual though gentle
  • vent, was able not only to see the Miss Dashwoods from the first
  • without the smallest emotion, but very soon to see them without
  • recollecting a word of the matter; and having thus supported the
  • dignity of her own sex, and spoken her decided censure of what was
  • wrong in the other, she thought herself at liberty to attend to the
  • interest of her own assemblies, and therefore determined (though rather
  • against the opinion of Sir John) that as Mrs. Willoughby would at once
  • be a woman of elegance and fortune, to leave her card with her as soon
  • as she married.
  • Colonel Brandon's delicate, unobtrusive enquiries were never unwelcome
  • to Miss Dashwood. He had abundantly earned the privilege of intimate
  • discussion of her sister's disappointment, by the friendly zeal with
  • which he had endeavoured to soften it, and they always conversed with
  • confidence. His chief reward for the painful exertion of disclosing
  • past sorrows and present humiliations, was given in the pitying eye
  • with which Marianne sometimes observed him, and the gentleness of her
  • voice whenever (though it did not often happen) she was obliged, or
  • could oblige herself to speak to him. THESE assured him that his
  • exertion had produced an increase of good-will towards himself, and
  • THESE gave Elinor hopes of its being farther augmented hereafter; but
  • Mrs. Jennings, who knew nothing of all this, who knew only that the
  • Colonel continued as grave as ever, and that she could neither prevail
  • on him to make the offer himself, nor commission her to make it for
  • him, began, at the end of two days, to think that, instead of
  • Midsummer, they would not be married till Michaelmas, and by the end of
  • a week that it would not be a match at all. The good understanding
  • between the Colonel and Miss Dashwood seemed rather to declare that the
  • honours of the mulberry-tree, the canal, and the yew arbour, would all
  • be made over to HER; and Mrs. Jennings had, for some time ceased to
  • think at all of Mrs. Ferrars.
  • Early in February, within a fortnight from the receipt of Willoughby's
  • letter, Elinor had the painful office of informing her sister that he
  • was married. She had taken care to have the intelligence conveyed to
  • herself, as soon as it was known that the ceremony was over, as she was
  • desirous that Marianne should not receive the first notice of it from
  • the public papers, which she saw her eagerly examining every morning.
  • She received the news with resolute composure; made no observation on
  • it, and at first shed no tears; but after a short time they would burst
  • out, and for the rest of the day, she was in a state hardly less
  • pitiable than when she first learnt to expect the event.
  • The Willoughbys left town as soon as they were married; and Elinor now
  • hoped, as there could be no danger of her seeing either of them, to
  • prevail on her sister, who had never yet left the house since the blow
  • first fell, to go out again by degrees as she had done before.
  • About this time the two Miss Steeles, lately arrived at their cousin's
  • house in Bartlett's Buildings, Holburn, presented themselves again
  • before their more grand relations in Conduit and Berkeley Streets; and
  • were welcomed by them all with great cordiality.
  • Elinor only was sorry to see them. Their presence always gave her
  • pain, and she hardly knew how to make a very gracious return to the
  • overpowering delight of Lucy in finding her STILL in town.
  • "I should have been quite disappointed if I had not found you here
  • STILL," said she repeatedly, with a strong emphasis on the word. "But
  • I always thought I SHOULD. I was almost sure you would not leave
  • London yet awhile; though you TOLD me, you know, at Barton, that you
  • should not stay above a MONTH. But I thought, at the time, that you
  • would most likely change your mind when it came to the point. It would
  • have been such a great pity to have went away before your brother and
  • sister came. And now to be sure you will be in no hurry to be gone. I
  • am amazingly glad you did not keep to YOUR WORD."
  • Elinor perfectly understood her, and was forced to use all her
  • self-command to make it appear that she did NOT.
  • "Well, my dear," said Mrs. Jennings, "and how did you travel?"
  • "Not in the stage, I assure you," replied Miss Steele, with quick
  • exultation; "we came post all the way, and had a very smart beau to
  • attend us. Dr. Davies was coming to town, and so we thought we'd join
  • him in a post-chaise; and he behaved very genteelly, and paid ten or
  • twelve shillings more than we did."
  • "Oh, oh!" cried Mrs. Jennings; "very pretty, indeed! and the Doctor is
  • a single man, I warrant you."
  • "There now," said Miss Steele, affectedly simpering, "everybody laughs
  • at me so about the Doctor, and I cannot think why. My cousins say they
  • are sure I have made a conquest; but for my part I declare I never
  • think about him from one hour's end to another. 'Lord! here comes your
  • beau, Nancy,' my cousin said t'other day, when she saw him crossing the
  • street to the house. My beau, indeed! said I--I cannot think who you
  • mean. The Doctor is no beau of mine."
  • "Aye, aye, that is very pretty talking--but it won't do--the Doctor is
  • the man, I see."
  • "No, indeed!" replied her cousin, with affected earnestness, "and I beg
  • you will contradict it, if you ever hear it talked of."
  • Mrs. Jennings directly gave her the gratifying assurance that she
  • certainly would NOT, and Miss Steele was made completely happy.
  • "I suppose you will go and stay with your brother and sister, Miss
  • Dashwood, when they come to town," said Lucy, returning, after a
  • cessation of hostile hints, to the charge.
  • "No, I do not think we shall."
  • "Oh, yes, I dare say you will."
  • Elinor would not humour her by farther opposition.
  • "What a charming thing it is that Mrs. Dashwood can spare you both for
  • so long a time together!"
  • "Long a time, indeed!" interposed Mrs. Jennings. "Why, their visit is
  • but just begun!"
  • Lucy was silenced.
  • "I am sorry we cannot see your sister, Miss Dashwood," said Miss
  • Steele. "I am sorry she is not well--" for Marianne had left the room
  • on their arrival.
  • "You are very good. My sister will be equally sorry to miss the
  • pleasure of seeing you; but she has been very much plagued lately with
  • nervous head-aches, which make her unfit for company or conversation."
  • "Oh, dear, that is a great pity! but such old friends as Lucy and
  • me!--I think she might see US; and I am sure we would not speak a word."
  • Elinor, with great civility, declined the proposal. Her sister was
  • perhaps laid down upon the bed, or in her dressing gown, and therefore
  • not able to come to them.
  • "Oh, if that's all," cried Miss Steele, "we can just as well go and see
  • HER."
  • Elinor began to find this impertinence too much for her temper; but she
  • was saved the trouble of checking it, by Lucy's sharp reprimand, which
  • now, as on many occasions, though it did not give much sweetness to the
  • manners of one sister, was of advantage in governing those of the other.
  • CHAPTER 33
  • After some opposition, Marianne yielded to her sister's entreaties, and
  • consented to go out with her and Mrs. Jennings one morning for half an
  • hour. She expressly conditioned, however, for paying no visits, and
  • would do no more than accompany them to Gray's in Sackville Street,
  • where Elinor was carrying on a negotiation for the exchange of a few
  • old-fashioned jewels of her mother.
  • When they stopped at the door, Mrs. Jennings recollected that there was
  • a lady at the other end of the street on whom she ought to call; and as
  • she had no business at Gray's, it was resolved, that while her young
  • friends transacted their's, she should pay her visit and return for
  • them.
  • On ascending the stairs, the Miss Dashwoods found so many people before
  • them in the room, that there was not a person at liberty to tend to
  • their orders; and they were obliged to wait. All that could be done
  • was, to sit down at that end of the counter which seemed to promise the
  • quickest succession; one gentleman only was standing there, and it is
  • probable that Elinor was not without hope of exciting his politeness to
  • a quicker despatch. But the correctness of his eye, and the delicacy
  • of his taste, proved to be beyond his politeness. He was giving orders
  • for a toothpick-case for himself, and till its size, shape, and
  • ornaments were determined, all of which, after examining and debating
  • for a quarter of an hour over every toothpick-case in the shop, were
  • finally arranged by his own inventive fancy, he had no leisure to
  • bestow any other attention on the two ladies, than what was comprised
  • in three or four very broad stares; a kind of notice which served to
  • imprint on Elinor the remembrance of a person and face, of strong,
  • natural, sterling insignificance, though adorned in the first style of
  • fashion.
  • Marianne was spared from the troublesome feelings of contempt and
  • resentment, on this impertinent examination of their features, and on
  • the puppyism of his manner in deciding on all the different horrors of
  • the different toothpick-cases presented to his inspection, by remaining
  • unconscious of it all; for she was as well able to collect her thoughts
  • within herself, and be as ignorant of what was passing around her, in
  • Mr. Gray's shop, as in her own bedroom.
  • At last the affair was decided. The ivory, the gold, and the pearls,
  • all received their appointment, and the gentleman having named the last
  • day on which his existence could be continued without the possession of
  • the toothpick-case, drew on his gloves with leisurely care, and
  • bestowing another glance on the Miss Dashwoods, but such a one as
  • seemed rather to demand than express admiration, walked off with a
  • happy air of real conceit and affected indifference.
  • Elinor lost no time in bringing her business forward, was on the point
  • of concluding it, when another gentleman presented himself at her side.
  • She turned her eyes towards his face, and found him with some surprise
  • to be her brother.
  • Their affection and pleasure in meeting was just enough to make a very
  • creditable appearance in Mr. Gray's shop. John Dashwood was really far
  • from being sorry to see his sisters again; it rather gave them
  • satisfaction; and his inquiries after their mother were respectful and
  • attentive.
  • Elinor found that he and Fanny had been in town two days.
  • "I wished very much to call upon you yesterday," said he, "but it was
  • impossible, for we were obliged to take Harry to see the wild beasts at
  • Exeter Exchange; and we spent the rest of the day with Mrs. Ferrars.
  • Harry was vastly pleased. THIS morning I had fully intended to call on
  • you, if I could possibly find a spare half hour, but one has always so
  • much to do on first coming to town. I am come here to bespeak Fanny a
  • seal. But tomorrow I think I shall certainly be able to call in
  • Berkeley Street, and be introduced to your friend Mrs. Jennings. I
  • understand she is a woman of very good fortune. And the Middletons
  • too, you must introduce me to THEM. As my mother-in-law's relations, I
  • shall be happy to show them every respect. They are excellent
  • neighbours to you in the country, I understand."
  • "Excellent indeed. Their attention to our comfort, their friendliness
  • in every particular, is more than I can express."
  • "I am extremely glad to hear it, upon my word; extremely glad indeed.
  • But so it ought to be; they are people of large fortune, they are
  • related to you, and every civility and accommodation that can serve to
  • make your situation pleasant might be reasonably expected. And so you
  • are most comfortably settled in your little cottage and want for
  • nothing! Edward brought us a most charming account of the place: the
  • most complete thing of its kind, he said, that ever was, and you all
  • seemed to enjoy it beyond any thing. It was a great satisfaction to us
  • to hear it, I assure you."
  • Elinor did feel a little ashamed of her brother; and was not sorry to
  • be spared the necessity of answering him, by the arrival of Mrs.
  • Jennings's servant, who came to tell her that his mistress waited for
  • them at the door.
  • Mr. Dashwood attended them down stairs, was introduced to Mrs. Jennings
  • at the door of her carriage, and repeating his hope of being able to
  • call on them the next day, took leave.
  • His visit was duly paid. He came with a pretence at an apology from
  • their sister-in-law, for not coming too; "but she was so much engaged
  • with her mother, that really she had no leisure for going any where."
  • Mrs. Jennings, however, assured him directly, that she should not stand
  • upon ceremony, for they were all cousins, or something like it, and she
  • should certainly wait on Mrs. John Dashwood very soon, and bring her
  • sisters to see her. His manners to THEM, though calm, were perfectly
  • kind; to Mrs. Jennings, most attentively civil; and on Colonel
  • Brandon's coming in soon after himself, he eyed him with a curiosity
  • which seemed to say, that he only wanted to know him to be rich, to be
  • equally civil to HIM.
  • After staying with them half an hour, he asked Elinor to walk with him
  • to Conduit Street, and introduce him to Sir John and Lady Middleton.
  • The weather was remarkably fine, and she readily consented. As soon as
  • they were out of the house, his enquiries began.
  • "Who is Colonel Brandon? Is he a man of fortune?"
  • "Yes; he has very good property in Dorsetshire."
  • "I am glad of it. He seems a most gentlemanlike man; and I think,
  • Elinor, I may congratulate you on the prospect of a very respectable
  • establishment in life."
  • "Me, brother! what do you mean?"
  • "He likes you. I observed him narrowly, and am convinced of it. What
  • is the amount of his fortune?"
  • "I believe about two thousand a year."
  • "Two thousand a-year;" and then working himself up to a pitch of
  • enthusiastic generosity, he added, "Elinor, I wish with all my heart it
  • were TWICE as much, for your sake."
  • "Indeed I believe you," replied Elinor; "but I am very sure that
  • Colonel Brandon has not the smallest wish of marrying ME."
  • "You are mistaken, Elinor; you are very much mistaken. A very little
  • trouble on your side secures him. Perhaps just at present he may be
  • undecided; the smallness of your fortune may make him hang back; his
  • friends may all advise him against it. But some of those little
  • attentions and encouragements which ladies can so easily give will fix
  • him, in spite of himself. And there can be no reason why you should
  • not try for him. It is not to be supposed that any prior attachment on
  • your side--in short, you know as to an attachment of that kind, it is
  • quite out of the question, the objections are insurmountable--you have
  • too much sense not to see all that. Colonel Brandon must be the man;
  • and no civility shall be wanting on my part to make him pleased with
  • you and your family. It is a match that must give universal
  • satisfaction. In short, it is a kind of thing that"--lowering his
  • voice to an important whisper--"will be exceedingly welcome to ALL
  • PARTIES." Recollecting himself, however, he added, "That is, I mean to
  • say--your friends are all truly anxious to see you well settled; Fanny
  • particularly, for she has your interest very much at heart, I assure
  • you. And her mother too, Mrs. Ferrars, a very good-natured woman, I am
  • sure it would give her great pleasure; she said as much the other day."
  • Elinor would not vouchsafe any answer.
  • "It would be something remarkable, now," he continued, "something
  • droll, if Fanny should have a brother and I a sister settling at the
  • same time. And yet it is not very unlikely."
  • "Is Mr. Edward Ferrars," said Elinor, with resolution, "going to be
  • married?"
  • "It is not actually settled, but there is such a thing in agitation.
  • He has a most excellent mother. Mrs. Ferrars, with the utmost
  • liberality, will come forward, and settle on him a thousand a year, if
  • the match takes place. The lady is the Hon. Miss Morton, only daughter
  • of the late Lord Morton, with thirty thousand pounds. A very desirable
  • connection on both sides, and I have not a doubt of its taking place in
  • time. A thousand a-year is a great deal for a mother to give away, to
  • make over for ever; but Mrs. Ferrars has a noble spirit. To give you
  • another instance of her liberality:--The other day, as soon as we came
  • to town, aware that money could not be very plenty with us just now,
  • she put bank-notes into Fanny's hands to the amount of two hundred
  • pounds. And extremely acceptable it is, for we must live at a great
  • expense while we are here."
  • He paused for her assent and compassion; and she forced herself to say,
  • "Your expenses both in town and country must certainly be considerable;
  • but your income is a large one."
  • "Not so large, I dare say, as many people suppose. I do not mean to
  • complain, however; it is undoubtedly a comfortable one, and I hope will
  • in time be better. The enclosure of Norland Common, now carrying on,
  • is a most serious drain. And then I have made a little purchase within
  • this half year; East Kingham Farm, you must remember the place, where
  • old Gibson used to live. The land was so very desirable for me in
  • every respect, so immediately adjoining my own property, that I felt it
  • my duty to buy it. I could not have answered it to my conscience to
  • let it fall into any other hands. A man must pay for his convenience;
  • and it HAS cost me a vast deal of money."
  • "More than you think it really and intrinsically worth."
  • "Why, I hope not that. I might have sold it again, the next day, for
  • more than I gave: but, with regard to the purchase-money, I might have
  • been very unfortunate indeed; for the stocks were at that time so low,
  • that if I had not happened to have the necessary sum in my banker's
  • hands, I must have sold out to very great loss."
  • Elinor could only smile.
  • "Other great and inevitable expenses too we have had on first coming to
  • Norland. Our respected father, as you well know, bequeathed all the
  • Stanhill effects that remained at Norland (and very valuable they were)
  • to your mother. Far be it from me to repine at his doing so; he had an
  • undoubted right to dispose of his own property as he chose, but, in
  • consequence of it, we have been obliged to make large purchases of
  • linen, china, &c. to supply the place of what was taken away. You may
  • guess, after all these expenses, how very far we must be from being
  • rich, and how acceptable Mrs. Ferrars's kindness is."
  • "Certainly," said Elinor; "and assisted by her liberality, I hope you
  • may yet live to be in easy circumstances."
  • "Another year or two may do much towards it," he gravely replied; "but
  • however there is still a great deal to be done. There is not a stone
  • laid of Fanny's green-house, and nothing but the plan of the
  • flower-garden marked out."
  • "Where is the green-house to be?"
  • "Upon the knoll behind the house. The old walnut trees are all come
  • down to make room for it. It will be a very fine object from many
  • parts of the park, and the flower-garden will slope down just before
  • it, and be exceedingly pretty. We have cleared away all the old thorns
  • that grew in patches over the brow."
  • Elinor kept her concern and her censure to herself; and was very
  • thankful that Marianne was not present, to share the provocation.
  • Having now said enough to make his poverty clear, and to do away the
  • necessity of buying a pair of ear-rings for each of his sisters, in his
  • next visit at Gray's his thoughts took a cheerfuller turn, and he began
  • to congratulate Elinor on having such a friend as Mrs. Jennings.
  • "She seems a most valuable woman indeed--Her house, her style of
  • living, all bespeak an exceeding good income; and it is an acquaintance
  • that has not only been of great use to you hitherto, but in the end may
  • prove materially advantageous.--Her inviting you to town is certainly a
  • vast thing in your favour; and indeed, it speaks altogether so great a
  • regard for you, that in all probability when she dies you will not be
  • forgotten.-- She must have a great deal to leave."
  • "Nothing at all, I should rather suppose; for she has only her
  • jointure, which will descend to her children."
  • "But it is not to be imagined that she lives up to her income. Few
  • people of common prudence will do THAT; and whatever she saves, she
  • will be able to dispose of."
  • "And do you not think it more likely that she should leave it to her
  • daughters, than to us?"
  • "Her daughters are both exceedingly well married, and therefore I
  • cannot perceive the necessity of her remembering them farther.
  • Whereas, in my opinion, by her taking so much notice of you, and
  • treating you in this kind of way, she has given you a sort of claim on
  • her future consideration, which a conscientious woman would not
  • disregard. Nothing can be kinder than her behaviour; and she can
  • hardly do all this, without being aware of the expectation it raises."
  • "But she raises none in those most concerned. Indeed, brother, your
  • anxiety for our welfare and prosperity carries you too far."
  • "Why, to be sure," said he, seeming to recollect himself, "people have
  • little, have very little in their power. But, my dear Elinor, what is
  • the matter with Marianne?-- she looks very unwell, has lost her colour,
  • and is grown quite thin. Is she ill?"
  • "She is not well, she has had a nervous complaint on her for several
  • weeks."
  • "I am sorry for that. At her time of life, any thing of an illness
  • destroys the bloom for ever! Hers has been a very short one! She was
  • as handsome a girl last September, as I ever saw; and as likely to
  • attract the man. There was something in her style of beauty, to please
  • them particularly. I remember Fanny used to say that she would marry
  • sooner and better than you did; not but what she is exceedingly fond of
  • YOU, but so it happened to strike her. She will be mistaken, however.
  • I question whether Marianne NOW, will marry a man worth more than five
  • or six hundred a-year, at the utmost, and I am very much deceived if
  • YOU do not do better. Dorsetshire! I know very little of Dorsetshire;
  • but, my dear Elinor, I shall be exceedingly glad to know more of it;
  • and I think I can answer for your having Fanny and myself among the
  • earliest and best pleased of your visitors."
  • Elinor tried very seriously to convince him that there was no
  • likelihood of her marrying Colonel Brandon; but it was an expectation
  • of too much pleasure to himself to be relinquished, and he was really
  • resolved on seeking an intimacy with that gentleman, and promoting the
  • marriage by every possible attention. He had just compunction enough
  • for having done nothing for his sisters himself, to be exceedingly
  • anxious that everybody else should do a great deal; and an offer from
  • Colonel Brandon, or a legacy from Mrs. Jennings, was the easiest means
  • of atoning for his own neglect.
  • They were lucky enough to find Lady Middleton at home, and Sir John
  • came in before their visit ended. Abundance of civilities passed on
  • all sides. Sir John was ready to like anybody, and though Mr. Dashwood
  • did not seem to know much about horses, he soon set him down as a very
  • good-natured fellow: while Lady Middleton saw enough of fashion in his
  • appearance to think his acquaintance worth having; and Mr. Dashwood
  • went away delighted with both.
  • "I shall have a charming account to carry to Fanny," said he, as he
  • walked back with his sister. "Lady Middleton is really a most elegant
  • woman! Such a woman as I am sure Fanny will be glad to know. And Mrs.
  • Jennings too, an exceedingly well-behaved woman, though not so elegant
  • as her daughter. Your sister need not have any scruple even of
  • visiting HER, which, to say the truth, has been a little the case, and
  • very naturally; for we only knew that Mrs. Jennings was the widow of a
  • man who had got all his money in a low way; and Fanny and Mrs. Ferrars
  • were both strongly prepossessed, that neither she nor her daughters
  • were such kind of women as Fanny would like to associate with. But now
  • I can carry her a most satisfactory account of both."
  • CHAPTER 34
  • Mrs. John Dashwood had so much confidence in her husband's judgment,
  • that she waited the very next day both on Mrs. Jennings and her
  • daughter; and her confidence was rewarded by finding even the former,
  • even the woman with whom her sisters were staying, by no means unworthy
  • her notice; and as for Lady Middleton, she found her one of the most
  • charming women in the world!
  • Lady Middleton was equally pleased with Mrs. Dashwood. There was a
  • kind of cold hearted selfishness on both sides, which mutually
  • attracted them; and they sympathised with each other in an insipid
  • propriety of demeanor, and a general want of understanding.
  • The same manners, however, which recommended Mrs. John Dashwood to the
  • good opinion of Lady Middleton did not suit the fancy of Mrs. Jennings,
  • and to HER she appeared nothing more than a little proud-looking woman
  • of uncordial address, who met her husband's sisters without any
  • affection, and almost without having anything to say to them; for of
  • the quarter of an hour bestowed on Berkeley Street, she sat at least
  • seven minutes and a half in silence.
  • Elinor wanted very much to know, though she did not chuse to ask,
  • whether Edward was then in town; but nothing would have induced Fanny
  • voluntarily to mention his name before her, till able to tell her that
  • his marriage with Miss Morton was resolved on, or till her husband's
  • expectations on Colonel Brandon were answered; because she believed
  • them still so very much attached to each other, that they could not be
  • too sedulously divided in word and deed on every occasion. The
  • intelligence however, which SHE would not give, soon flowed from
  • another quarter. Lucy came very shortly to claim Elinor's compassion
  • on being unable to see Edward, though he had arrived in town with Mr.
  • and Mrs. Dashwood. He dared not come to Bartlett's Buildings for fear
  • of detection, and though their mutual impatience to meet, was not to be
  • told, they could do nothing at present but write.
  • Edward assured them himself of his being in town, within a very short
  • time, by twice calling in Berkeley Street. Twice was his card found on
  • the table, when they returned from their morning's engagements. Elinor
  • was pleased that he had called; and still more pleased that she had
  • missed him.
  • The Dashwoods were so prodigiously delighted with the Middletons, that,
  • though not much in the habit of giving anything, they determined to
  • give them--a dinner; and soon after their acquaintance began, invited
  • them to dine in Harley Street, where they had taken a very good house
  • for three months. Their sisters and Mrs. Jennings were invited
  • likewise, and John Dashwood was careful to secure Colonel Brandon, who,
  • always glad to be where the Miss Dashwoods were, received his eager
  • civilities with some surprise, but much more pleasure. They were to
  • meet Mrs. Ferrars; but Elinor could not learn whether her sons were to
  • be of the party. The expectation of seeing HER, however, was enough to
  • make her interested in the engagement; for though she could now meet
  • Edward's mother without that strong anxiety which had once promised to
  • attend such an introduction, though she could now see her with perfect
  • indifference as to her opinion of herself, her desire of being in
  • company with Mrs. Ferrars, her curiosity to know what she was like, was
  • as lively as ever.
  • The interest with which she thus anticipated the party, was soon
  • afterwards increased, more powerfully than pleasantly, by her hearing
  • that the Miss Steeles were also to be at it.
  • So well had they recommended themselves to Lady Middleton, so agreeable
  • had their assiduities made them to her, that though Lucy was certainly
  • not so elegant, and her sister not even genteel, she was as ready as
  • Sir John to ask them to spend a week or two in Conduit Street; and it
  • happened to be particularly convenient to the Miss Steeles, as soon as
  • the Dashwoods' invitation was known, that their visit should begin a
  • few days before the party took place.
  • Their claims to the notice of Mrs. John Dashwood, as the nieces of the
  • gentleman who for many years had had the care of her brother, might not
  • have done much, however, towards procuring them seats at her table; but
  • as Lady Middleton's guests they must be welcome; and Lucy, who had long
  • wanted to be personally known to the family, to have a nearer view of
  • their characters and her own difficulties, and to have an opportunity
  • of endeavouring to please them, had seldom been happier in her life,
  • than she was on receiving Mrs. John Dashwood's card.
  • On Elinor its effect was very different. She began immediately to
  • determine, that Edward who lived with his mother, must be asked as his
  • mother was, to a party given by his sister; and to see him for the
  • first time, after all that passed, in the company of Lucy!--she hardly
  • knew how she could bear it!
  • These apprehensions, perhaps, were not founded entirely on reason, and
  • certainly not at all on truth. They were relieved however, not by her
  • own recollection, but by the good will of Lucy, who believed herself to
  • be inflicting a severe disappointment when she told her that Edward
  • certainly would not be in Harley Street on Tuesday, and even hoped to
  • be carrying the pain still farther by persuading her that he was kept
  • away by the extreme affection for herself, which he could not conceal
  • when they were together.
  • The important Tuesday came that was to introduce the two young ladies
  • to this formidable mother-in-law.
  • "Pity me, dear Miss Dashwood!" said Lucy, as they walked up the stairs
  • together--for the Middletons arrived so directly after Mrs. Jennings,
  • that they all followed the servant at the same time--"There is nobody
  • here but you, that can feel for me.--I declare I can hardly stand.
  • Good gracious!--In a moment I shall see the person that all my
  • happiness depends on--that is to be my mother!"--
  • Elinor could have given her immediate relief by suggesting the
  • possibility of its being Miss Morton's mother, rather than her own,
  • whom they were about to behold; but instead of doing that, she assured
  • her, and with great sincerity, that she did pity her--to the utter
  • amazement of Lucy, who, though really uncomfortable herself, hoped at
  • least to be an object of irrepressible envy to Elinor.
  • Mrs. Ferrars was a little, thin woman, upright, even to formality, in
  • her figure, and serious, even to sourness, in her aspect. Her
  • complexion was sallow; and her features small, without beauty, and
  • naturally without expression; but a lucky contraction of the brow had
  • rescued her countenance from the disgrace of insipidity, by giving it
  • the strong characters of pride and ill nature. She was not a woman of
  • many words; for, unlike people in general, she proportioned them to the
  • number of her ideas; and of the few syllables that did escape her, not
  • one fell to the share of Miss Dashwood, whom she eyed with the spirited
  • determination of disliking her at all events.
  • Elinor could not NOW be made unhappy by this behaviour.-- A few months
  • ago it would have hurt her exceedingly; but it was not in Mrs. Ferrars'
  • power to distress her by it now;--and the difference of her manners to
  • the Miss Steeles, a difference which seemed purposely made to humble
  • her more, only amused her. She could not but smile to see the
  • graciousness of both mother and daughter towards the very person-- for
  • Lucy was particularly distinguished--whom of all others, had they known
  • as much as she did, they would have been most anxious to mortify; while
  • she herself, who had comparatively no power to wound them, sat
  • pointedly slighted by both. But while she smiled at a graciousness so
  • misapplied, she could not reflect on the mean-spirited folly from which
  • it sprung, nor observe the studied attentions with which the Miss
  • Steeles courted its continuance, without thoroughly despising them all
  • four.
  • Lucy was all exultation on being so honorably distinguished; and Miss
  • Steele wanted only to be teazed about Dr. Davies to be perfectly happy.
  • The dinner was a grand one, the servants were numerous, and every thing
  • bespoke the Mistress's inclination for show, and the Master's ability
  • to support it. In spite of the improvements and additions which were
  • making to the Norland estate, and in spite of its owner having once
  • been within some thousand pounds of being obliged to sell out at a
  • loss, nothing gave any symptom of that indigence which he had tried to
  • infer from it;--no poverty of any kind, except of conversation,
  • appeared--but there, the deficiency was considerable. John Dashwood
  • had not much to say for himself that was worth hearing, and his wife
  • had still less. But there was no peculiar disgrace in this; for it was
  • very much the case with the chief of their visitors, who almost all
  • laboured under one or other of these disqualifications for being
  • agreeable--Want of sense, either natural or improved--want of
  • elegance--want of spirits--or want of temper.
  • When the ladies withdrew to the drawing-room after dinner, this poverty
  • was particularly evident, for the gentlemen HAD supplied the discourse
  • with some variety--the variety of politics, inclosing land, and
  • breaking horses--but then it was all over; and one subject only engaged
  • the ladies till coffee came in, which was the comparative heights of
  • Harry Dashwood, and Lady Middleton's second son William, who were
  • nearly of the same age.
  • Had both the children been there, the affair might have been determined
  • too easily by measuring them at once; but as Harry only was present, it
  • was all conjectural assertion on both sides; and every body had a right
  • to be equally positive in their opinion, and to repeat it over and over
  • again as often as they liked.
  • The parties stood thus:
  • The two mothers, though each really convinced that her own son was the
  • tallest, politely decided in favour of the other.
  • The two grandmothers, with not less partiality, but more sincerity,
  • were equally earnest in support of their own descendant.
  • Lucy, who was hardly less anxious to please one parent than the other,
  • thought the boys were both remarkably tall for their age, and could not
  • conceive that there could be the smallest difference in the world
  • between them; and Miss Steele, with yet greater address gave it, as
  • fast as she could, in favour of each.
  • Elinor, having once delivered her opinion on William's side, by which
  • she offended Mrs. Ferrars and Fanny still more, did not see the
  • necessity of enforcing it by any farther assertion; and Marianne, when
  • called on for hers, offended them all, by declaring that she had no
  • opinion to give, as she had never thought about it.
  • Before her removing from Norland, Elinor had painted a very pretty pair
  • of screens for her sister-in-law, which being now just mounted and
  • brought home, ornamented her present drawing room; and these screens,
  • catching the eye of John Dashwood on his following the other gentlemen
  • into the room, were officiously handed by him to Colonel Brandon for
  • his admiration.
  • "These are done by my eldest sister," said he; "and you, as a man of
  • taste, will, I dare say, be pleased with them. I do not know whether
  • you have ever happened to see any of her performances before, but she
  • is in general reckoned to draw extremely well."
  • The Colonel, though disclaiming all pretensions to connoisseurship,
  • warmly admired the screens, as he would have done any thing painted by
  • Miss Dashwood; and on the curiosity of the others being of course
  • excited, they were handed round for general inspection. Mrs. Ferrars,
  • not aware of their being Elinor's work, particularly requested to look
  • at them; and after they had received gratifying testimony of Lady
  • Middletons's approbation, Fanny presented them to her mother,
  • considerately informing her, at the same time, that they were done by
  • Miss Dashwood.
  • "Hum"--said Mrs. Ferrars--"very pretty,"--and without regarding them at
  • all, returned them to her daughter.
  • Perhaps Fanny thought for a moment that her mother had been quite rude
  • enough,--for, colouring a little, she immediately said,
  • "They are very pretty, ma'am--an't they?" But then again, the dread of
  • having been too civil, too encouraging herself, probably came over her,
  • for she presently added,
  • "Do you not think they are something in Miss Morton's style of
  • painting, Ma'am?--She DOES paint most delightfully!--How beautifully
  • her last landscape is done!"
  • "Beautifully indeed! But SHE does every thing well."
  • Marianne could not bear this.--She was already greatly displeased with
  • Mrs. Ferrars; and such ill-timed praise of another, at Elinor's
  • expense, though she had not any notion of what was principally meant by
  • it, provoked her immediately to say with warmth,
  • "This is admiration of a very particular kind!--what is Miss Morton to
  • us?--who knows, or who cares, for her?--it is Elinor of whom WE think
  • and speak."
  • And so saying, she took the screens out of her sister-in-law's hands,
  • to admire them herself as they ought to be admired.
  • Mrs. Ferrars looked exceedingly angry, and drawing herself up more
  • stiffly than ever, pronounced in retort this bitter philippic, "Miss
  • Morton is Lord Morton's daughter."
  • Fanny looked very angry too, and her husband was all in a fright at his
  • sister's audacity. Elinor was much more hurt by Marianne's warmth than
  • she had been by what produced it; but Colonel Brandon's eyes, as they
  • were fixed on Marianne, declared that he noticed only what was amiable
  • in it, the affectionate heart which could not bear to see a sister
  • slighted in the smallest point.
  • Marianne's feelings did not stop here. The cold insolence of Mrs.
  • Ferrars's general behaviour to her sister, seemed, to her, to foretell
  • such difficulties and distresses to Elinor, as her own wounded heart
  • taught her to think of with horror; and urged by a strong impulse of
  • affectionate sensibility, she moved after a moment, to her sister's
  • chair, and putting one arm round her neck, and one cheek close to hers,
  • said in a low, but eager, voice,
  • "Dear, dear Elinor, don't mind them. Don't let them make YOU unhappy."
  • She could say no more; her spirits were quite overcome, and hiding her
  • face on Elinor's shoulder, she burst into tears. Every body's
  • attention was called, and almost every body was concerned.--Colonel
  • Brandon rose up and went to them without knowing what he did.--Mrs.
  • Jennings, with a very intelligent "Ah! poor dear," immediately gave her
  • her salts; and Sir John felt so desperately enraged against the author
  • of this nervous distress, that he instantly changed his seat to one
  • close by Lucy Steele, and gave her, in a whisper, a brief account of
  • the whole shocking affair.
  • In a few minutes, however, Marianne was recovered enough to put an end
  • to the bustle, and sit down among the rest; though her spirits retained
  • the impression of what had passed, the whole evening.
  • "Poor Marianne!" said her brother to Colonel Brandon, in a low voice,
  • as soon as he could secure his attention,-- "She has not such good
  • health as her sister,--she is very nervous,--she has not Elinor's
  • constitution;--and one must allow that there is something very trying
  • to a young woman who HAS BEEN a beauty in the loss of her personal
  • attractions. You would not think it perhaps, but Marianne WAS
  • remarkably handsome a few months ago; quite as handsome as Elinor.--
  • Now you see it is all gone."
  • CHAPTER 35
  • Elinor's curiosity to see Mrs. Ferrars was satisfied.-- She had found
  • in her every thing that could tend to make a farther connection between
  • the families undesirable.-- She had seen enough of her pride, her
  • meanness, and her determined prejudice against herself, to comprehend
  • all the difficulties that must have perplexed the engagement, and
  • retarded the marriage, of Edward and herself, had he been otherwise
  • free;--and she had seen almost enough to be thankful for her OWN sake,
  • that one greater obstacle preserved her from suffering under any other
  • of Mrs. Ferrars's creation, preserved her from all dependence upon her
  • caprice, or any solicitude for her good opinion. Or at least, if she
  • did not bring herself quite to rejoice in Edward's being fettered to
  • Lucy, she determined, that had Lucy been more amiable, she OUGHT to
  • have rejoiced.
  • She wondered that Lucy's spirits could be so very much elevated by the
  • civility of Mrs. Ferrars;--that her interest and her vanity should so
  • very much blind her as to make the attention which seemed only paid her
  • because she was NOT ELINOR, appear a compliment to herself--or to allow
  • her to derive encouragement from a preference only given her, because
  • her real situation was unknown. But that it was so, had not only been
  • declared by Lucy's eyes at the time, but was declared over again the
  • next morning more openly, for at her particular desire, Lady Middleton
  • set her down in Berkeley Street on the chance of seeing Elinor alone,
  • to tell her how happy she was.
  • The chance proved a lucky one, for a message from Mrs. Palmer soon
  • after she arrived, carried Mrs. Jennings away.
  • "My dear friend," cried Lucy, as soon as they were by themselves, "I
  • come to talk to you of my happiness. Could anything be so flattering
  • as Mrs. Ferrars's way of treating me yesterday? So exceeding affable
  • as she was!--You know how I dreaded the thoughts of seeing her;--but
  • the very moment I was introduced, there was such an affability in her
  • behaviour as really should seem to say, she had quite took a fancy to
  • me. Now was not it so?-- You saw it all; and was not you quite struck
  • with it?"
  • "She was certainly very civil to you."
  • "Civil!--Did you see nothing but only civility?-- I saw a vast deal
  • more. Such kindness as fell to the share of nobody but me!--No pride,
  • no hauteur, and your sister just the same--all sweetness and
  • affability!"
  • Elinor wished to talk of something else, but Lucy still pressed her to
  • own that she had reason for her happiness; and Elinor was obliged to go
  • on.--
  • "Undoubtedly, if they had known your engagement," said she, "nothing
  • could be more flattering than their treatment of you;--but as that was
  • not the case"--
  • "I guessed you would say so,"--replied Lucy quickly--"but there was no
  • reason in the world why Mrs. Ferrars should seem to like me, if she did
  • not, and her liking me is every thing. You shan't talk me out of my
  • satisfaction. I am sure it will all end well, and there will be no
  • difficulties at all, to what I used to think. Mrs. Ferrars is a
  • charming woman, and so is your sister. They are both delightful women,
  • indeed!--I wonder I should never hear you say how agreeable Mrs.
  • Dashwood was!"
  • To this Elinor had no answer to make, and did not attempt any.
  • "Are you ill, Miss Dashwood?--you seem low--you don't speak;--sure you
  • an't well."
  • "I never was in better health."
  • "I am glad of it with all my heart; but really you did not look it. I
  • should be sorry to have YOU ill; you, that have been the greatest
  • comfort to me in the world!--Heaven knows what I should have done
  • without your friendship."--
  • Elinor tried to make a civil answer, though doubting her own success.
  • But it seemed to satisfy Lucy, for she directly replied,
  • "Indeed I am perfectly convinced of your regard for me, and next to
  • Edward's love, it is the greatest comfort I have.--Poor Edward!--But
  • now there is one good thing, we shall be able to meet, and meet pretty
  • often, for Lady Middleton's delighted with Mrs. Dashwood, so we shall
  • be a good deal in Harley Street, I dare say, and Edward spends half his
  • time with his sister--besides, Lady Middleton and Mrs. Ferrars will
  • visit now;--and Mrs. Ferrars and your sister were both so good to say
  • more than once, they should always be glad to see me.-- They are such
  • charming women!--I am sure if ever you tell your sister what I think of
  • her, you cannot speak too high."
  • But Elinor would not give her any encouragement to hope that she SHOULD
  • tell her sister. Lucy continued.
  • "I am sure I should have seen it in a moment, if Mrs. Ferrars had took
  • a dislike to me. If she had only made me a formal courtesy, for
  • instance, without saying a word, and never after had took any notice of
  • me, and never looked at me in a pleasant way--you know what I mean--if
  • I had been treated in that forbidding sort of way, I should have gave
  • it all up in despair. I could not have stood it. For where she DOES
  • dislike, I know it is most violent."
  • Elinor was prevented from making any reply to this civil triumph, by
  • the door's being thrown open, the servant's announcing Mr. Ferrars, and
  • Edward's immediately walking in.
  • It was a very awkward moment; and the countenance of each shewed that
  • it was so. They all looked exceedingly foolish; and Edward seemed to
  • have as great an inclination to walk out of the room again, as to
  • advance farther into it. The very circumstance, in its unpleasantest
  • form, which they would each have been most anxious to avoid, had fallen
  • on them.--They were not only all three together, but were together
  • without the relief of any other person. The ladies recovered
  • themselves first. It was not Lucy's business to put herself forward,
  • and the appearance of secrecy must still be kept up. She could
  • therefore only LOOK her tenderness, and after slightly addressing him,
  • said no more.
  • But Elinor had more to do; and so anxious was she, for his sake and her
  • own, to do it well, that she forced herself, after a moment's
  • recollection, to welcome him, with a look and manner that were almost
  • easy, and almost open; and another struggle, another effort still
  • improved them. She would not allow the presence of Lucy, nor the
  • consciousness of some injustice towards herself, to deter her from
  • saying that she was happy to see him, and that she had very much
  • regretted being from home, when he called before in Berkeley Street.
  • She would not be frightened from paying him those attentions which, as
  • a friend and almost a relation, were his due, by the observant eyes of
  • Lucy, though she soon perceived them to be narrowly watching her.
  • Her manners gave some re-assurance to Edward, and he had courage enough
  • to sit down; but his embarrassment still exceeded that of the ladies in
  • a proportion, which the case rendered reasonable, though his sex might
  • make it rare; for his heart had not the indifference of Lucy's, nor
  • could his conscience have quite the ease of Elinor's.
  • Lucy, with a demure and settled air, seemed determined to make no
  • contribution to the comfort of the others, and would not say a word;
  • and almost every thing that WAS said, proceeded from Elinor, who was
  • obliged to volunteer all the information about her mother's health,
  • their coming to town, &c. which Edward ought to have inquired about,
  • but never did.
  • Her exertions did not stop here; for she soon afterwards felt herself
  • so heroically disposed as to determine, under pretence of fetching
  • Marianne, to leave the others by themselves; and she really did it, and
  • THAT in the handsomest manner, for she loitered away several minutes on
  • the landing-place, with the most high-minded fortitude, before she went
  • to her sister. When that was once done, however, it was time for the
  • raptures of Edward to cease; for Marianne's joy hurried her into the
  • drawing-room immediately. Her pleasure in seeing him was like every
  • other of her feelings, strong in itself, and strongly spoken. She met
  • him with a hand that would be taken, and a voice that expressed the
  • affection of a sister.
  • "Dear Edward!" she cried, "this is a moment of great happiness!--This
  • would almost make amends for every thing!"
  • Edward tried to return her kindness as it deserved, but before such
  • witnesses he dared not say half what he really felt. Again they all
  • sat down, and for a moment or two all were silent; while Marianne was
  • looking with the most speaking tenderness, sometimes at Edward and
  • sometimes at Elinor, regretting only that their delight in each other
  • should be checked by Lucy's unwelcome presence. Edward was the first
  • to speak, and it was to notice Marianne's altered looks, and express
  • his fear of her not finding London agree with her.
  • "Oh, don't think of me!" she replied with spirited earnestness, though
  • her eyes were filled with tears as she spoke, "don't think of MY
  • health. Elinor is well, you see. That must be enough for us both."
  • This remark was not calculated to make Edward or Elinor more easy, nor
  • to conciliate the good will of Lucy, who looked up at Marianne with no
  • very benignant expression.
  • "Do you like London?" said Edward, willing to say any thing that might
  • introduce another subject.
  • "Not at all. I expected much pleasure in it, but I have found none.
  • The sight of you, Edward, is the only comfort it has afforded; and
  • thank Heaven! you are what you always were!"
  • She paused--no one spoke.
  • "I think, Elinor," she presently added, "we must employ Edward to take
  • care of us in our return to Barton. In a week or two, I suppose, we
  • shall be going; and, I trust, Edward will not be very unwilling to
  • accept the charge."
  • Poor Edward muttered something, but what it was, nobody knew, not even
  • himself. But Marianne, who saw his agitation, and could easily trace
  • it to whatever cause best pleased herself, was perfectly satisfied, and
  • soon talked of something else.
  • "We spent such a day, Edward, in Harley Street yesterday! So dull, so
  • wretchedly dull!--But I have much to say to you on that head, which
  • cannot be said now."
  • And with this admirable discretion did she defer the assurance of her
  • finding their mutual relatives more disagreeable than ever, and of her
  • being particularly disgusted with his mother, till they were more in
  • private.
  • "But why were you not there, Edward?--Why did you not come?"
  • "I was engaged elsewhere."
  • "Engaged! But what was that, when such friends were to be met?"
  • "Perhaps, Miss Marianne," cried Lucy, eager to take some revenge on
  • her, "you think young men never stand upon engagements, if they have no
  • mind to keep them, little as well as great."
  • Elinor was very angry, but Marianne seemed entirely insensible of the
  • sting; for she calmly replied,
  • "Not so, indeed; for, seriously speaking, I am very sure that
  • conscience only kept Edward from Harley Street. And I really believe
  • he HAS the most delicate conscience in the world; the most scrupulous
  • in performing every engagement, however minute, and however it may make
  • against his interest or pleasure. He is the most fearful of giving
  • pain, of wounding expectation, and the most incapable of being selfish,
  • of any body I ever saw. Edward, it is so, and I will say it. What!
  • are you never to hear yourself praised!--Then you must be no friend of
  • mine; for those who will accept of my love and esteem, must submit to
  • my open commendation."
  • The nature of her commendation, in the present case, however, happened
  • to be particularly ill-suited to the feelings of two thirds of her
  • auditors, and was so very unexhilarating to Edward, that he very soon
  • got up to go away.
  • "Going so soon!" said Marianne; "my dear Edward, this must not be."
  • And drawing him a little aside, she whispered her persuasion that Lucy
  • could not stay much longer. But even this encouragement failed, for he
  • would go; and Lucy, who would have outstaid him, had his visit lasted
  • two hours, soon afterwards went away.
  • "What can bring her here so often?" said Marianne, on her leaving them.
  • "Could not she see that we wanted her gone!--how teazing to Edward!"
  • "Why so?--we were all his friends, and Lucy has been the longest known
  • to him of any. It is but natural that he should like to see her as
  • well as ourselves."
  • Marianne looked at her steadily, and said, "You know, Elinor, that this
  • is a kind of talking which I cannot bear. If you only hope to have
  • your assertion contradicted, as I must suppose to be the case, you
  • ought to recollect that I am the last person in the world to do it. I
  • cannot descend to be tricked out of assurances, that are not really
  • wanted."
  • She then left the room; and Elinor dared not follow her to say more,
  • for bound as she was by her promise of secrecy to Lucy, she could give
  • no information that would convince Marianne; and painful as the
  • consequences of her still continuing in an error might be, she was
  • obliged to submit to it. All that she could hope, was that Edward
  • would not often expose her or himself to the distress of hearing
  • Marianne's mistaken warmth, nor to the repetition of any other part of
  • the pain that had attended their recent meeting--and this she had every
  • reason to expect.
  • CHAPTER 36
  • Within a few days after this meeting, the newspapers announced to the
  • world, that the lady of Thomas Palmer, Esq. was safely delivered of a
  • son and heir; a very interesting and satisfactory paragraph, at least
  • to all those intimate connections who knew it before.
  • This event, highly important to Mrs. Jennings's happiness, produced a
  • temporary alteration in the disposal of her time, and influenced, in a
  • like degree, the engagements of her young friends; for as she wished to
  • be as much as possible with Charlotte, she went thither every morning as
  • soon as she was dressed, and did not return till late in the evening;
  • and the Miss Dashwoods, at the particular request of the Middletons,
  • spent the whole of every day in Conduit Street. For their own comfort
  • they would much rather have remained, at least all the morning, in Mrs.
  • Jennings's house; but it was not a thing to be urged against the wishes
  • of everybody. Their hours were therefore made over to Lady Middleton and
  • the two Miss Steeles, by whom their company, in fact was as little
  • valued, as it was professedly sought.
  • They had too much sense to be desirable companions to the former; and
  • by the latter they were considered with a jealous eye, as intruding on
  • THEIR ground, and sharing the kindness which they wanted to monopolize.
  • Though nothing could be more polite than Lady Middleton's behaviour to
  • Elinor and Marianne, she did not really like them at all. Because they
  • neither flattered herself nor her children, she could not believe them
  • good-natured; and because they were fond of reading, she fancied them
  • satirical: perhaps without exactly knowing what it was to be satirical;
  • but THAT did not signify. It was censure in common use, and easily
  • given.
  • Their presence was a restraint both on her and on Lucy. It checked the
  • idleness of one, and the business of the other. Lady Middleton was
  • ashamed of doing nothing before them, and the flattery which Lucy was
  • proud to think of and administer at other times, she feared they would
  • despise her for offering. Miss Steele was the least discomposed of the
  • three, by their presence; and it was in their power to reconcile her to
  • it entirely. Would either of them only have given her a full and
  • minute account of the whole affair between Marianne and Mr. Willoughby,
  • she would have thought herself amply rewarded for the sacrifice of the
  • best place by the fire after dinner, which their arrival occasioned.
  • But this conciliation was not granted; for though she often threw out
  • expressions of pity for her sister to Elinor, and more than once dropt
  • a reflection on the inconstancy of beaux before Marianne, no effect was
  • produced, but a look of indifference from the former, or of disgust in
  • the latter. An effort even yet lighter might have made her their
  • friend. Would they only have laughed at her about the Doctor! But so
  • little were they, anymore than the others, inclined to oblige her, that
  • if Sir John dined from home, she might spend a whole day without
  • hearing any other raillery on the subject, than what she was kind
  • enough to bestow on herself.
  • All these jealousies and discontents, however, were so totally
  • unsuspected by Mrs. Jennings, that she thought it a delightful thing
  • for the girls to be together; and generally congratulated her young
  • friends every night, on having escaped the company of a stupid old
  • woman so long. She joined them sometimes at Sir John's, sometimes at
  • her own house; but wherever it was, she always came in excellent
  • spirits, full of delight and importance, attributing Charlotte's well
  • doing to her own care, and ready to give so exact, so minute a detail
  • of her situation, as only Miss Steele had curiosity enough to desire.
  • One thing DID disturb her; and of that she made her daily complaint.
  • Mr. Palmer maintained the common, but unfatherly opinion among his sex,
  • of all infants being alike; and though she could plainly perceive, at
  • different times, the most striking resemblance between this baby and
  • every one of his relations on both sides, there was no convincing his
  • father of it; no persuading him to believe that it was not exactly like
  • every other baby of the same age; nor could he even be brought to
  • acknowledge the simple proposition of its being the finest child in the
  • world.
  • I come now to the relation of a misfortune, which about this time
  • befell Mrs. John Dashwood. It so happened that while her two sisters
  • with Mrs. Jennings were first calling on her in Harley Street, another
  • of her acquaintance had dropt in--a circumstance in itself not
  • apparently likely to produce evil to her. But while the imaginations
  • of other people will carry them away to form wrong judgments of our
  • conduct, and to decide on it by slight appearances, one's happiness
  • must in some measure be always at the mercy of chance. In the present
  • instance, this last-arrived lady allowed her fancy to so far outrun
  • truth and probability, that on merely hearing the name of the Miss
  • Dashwoods, and understanding them to be Mr. Dashwood's sisters, she
  • immediately concluded them to be staying in Harley Street; and this
  • misconstruction produced within a day or two afterwards, cards of
  • invitation for them as well as for their brother and sister, to a small
  • musical party at her house. The consequence of which was, that Mrs.
  • John Dashwood was obliged to submit not only to the exceedingly great
  • inconvenience of sending her carriage for the Miss Dashwoods, but, what
  • was still worse, must be subject to all the unpleasantness of appearing
  • to treat them with attention: and who could tell that they might not
  • expect to go out with her a second time? The power of disappointing
  • them, it was true, must always be hers. But that was not enough; for
  • when people are determined on a mode of conduct which they know to be
  • wrong, they feel injured by the expectation of any thing better from
  • them.
  • Marianne had now been brought by degrees, so much into the habit of
  • going out every day, that it was become a matter of indifference to
  • her, whether she went or not: and she prepared quietly and mechanically
  • for every evening's engagement, though without expecting the smallest
  • amusement from any, and very often without knowing, till the last
  • moment, where it was to take her.
  • To her dress and appearance she was grown so perfectly indifferent, as
  • not to bestow half the consideration on it, during the whole of her
  • toilet, which it received from Miss Steele in the first five minutes of
  • their being together, when it was finished. Nothing escaped HER minute
  • observation and general curiosity; she saw every thing, and asked every
  • thing; was never easy till she knew the price of every part of
  • Marianne's dress; could have guessed the number of her gowns altogether
  • with better judgment than Marianne herself, and was not without hopes
  • of finding out before they parted, how much her washing cost per week,
  • and how much she had every year to spend upon herself. The
  • impertinence of these kind of scrutinies, moreover, was generally
  • concluded with a compliment, which though meant as its douceur, was
  • considered by Marianne as the greatest impertinence of all; for after
  • undergoing an examination into the value and make of her gown, the
  • colour of her shoes, and the arrangement of her hair, she was almost
  • sure of being told that upon "her word she looked vastly smart, and she
  • dared to say she would make a great many conquests."
  • With such encouragement as this, was she dismissed on the present
  • occasion, to her brother's carriage; which they were ready to enter
  • five minutes after it stopped at the door, a punctuality not very
  • agreeable to their sister-in-law, who had preceded them to the house of
  • her acquaintance, and was there hoping for some delay on their part
  • that might inconvenience either herself or her coachman.
  • The events of this evening were not very remarkable. The party, like
  • other musical parties, comprehended a great many people who had real
  • taste for the performance, and a great many more who had none at all;
  • and the performers themselves were, as usual, in their own estimation,
  • and that of their immediate friends, the first private performers in
  • England.
  • As Elinor was neither musical, nor affecting to be so, she made no
  • scruple of turning her eyes from the grand pianoforte, whenever it
  • suited her, and unrestrained even by the presence of a harp, and
  • violoncello, would fix them at pleasure on any other object in the
  • room. In one of these excursive glances she perceived among a group of
  • young men, the very he, who had given them a lecture on toothpick-cases
  • at Gray's. She perceived him soon afterwards looking at herself, and
  • speaking familiarly to her brother; and had just determined to find out
  • his name from the latter, when they both came towards her, and Mr.
  • Dashwood introduced him to her as Mr. Robert Ferrars.
  • He addressed her with easy civility, and twisted his head into a bow
  • which assured her as plainly as words could have done, that he was
  • exactly the coxcomb she had heard him described to be by Lucy. Happy
  • had it been for her, if her regard for Edward had depended less on his
  • own merit, than on the merit of his nearest relations! For then his
  • brother's bow must have given the finishing stroke to what the
  • ill-humour of his mother and sister would have begun. But while she
  • wondered at the difference of the two young men, she did not find that
  • the emptiness of conceit of the one, put her out of all charity with
  • the modesty and worth of the other. Why they WERE different, Robert
  • exclaimed to her himself in the course of a quarter of an hour's
  • conversation; for, talking of his brother, and lamenting the extreme
  • GAUCHERIE which he really believed kept him from mixing in proper
  • society, he candidly and generously attributed it much less to any
  • natural deficiency, than to the misfortune of a private education;
  • while he himself, though probably without any particular, any material
  • superiority by nature, merely from the advantage of a public school,
  • was as well fitted to mix in the world as any other man.
  • "Upon my soul," he added, "I believe it is nothing more; and so I often
  • tell my mother, when she is grieving about it. 'My dear Madam,' I
  • always say to her, 'you must make yourself easy. The evil is now
  • irremediable, and it has been entirely your own doing. Why would you
  • be persuaded by my uncle, Sir Robert, against your own judgment, to
  • place Edward under private tuition, at the most critical time of his
  • life? If you had only sent him to Westminster as well as myself,
  • instead of sending him to Mr. Pratt's, all this would have been
  • prevented.' This is the way in which I always consider the matter, and
  • my mother is perfectly convinced of her error."
  • Elinor would not oppose his opinion, because, whatever might be her
  • general estimation of the advantage of a public school, she could not
  • think of Edward's abode in Mr. Pratt's family, with any satisfaction.
  • "You reside in Devonshire, I think,"--was his next observation, "in a
  • cottage near Dawlish."
  • Elinor set him right as to its situation; and it seemed rather
  • surprising to him that anybody could live in Devonshire, without living
  • near Dawlish. He bestowed his hearty approbation however on their
  • species of house.
  • "For my own part," said he, "I am excessively fond of a cottage; there
  • is always so much comfort, so much elegance about them. And I protest,
  • if I had any money to spare, I should buy a little land and build one
  • myself, within a short distance of London, where I might drive myself
  • down at any time, and collect a few friends about me, and be happy. I
  • advise every body who is going to build, to build a cottage. My friend
  • Lord Courtland came to me the other day on purpose to ask my advice,
  • and laid before me three different plans of Bonomi's. I was to decide
  • on the best of them. 'My dear Courtland,' said I, immediately throwing
  • them all into the fire, 'do not adopt either of them, but by all means
  • build a cottage.' And that I fancy, will be the end of it.
  • "Some people imagine that there can be no accommodations, no space in a
  • cottage; but this is all a mistake. I was last month at my friend
  • Elliott's, near Dartford. Lady Elliott wished to give a dance. 'But
  • how can it be done?' said she; 'my dear Ferrars, do tell me how it is
  • to be managed. There is not a room in this cottage that will hold ten
  • couple, and where can the supper be?' I immediately saw that there
  • could be no difficulty in it, so I said, 'My dear Lady Elliott, do not
  • be uneasy. The dining parlour will admit eighteen couple with ease;
  • card-tables may be placed in the drawing-room; the library may be open
  • for tea and other refreshments; and let the supper be set out in the
  • saloon.' Lady Elliott was delighted with the thought. We measured the
  • dining-room, and found it would hold exactly eighteen couple, and the
  • affair was arranged precisely after my plan. So that, in fact, you
  • see, if people do but know how to set about it, every comfort may be as
  • well enjoyed in a cottage as in the most spacious dwelling."
  • Elinor agreed to it all, for she did not think he deserved the
  • compliment of rational opposition.
  • As John Dashwood had no more pleasure in music than his eldest sister,
  • his mind was equally at liberty to fix on any thing else; and a thought
  • struck him during the evening, which he communicated to his wife, for
  • her approbation, when they got home. The consideration of Mrs.
  • Dennison's mistake, in supposing his sisters their guests, had
  • suggested the propriety of their being really invited to become such,
  • while Mrs. Jennings's engagements kept her from home. The expense would
  • be nothing, the inconvenience not more; and it was altogether an
  • attention which the delicacy of his conscience pointed out to be
  • requisite to its complete enfranchisement from his promise to his
  • father. Fanny was startled at the proposal.
  • "I do not see how it can be done," said she, "without affronting Lady
  • Middleton, for they spend every day with her; otherwise I should be
  • exceedingly glad to do it. You know I am always ready to pay them any
  • attention in my power, as my taking them out this evening shews. But
  • they are Lady Middleton's visitors. How can I ask them away from her?"
  • Her husband, but with great humility, did not see the force of her
  • objection. "They had already spent a week in this manner in Conduit
  • Street, and Lady Middleton could not be displeased at their giving the
  • same number of days to such near relations."
  • Fanny paused a moment, and then, with fresh vigor, said,
  • "My love I would ask them with all my heart, if it was in my power.
  • But I had just settled within myself to ask the Miss Steeles to spend a
  • few days with us. They are very well behaved, good kind of girls; and
  • I think the attention is due to them, as their uncle did so very well
  • by Edward. We can ask your sisters some other year, you know; but the
  • Miss Steeles may not be in town any more. I am sure you will like
  • them; indeed, you DO like them, you know, very much already, and so
  • does my mother; and they are such favourites with Harry!"
  • Mr. Dashwood was convinced. He saw the necessity of inviting the Miss
  • Steeles immediately, and his conscience was pacified by the resolution
  • of inviting his sisters another year; at the same time, however, slyly
  • suspecting that another year would make the invitation needless, by
  • bringing Elinor to town as Colonel Brandon's wife, and Marianne as
  • THEIR visitor.
  • Fanny, rejoicing in her escape, and proud of the ready wit that had
  • procured it, wrote the next morning to Lucy, to request her company and
  • her sister's, for some days, in Harley Street, as soon as Lady
  • Middleton could spare them. This was enough to make Lucy really and
  • reasonably happy. Mrs. Dashwood seemed actually working for her,
  • herself; cherishing all her hopes, and promoting all her views! Such
  • an opportunity of being with Edward and his family was, above all
  • things, the most material to her interest, and such an invitation the
  • most gratifying to her feelings! It was an advantage that could not be
  • too gratefully acknowledged, nor too speedily made use of; and the
  • visit to Lady Middleton, which had not before had any precise limits,
  • was instantly discovered to have been always meant to end in two days'
  • time.
  • When the note was shown to Elinor, as it was within ten minutes after
  • its arrival, it gave her, for the first time, some share in the
  • expectations of Lucy; for such a mark of uncommon kindness, vouchsafed
  • on so short an acquaintance, seemed to declare that the good-will
  • towards her arose from something more than merely malice against
  • herself; and might be brought, by time and address, to do every thing
  • that Lucy wished. Her flattery had already subdued the pride of Lady
  • Middleton, and made an entry into the close heart of Mrs. John
  • Dashwood; and these were effects that laid open the probability of
  • greater.
  • The Miss Steeles removed to Harley Street, and all that reached Elinor
  • of their influence there, strengthened her expectation of the event.
  • Sir John, who called on them more than once, brought home such accounts
  • of the favour they were in, as must be universally striking. Mrs.
  • Dashwood had never been so much pleased with any young women in her
  • life, as she was with them; had given each of them a needle book made
  • by some emigrant; called Lucy by her Christian name; and did not know
  • whether she should ever be able to part with them.
  • [At this point in the first and second editions, Volume II ended.]
  • CHAPTER 37
  • Mrs. Palmer was so well at the end of a fortnight, that her mother felt
  • it no longer necessary to give up the whole of her time to her; and,
  • contenting herself with visiting her once or twice a day, returned from
  • that period to her own home, and her own habits, in which she found the
  • Miss Dashwoods very ready to resume their former share.
  • About the third or fourth morning after their being thus resettled in
  • Berkeley Street, Mrs. Jennings, on returning from her ordinary visit to
  • Mrs. Palmer, entered the drawing-room, where Elinor was sitting by
  • herself, with an air of such hurrying importance as prepared her to
  • hear something wonderful; and giving her time only to form that idea,
  • began directly to justify it, by saying,
  • "Lord! my dear Miss Dashwood! have you heard the news?"
  • "No, ma'am. What is it?"
  • "Something so strange! But you shall hear it all.-- When I got to Mr.
  • Palmer's, I found Charlotte quite in a fuss about the child. She was
  • sure it was very ill--it cried, and fretted, and was all over pimples.
  • So I looked at it directly, and, 'Lord! my dear,' says I, 'it is
  • nothing in the world, but the red gum--' and nurse said just the same.
  • But Charlotte, she would not be satisfied, so Mr. Donavan was sent for;
  • and luckily he happened to just come in from Harley Street, so he
  • stepped over directly, and as soon as ever Mama, he said
  • just as we did, that it was nothing in the world but the red gum, and
  • then Charlotte was easy. And so, just as he was going away again, it
  • came into my head, I am sure I do not know how I happened to think of
  • it, but it came into my head to ask him if there was any news. So upon
  • that, he smirked, and simpered, and looked grave, and seemed to know
  • something or other, and at last he said in a whisper, 'For fear any
  • unpleasant report should reach the young ladies under your care as to
  • their sister's indisposition, I think it advisable to say, that I
  • believe there is no great reason for alarm; I hope Mrs. Dashwood will
  • do very well.'"
  • "What! is Fanny ill?"
  • "That is exactly what I said, my dear. 'Lord!' says I, 'is Mrs.
  • Dashwood ill?' So then it all came out; and the long and the short of
  • the matter, by all I can learn, seems to be this. Mr. Edward Ferrars,
  • the very young man I used to joke with you about (but however, as it
  • turns out, I am monstrous glad there was never any thing in it), Mr.
  • Edward Ferrars, it seems, has been engaged above this twelvemonth to my
  • cousin Lucy!--There's for you, my dear!--And not a creature knowing a
  • syllable of the matter, except Nancy!--Could you have believed such a
  • thing possible?-- There is no great wonder in their liking one another;
  • but that matters should be brought so forward between them, and nobody
  • suspect it!--THAT is strange!--I never happened to see them together,
  • or I am sure I should have found it out directly. Well, and so this
  • was kept a great secret, for fear of Mrs. Ferrars, and neither she nor
  • your brother or sister suspected a word of the matter;--till this very
  • morning, poor Nancy, who, you know, is a well-meaning creature, but no
  • conjurer, popt it all out. 'Lord!' thinks she to herself, 'they are
  • all so fond of Lucy, to be sure they will make no difficulty about it;'
  • and so, away she went to your sister, who was sitting all alone at her
  • carpet-work, little suspecting what was to come--for she had just been
  • saying to your brother, only five minutes before, that she thought to
  • make a match between Edward and some Lord's daughter or other, I forget
  • who. So you may think what a blow it was to all her vanity and pride.
  • She fell into violent hysterics immediately, with such screams as
  • reached your brother's ears, as he was sitting in his own dressing-room
  • down stairs, thinking about writing a letter to his steward in the
  • country. So up he flew directly, and a terrible scene took place, for
  • Lucy was come to them by that time, little dreaming what was going on.
  • Poor soul! I pity HER. And I must say, I think she was used very
  • hardly; for your sister scolded like any fury, and soon drove her into
  • a fainting fit. Nancy, she fell upon her knees, and cried bitterly;
  • and your brother, he walked about the room, and said he did not know
  • what to do. Mrs. Dashwood declared they should not stay a minute
  • longer in the house, and your brother was forced to go down upon HIS
  • knees too, to persuade her to let them stay till they had packed up
  • their clothes. THEN she fell into hysterics again, and he was so
  • frightened that he would send for Mr. Donavan, and Mr. Donavan found
  • the house in all this uproar. The carriage was at the door ready to
  • take my poor cousins away, and they were just stepping in as he came
  • off; poor Lucy in such a condition, he says, she could hardly walk; and
  • Nancy, she was almost as bad. I declare, I have no patience with your
  • sister; and I hope, with all my heart, it will be a match in spite of
  • her. Lord! what a taking poor Mr. Edward will be in when he hears of
  • it! To have his love used so scornfully! for they say he is monstrous
  • fond of her, as well he may. I should not wonder, if he was to be in
  • the greatest passion!--and Mr. Donavan thinks just the same. He and I
  • had a great deal of talk about it; and the best of all is, that he is
  • gone back again to Harley Street, that he may be within call when Mrs.
  • Ferrars is told of it, for she was sent for as soon as ever my cousins
  • left the house, for your sister was sure SHE would be in hysterics too;
  • and so she may, for what I care. I have no pity for either of them. I
  • have no notion of people's making such a to-do about money and
  • greatness. There is no reason on earth why Mr. Edward and Lucy should
  • not marry; for I am sure Mrs. Ferrars may afford to do very well by her
  • son, and though Lucy has next to nothing herself, she knows better than
  • any body how to make the most of every thing; I dare say, if Mrs.
  • Ferrars would only allow him five hundred a-year, she would make as
  • good an appearance with it as any body else would with eight. Lord!
  • how snug they might live in such another cottage as yours--or a little
  • bigger--with two maids, and two men; and I believe I could help them to
  • a housemaid, for my Betty has a sister out of place, that would fit
  • them exactly."
  • Here Mrs. Jennings ceased, and as Elinor had had time enough to collect
  • her thoughts, she was able to give such an answer, and make such
  • observations, as the subject might naturally be supposed to produce.
  • Happy to find that she was not suspected of any extraordinary interest
  • in it; that Mrs. Jennings (as she had of late often hoped might be the
  • case) had ceased to imagine her at all attached to Edward; and happy
  • above all the rest, in the absence of Marianne, she felt very well able
  • to speak of the affair without embarrassment, and to give her judgment,
  • as she believed, with impartiality on the conduct of every one
  • concerned in it.
  • She could hardly determine what her own expectation of its event really
  • was; though she earnestly tried to drive away the notion of its being
  • possible to end otherwise at last, than in the marriage of Edward and
  • Lucy. What Mrs. Ferrars would say and do, though there could not be a
  • doubt of its nature, she was anxious to hear; and still more anxious to
  • know how Edward would conduct himself. For HIM she felt much
  • compassion;--for Lucy very little--and it cost her some pains to
  • procure that little;--for the rest of the party none at all.
  • As Mrs. Jennings could talk on no other subject, Elinor soon saw the
  • necessity of preparing Marianne for its discussion. No time was to be
  • lost in undeceiving her, in making her acquainted with the real truth,
  • and in endeavouring to bring her to hear it talked of by others,
  • without betraying that she felt any uneasiness for her sister, or any
  • resentment against Edward.
  • Elinor's office was a painful one.--She was going to remove what she
  • really believed to be her sister's chief consolation,--to give such
  • particulars of Edward as she feared would ruin him for ever in her good
  • opinion,-and to make Marianne, by a resemblance in their situations,
  • which to HER fancy would seem strong, feel all her own disappointment
  • over again. But unwelcome as such a task must be, it was necessary to
  • be done, and Elinor therefore hastened to perform it.
  • She was very far from wishing to dwell on her own feelings, or to
  • represent herself as suffering much, any otherwise than as the
  • self-command she had practised since her first knowledge of Edward's
  • engagement, might suggest a hint of what was practicable to Marianne.
  • Her narration was clear and simple; and though it could not be given
  • without emotion, it was not accompanied by violent agitation, nor
  • impetuous grief.--THAT belonged rather to the hearer, for Marianne
  • listened with horror, and cried excessively. Elinor was to be the
  • comforter of others in her own distresses, no less than in theirs; and
  • all the comfort that could be given by assurances of her own composure
  • of mind, and a very earnest vindication of Edward from every charge but
  • of imprudence, was readily offered.
  • But Marianne for some time would give credit to neither. Edward seemed
  • a second Willoughby; and acknowledging as Elinor did, that she HAD
  • loved him most sincerely, could she feel less than herself! As for
  • Lucy Steele, she considered her so totally unamiable, so absolutely
  • incapable of attaching a sensible man, that she could not be persuaded
  • at first to believe, and afterwards to pardon, any former affection of
  • Edward for her. She would not even admit it to have been natural; and
  • Elinor left her to be convinced that it was so, by that which only
  • could convince her, a better knowledge of mankind.
  • Her first communication had reached no farther than to state the fact
  • of the engagement, and the length of time it had existed.--Marianne's
  • feelings had then broken in, and put an end to all regularity of
  • detail; and for some time all that could be done was to soothe her
  • distress, lessen her alarms, and combat her resentment. The first
  • question on her side, which led to farther particulars, was,--
  • "How long has this been known to you, Elinor? has he written to you?"
  • "I have known it these four months. When Lucy first came to Barton
  • Park last November, she told me in confidence of her engagement."
  • At these words, Marianne's eyes expressed the astonishment which her
  • lips could not utter. After a pause of wonder, she exclaimed--
  • "Four months!--Have you known of this four months?"
  • Elinor confirmed it.
  • "What!--while attending me in all my misery, has this been on your
  • heart?--And I have reproached you for being happy!"--
  • "It was not fit that you should then know how much I was the reverse!"
  • "Four months!"--cried Marianne again.--"So calm!--so cheerful!--how
  • have you been supported?"--
  • "By feeling that I was doing my duty.--My promise to Lucy, obliged me
  • to be secret. I owed it to her, therefore, to avoid giving any hint of
  • the truth; and I owed it to my family and friends, not to create in
  • them a solicitude about me, which it could not be in my power to
  • satisfy."
  • Marianne seemed much struck.
  • "I have very often wished to undeceive yourself and my mother," added
  • Elinor; "and once or twice I have attempted it;--but without betraying
  • my trust, I never could have convinced you."
  • "Four months!--and yet you loved him!"--
  • "Yes. But I did not love only him;--and while the comfort of others was
  • dear to me, I was glad to spare them from knowing how much I felt.
  • Now, I can think and speak of it with little emotion. I would not have
  • you suffer on my account; for I assure you I no longer suffer
  • materially myself. I have many things to support me. I am not
  • conscious of having provoked the disappointment by any imprudence of my
  • own, I have borne it as much as possible without spreading it farther.
  • I acquit Edward of essential misconduct. I wish him very happy; and I
  • am so sure of his always doing his duty, that though now he may harbour
  • some regret, in the end he must become so. Lucy does not want sense,
  • and that is the foundation on which every thing good may be built.--And
  • after all, Marianne, after all that is bewitching in the idea of a
  • single and constant attachment, and all that can be said of one's
  • happiness depending entirely on any particular person, it is not
  • meant--it is not fit--it is not possible that it should be so.-- Edward
  • will marry Lucy; he will marry a woman superior in person and
  • understanding to half her sex; and time and habit will teach him to
  • forget that he ever thought another superior to HER."--
  • "If such is your way of thinking," said Marianne, "if the loss of what
  • is most valued is so easily to be made up by something else, your
  • resolution, your self-command, are, perhaps, a little less to be
  • wondered at.--They are brought more within my comprehension."
  • "I understand you.--You do not suppose that I have ever felt much.--For
  • four months, Marianne, I have had all this hanging on my mind, without
  • being at liberty to speak of it to a single creature; knowing that it
  • would make you and my mother most unhappy whenever it were explained to
  • you, yet unable to prepare you for it in the least.-- It was told
  • me,--it was in a manner forced on me by the very person herself, whose
  • prior engagement ruined all my prospects; and told me, as I thought,
  • with triumph.-- This person's suspicions, therefore, I have had to
  • oppose, by endeavouring to appear indifferent where I have been most
  • deeply interested;--and it has not been only once;--I have had her
  • hopes and exultation to listen to again and again.-- I have known
  • myself to be divided from Edward for ever, without hearing one
  • circumstance that could make me less desire the connection.--Nothing
  • has proved him unworthy; nor has anything declared him indifferent to
  • me.-- I have had to contend against the unkindness of his sister, and
  • the insolence of his mother; and have suffered the punishment of an
  • attachment, without enjoying its advantages.-- And all this has been
  • going on at a time, when, as you know too well, it has not been my only
  • unhappiness.-- If you can think me capable of ever feeling--surely you
  • may suppose that I have suffered NOW. The composure of mind with which
  • I have brought myself at present to consider the matter, the
  • consolation that I have been willing to admit, have been the effect of
  • constant and painful exertion;--they did not spring up of
  • themselves;--they did not occur to relieve my spirits at first.-- No,
  • Marianne.--THEN, if I had not been bound to silence, perhaps nothing
  • could have kept me entirely--not even what I owed to my dearest
  • friends--from openly shewing that I was VERY unhappy."--
  • Marianne was quite subdued.--
  • "Oh! Elinor," she cried, "you have made me hate myself for ever.--How
  • barbarous have I been to you!--you, who have been my only comfort, who
  • have borne with me in all my misery, who have seemed to be only
  • suffering for me!--Is this my gratitude?--Is this the only return I can
  • make you?--Because your merit cries out upon myself, I have been trying
  • to do it away."
  • The tenderest caresses followed this confession. In such a frame of
  • mind as she was now in, Elinor had no difficulty in obtaining from her
  • whatever promise she required; and at her request, Marianne engaged
  • never to speak of the affair to any one with the least appearance of
  • bitterness;--to meet Lucy without betraying the smallest increase of
  • dislike to her;--and even to see Edward himself, if chance should bring
  • them together, without any diminution of her usual cordiality.-- These
  • were great concessions;--but where Marianne felt that she had injured,
  • no reparation could be too much for her to make.
  • She performed her promise of being discreet, to admiration.--She
  • attended to all that Mrs. Jennings had to say upon the subject, with an
  • unchanging complexion, dissented from her in nothing, and was heard
  • three times to say, "Yes, ma'am."--She listened to her praise of Lucy
  • with only moving from one chair to another, and when Mrs. Jennings
  • talked of Edward's affection, it cost her only a spasm in her
  • throat.--Such advances towards heroism in her sister, made Elinor feel
  • equal to any thing herself.
  • The next morning brought a farther trial of it, in a visit from their
  • brother, who came with a most serious aspect to talk over the dreadful
  • affair, and bring them news of his wife.
  • "You have heard, I suppose," said he with great solemnity, as soon as
  • he was seated, "of the very shocking discovery that took place under
  • our roof yesterday."
  • They all looked their assent; it seemed too awful a moment for speech.
  • "Your sister," he continued, "has suffered dreadfully. Mrs. Ferrars
  • too--in short it has been a scene of such complicated distress--but I
  • will hope that the storm may be weathered without our being any of us
  • quite overcome. Poor Fanny! she was in hysterics all yesterday. But I
  • would not alarm you too much. Donavan says there is nothing materially
  • to be apprehended; her constitution is a good one, and her resolution
  • equal to any thing. She has borne it all, with the fortitude of an
  • angel! She says she never shall think well of anybody again; and one
  • cannot wonder at it, after being so deceived!--meeting with such
  • ingratitude, where so much kindness had been shewn, so much confidence
  • had been placed! It was quite out of the benevolence of her heart,
  • that she had asked these young women to her house; merely because she
  • thought they deserved some attention, were harmless, well-behaved
  • girls, and would be pleasant companions; for otherwise we both wished
  • very much to have invited you and Marianne to be with us, while your
  • kind friend there, was attending her daughter. And now to be so
  • rewarded! 'I wish, with all my heart,' says poor Fanny in her
  • affectionate way, 'that we had asked your sisters instead of them.'"
  • Here he stopped to be thanked; which being done, he went on.
  • "What poor Mrs. Ferrars suffered, when first Fanny broke it to her, is
  • not to be described. While she with the truest affection had been
  • planning a most eligible connection for him, was it to be supposed that
  • he could be all the time secretly engaged to another person!--such a
  • suspicion could never have entered her head! If she suspected ANY
  • prepossession elsewhere, it could not be in THAT quarter. 'THERE, to
  • be sure,' said she, 'I might have thought myself safe.' She was quite
  • in an agony. We consulted together, however, as to what should be
  • done, and at last she determined to send for Edward. He came. But I
  • am sorry to relate what ensued. All that Mrs. Ferrars could say to
  • make him put an end to the engagement, assisted too as you may well
  • suppose by my arguments, and Fanny's entreaties, was of no avail.
  • Duty, affection, every thing was disregarded. I never thought Edward
  • so stubborn, so unfeeling before. His mother explained to him her
  • liberal designs, in case of his marrying Miss Morton; told him she
  • would settle on him the Norfolk estate, which, clear of land-tax,
  • brings in a good thousand a-year; offered even, when matters grew
  • desperate, to make it twelve hundred; and in opposition to this, if he
  • still persisted in this low connection, represented to him the certain
  • penury that must attend the match. His own two thousand pounds she
  • protested should be his all; she would never see him again; and so far
  • would she be from affording him the smallest assistance, that if he
  • were to enter into any profession with a view of better support, she
  • would do all in her power to prevent him advancing in it."
  • Here Marianne, in an ecstasy of indignation, clapped her hands
  • together, and cried, "Gracious God! can this be possible!"
  • "Well may you wonder, Marianne," replied her brother, "at the obstinacy
  • which could resist such arguments as these. Your exclamation is very
  • natural."
  • Marianne was going to retort, but she remembered her promises, and
  • forbore.
  • "All this, however," he continued, "was urged in vain. Edward said
  • very little; but what he did say, was in the most determined manner.
  • Nothing should prevail on him to give up his engagement. He would
  • stand to it, cost him what it might."
  • "Then," cried Mrs. Jennings with blunt sincerity, no longer able to be
  • silent, "he has acted like an honest man! I beg your pardon, Mr.
  • Dashwood, but if he had done otherwise, I should have thought him a
  • rascal. I have some little concern in the business, as well as
  • yourself, for Lucy Steele is my cousin, and I believe there is not a
  • better kind of girl in the world, nor one who more deserves a good
  • husband."
  • John Dashwood was greatly astonished; but his nature was calm, not open
  • to provocation, and he never wished to offend anybody, especially
  • anybody of good fortune. He therefore replied, without any resentment,
  • "I would by no means speak disrespectfully of any relation of yours,
  • madam. Miss Lucy Steele is, I dare say, a very deserving young woman,
  • but in the present case you know, the connection must be impossible.
  • And to have entered into a secret engagement with a young man under her
  • uncle's care, the son of a woman especially of such very large fortune
  • as Mrs. Ferrars, is perhaps, altogether a little extraordinary. In
  • short, I do not mean to reflect upon the behaviour of any person whom
  • you have a regard for, Mrs. Jennings. We all wish her extremely happy;
  • and Mrs. Ferrars's conduct throughout the whole, has been such as every
  • conscientious, good mother, in like circumstances, would adopt. It has
  • been dignified and liberal. Edward has drawn his own lot, and I fear
  • it will be a bad one."
  • Marianne sighed out her similar apprehension; and Elinor's heart wrung
  • for the feelings of Edward, while braving his mother's threats, for a
  • woman who could not reward him.
  • "Well, sir," said Mrs. Jennings, "and how did it end?"
  • "I am sorry to say, ma'am, in a most unhappy rupture:-- Edward is
  • dismissed for ever from his mother's notice. He left her house
  • yesterday, but where he is gone, or whether he is still in town, I do
  • not know; for WE of course can make no inquiry."
  • "Poor young man!--and what is to become of him?"
  • "What, indeed, ma'am! It is a melancholy consideration. Born to the
  • prospect of such affluence! I cannot conceive a situation more
  • deplorable. The interest of two thousand pounds--how can a man live on
  • it?--and when to that is added the recollection, that he might, but for
  • his own folly, within three months have been in the receipt of two
  • thousand, five hundred a-year (for Miss Morton has thirty thousand
  • pounds,) I cannot picture to myself a more wretched condition. We must
  • all feel for him; and the more so, because it is totally out of our
  • power to assist him."
  • "Poor young man!" cried Mrs. Jennings, "I am sure he should be very
  • welcome to bed and board at my house; and so I would tell him if I
  • could see him. It is not fit that he should be living about at his own
  • charge now, at lodgings and taverns."
  • Elinor's heart thanked her for such kindness towards Edward, though she
  • could not forbear smiling at the form of it.
  • "If he would only have done as well by himself," said John Dashwood,
  • "as all his friends were disposed to do by him, he might now have been
  • in his proper situation, and would have wanted for nothing. But as it
  • is, it must be out of anybody's power to assist him. And there is one
  • thing more preparing against him, which must be worse than all--his
  • mother has determined, with a very natural kind of spirit, to settle
  • THAT estate upon Robert immediately, which might have been Edward's, on
  • proper conditions. I left her this morning with her lawyer, talking
  • over the business."
  • "Well!" said Mrs. Jennings, "that is HER revenge. Everybody has a way
  • of their own. But I don't think mine would be, to make one son
  • independent, because another had plagued me."
  • Marianne got up and walked about the room.
  • "Can anything be more galling to the spirit of a man," continued John,
  • "than to see his younger brother in possession of an estate which might
  • have been his own? Poor Edward! I feel for him sincerely."
  • A few minutes more spent in the same kind of effusion, concluded his
  • visit; and with repeated assurances to his sisters that he really
  • believed there was no material danger in Fanny's indisposition, and
  • that they need not therefore be very uneasy about it, he went away;
  • leaving the three ladies unanimous in their sentiments on the present
  • occasion, as far at least as it regarded Mrs. Ferrars's conduct, the
  • Dashwoods', and Edward's.
  • Marianne's indignation burst forth as soon as he quitted the room; and
  • as her vehemence made reserve impossible in Elinor, and unnecessary in
  • Mrs. Jennings, they all joined in a very spirited critique upon the
  • party.
  • CHAPTER 38
  • Mrs. Jennings was very warm in her praise of Edward's conduct, but only
  • Elinor and Marianne understood its true merit. THEY only knew how
  • little he had had to tempt him to be disobedient, and how small was the
  • consolation, beyond the consciousness of doing right, that could remain
  • to him in the loss of friends and fortune. Elinor gloried in his
  • integrity; and Marianne forgave all his offences in compassion for his
  • punishment. But though confidence between them was, by this public
  • discovery, restored to its proper state, it was not a subject on which
  • either of them were fond of dwelling when alone. Elinor avoided it
  • upon principle, as tending to fix still more upon her thoughts, by the
  • too warm, too positive assurances of Marianne, that belief of Edward's
  • continued affection for herself which she rather wished to do away; and
  • Marianne's courage soon failed her, in trying to converse upon a topic
  • which always left her more dissatisfied with herself than ever, by the
  • comparison it necessarily produced between Elinor's conduct and her own.
  • She felt all the force of that comparison; but not as her sister had
  • hoped, to urge her to exertion now; she felt it with all the pain of
  • continual self-reproach, regretted most bitterly that she had never
  • exerted herself before; but it brought only the torture of penitence,
  • without the hope of amendment. Her mind was so much weakened that she
  • still fancied present exertion impossible, and therefore it only
  • dispirited her more.
  • Nothing new was heard by them, for a day or two afterwards, of affairs
  • in Harley Street, or Bartlett's Buildings. But though so much of the
  • matter was known to them already, that Mrs. Jennings might have had
  • enough to do in spreading that knowledge farther, without seeking after
  • more, she had resolved from the first to pay a visit of comfort and
  • inquiry to her cousins as soon as she could; and nothing but the
  • hindrance of more visitors than usual, had prevented her going to them
  • within that time.
  • The third day succeeding their knowledge of the particulars, was so
  • fine, so beautiful a Sunday as to draw many to Kensington Gardens,
  • though it was only the second week in March. Mrs. Jennings and Elinor
  • were of the number; but Marianne, who knew that the Willoughbys were
  • again in town, and had a constant dread of meeting them, chose rather
  • to stay at home, than venture into so public a place.
  • An intimate acquaintance of Mrs. Jennings joined them soon after they
  • entered the Gardens, and Elinor was not sorry that by her continuing
  • with them, and engaging all Mrs. Jennings's conversation, she was
  • herself left to quiet reflection. She saw nothing of the Willoughbys,
  • nothing of Edward, and for some time nothing of anybody who could by
  • any chance whether grave or gay, be interesting to her. But at last
  • she found herself with some surprise, accosted by Miss Steele, who,
  • though looking rather shy, expressed great satisfaction in meeting
  • them, and on receiving encouragement from the particular kindness of
  • Mrs. Jennings, left her own party for a short time, to join their's.
  • Mrs. Jennings immediately whispered to Elinor,
  • "Get it all out of her, my dear. She will tell you any thing if you
  • ask. You see I cannot leave Mrs. Clarke."
  • It was lucky, however, for Mrs. Jennings's curiosity and Elinor's too,
  • that she would tell any thing WITHOUT being asked; for nothing would
  • otherwise have been learnt.
  • "I am so glad to meet you;" said Miss Steele, taking her familiarly by
  • the arm--"for I wanted to see you of all things in the world." And
  • then lowering her voice, "I suppose Mrs. Jennings has heard all about
  • it. Is she angry?"
  • "Not at all, I believe, with you."
  • "That is a good thing. And Lady Middleton, is SHE angry?"
  • "I cannot suppose it possible that she should be."
  • "I am monstrous glad of it. Good gracious! I have had such a time of
  • it! I never saw Lucy in such a rage in my life. She vowed at first
  • she would never trim me up a new bonnet, nor do any thing else for me
  • again, so long as she lived; but now she is quite come to, and we are
  • as good friends as ever. Look, she made me this bow to my hat, and put
  • in the feather last night. There now, YOU are going to laugh at me
  • too. But why should not I wear pink ribbons? I do not care if it IS
  • the Doctor's favourite colour. I am sure, for my part, I should never
  • have known he DID like it better than any other colour, if he had not
  • happened to say so. My cousins have been so plaguing me! I declare
  • sometimes I do not know which way to look before them."
  • She had wandered away to a subject on which Elinor had nothing to say,
  • and therefore soon judged it expedient to find her way back again to
  • the first.
  • "Well, but Miss Dashwood," speaking triumphantly, "people may say what
  • they chuse about Mr. Ferrars's declaring he would not have Lucy, for it
  • is no such thing I can tell you; and it is quite a shame for such
  • ill-natured reports to be spread abroad. Whatever Lucy might think
  • about it herself, you know, it was no business of other people to set
  • it down for certain."
  • "I never heard any thing of the kind hinted at before, I assure you,"
  • said Elinor.
  • "Oh, did not you? But it WAS said, I know, very well, and by more than
  • one; for Miss Godby told Miss Sparks, that nobody in their senses could
  • expect Mr. Ferrars to give up a woman like Miss Morton, with thirty
  • thousand pounds to her fortune, for Lucy Steele that had nothing at
  • all; and I had it from Miss Sparks myself. And besides that, my cousin
  • Richard said himself, that when it came to the point he was afraid Mr.
  • Ferrars would be off; and when Edward did not come near us for three
  • days, I could not tell what to think myself; and I believe in my heart
  • Lucy gave it up all for lost; for we came away from your brother's
  • Wednesday, and we saw nothing of him not all Thursday, Friday, and
  • Saturday, and did not know what was become of him. Once Lucy thought
  • to write to him, but then her spirits rose against that. However this
  • morning he came just as we came home from church; and then it all came
  • out, how he had been sent for Wednesday to Harley Street, and been
  • talked to by his mother and all of them, and how he had declared before
  • them all that he loved nobody but Lucy, and nobody but Lucy would he
  • have. And how he had been so worried by what passed, that as soon as
  • he had went away from his mother's house, he had got upon his horse,
  • and rid into the country, some where or other; and how he had stayed
  • about at an inn all Thursday and Friday, on purpose to get the better
  • of it. And after thinking it all over and over again, he said, it
  • seemed to him as if, now he had no fortune, and no nothing at all, it
  • would be quite unkind to keep her on to the engagement, because it must
  • be for her loss, for he had nothing but two thousand pounds, and no
  • hope of any thing else; and if he was to go into orders, as he had some
  • thoughts, he could get nothing but a curacy, and how was they to live
  • upon that?--He could not bear to think of her doing no better, and so
  • he begged, if she had the least mind for it, to put an end to the
  • matter directly, and leave him shift for himself. I heard him say all
  • this as plain as could possibly be. And it was entirely for HER sake,
  • and upon HER account, that he said a word about being off, and not upon
  • his own. I will take my oath he never dropt a syllable of being tired
  • of her, or of wishing to marry Miss Morton, or any thing like it. But,
  • to be sure, Lucy would not give ear to such kind of talking; so she
  • told him directly (with a great deal about sweet and love, you know,
  • and all that--Oh, la! one can't repeat such kind of things you
  • know)--she told him directly, she had not the least mind in the world
  • to be off, for she could live with him upon a trifle, and how little so
  • ever he might have, she should be very glad to have it all, you know,
  • or something of the kind. So then he was monstrous happy, and talked
  • on some time about what they should do, and they agreed he should take
  • orders directly, and they must wait to be married till he got a living.
  • And just then I could not hear any more, for my cousin called from
  • below to tell me Mrs. Richardson was come in her coach, and would take
  • one of us to Kensington Gardens; so I was forced to go into the room
  • and interrupt them, to ask Lucy if she would like to go, but she did
  • not care to leave Edward; so I just run up stairs and put on a pair of
  • silk stockings and came off with the Richardsons."
  • "I do not understand what you mean by interrupting them," said Elinor;
  • "you were all in the same room together, were not you?"
  • "No, indeed, not us. La! Miss Dashwood, do you think people make love
  • when any body else is by? Oh, for shame!--To be sure you must know
  • better than that. (Laughing affectedly.)--No, no; they were shut up in
  • the drawing-room together, and all I heard was only by listening at the
  • door."
  • "How!" cried Elinor; "have you been repeating to me what you only
  • learnt yourself by listening at the door? I am sorry I did not know it
  • before; for I certainly would not have suffered you to give me
  • particulars of a conversation which you ought not to have known
  • yourself. How could you behave so unfairly by your sister?"
  • "Oh, la! there is nothing in THAT. I only stood at the door, and heard
  • what I could. And I am sure Lucy would have done just the same by me;
  • for a year or two back, when Martha Sharpe and I had so many secrets
  • together, she never made any bones of hiding in a closet, or behind a
  • chimney-board, on purpose to hear what we said."
  • Elinor tried to talk of something else; but Miss Steele could not be
  • kept beyond a couple of minutes, from what was uppermost in her mind.
  • "Edward talks of going to Oxford soon," said she; "but now he is
  • lodging at No. --, Pall Mall. What an ill-natured woman his mother is,
  • an't she? And your brother and sister were not very kind! However, I
  • shan't say anything against them to YOU; and to be sure they did send
  • us home in their own chariot, which was more than I looked for. And
  • for my part, I was all in a fright for fear your sister should ask us
  • for the huswifes she had gave us a day or two before; but, however,
  • nothing was said about them, and I took care to keep mine out of sight.
  • Edward have got some business at Oxford, he says; so he must go there
  • for a time; and after THAT, as soon as he can light upon a Bishop, he
  • will be ordained. I wonder what curacy he will get!--Good gracious!
  • (giggling as she spoke) I'd lay my life I know what my cousins will
  • say, when they hear of it. They will tell me I should write to the
  • Doctor, to get Edward the curacy of his new living. I know they will;
  • but I am sure I would not do such a thing for all the world.-- 'La!' I
  • shall say directly, 'I wonder how you could think of such a thing? I
  • write to the Doctor, indeed!'"
  • "Well," said Elinor, "it is a comfort to be prepared against the worst.
  • You have got your answer ready."
  • Miss Steele was going to reply on the same subject, but the approach of
  • her own party made another more necessary.
  • "Oh, la! here come the Richardsons. I had a vast deal more to say to
  • you, but I must not stay away from them not any longer. I assure you
  • they are very genteel people. He makes a monstrous deal of money, and
  • they keep their own coach. I have not time to speak to Mrs. Jennings
  • about it myself, but pray tell her I am quite happy to hear she is not
  • in anger against us, and Lady Middleton the same; and if anything
  • should happen to take you and your sister away, and Mrs. Jennings
  • should want company, I am sure we should be very glad to come and stay
  • with her for as long a time as she likes. I suppose Lady Middleton
  • won't ask us any more this bout. Good-by; I am sorry Miss Marianne was
  • not here. Remember me kindly to her. La! if you have not got your
  • spotted muslin on!--I wonder you was not afraid of its being torn."
  • Such was her parting concern; for after this, she had time only to pay
  • her farewell compliments to Mrs. Jennings, before her company was
  • claimed by Mrs. Richardson; and Elinor was left in possession of
  • knowledge which might feed her powers of reflection some time, though
  • she had learnt very little more than what had been already foreseen and
  • foreplanned in her own mind. Edward's marriage with Lucy was as firmly
  • determined on, and the time of its taking place remained as absolutely
  • uncertain, as she had concluded it would be;--every thing depended,
  • exactly after her expectation, on his getting that preferment, of
  • which, at present, there seemed not the smallest chance.
  • As soon as they returned to the carriage, Mrs. Jennings was eager for
  • information; but as Elinor wished to spread as little as possible
  • intelligence that had in the first place been so unfairly obtained, she
  • confined herself to the brief repetition of such simple particulars, as
  • she felt assured that Lucy, for the sake of her own consequence, would
  • choose to have known. The continuance of their engagement, and the
  • means that were able to be taken for promoting its end, was all her
  • communication; and this produced from Mrs. Jennings the following
  • natural remark.
  • "Wait for his having a living!--ay, we all know how THAT will
  • end:--they will wait a twelvemonth, and finding no good comes of it,
  • will set down upon a curacy of fifty pounds a-year, with the interest
  • of his two thousand pounds, and what little matter Mr. Steele and Mr.
  • Pratt can give her.--Then they will have a child every year! and Lord
  • help 'em! how poor they will be!--I must see what I can give them
  • towards furnishing their house. Two maids and two men, indeed!--as I
  • talked of t'other day.--No, no, they must get a stout girl of all
  • works.-- Betty's sister would never do for them NOW."
  • The next morning brought Elinor a letter by the two-penny post from
  • Lucy herself. It was as follows:
  • "Bartlett's Building, March.
  • "I hope my dear Miss Dashwood will excuse the
  • liberty I take of writing to her; but I know your
  • friendship for me will make you pleased to hear such
  • a good account of myself and my dear Edward, after
  • all the troubles we have went through lately,
  • therefore will make no more apologies, but proceed
  • to say that, thank God! though we have suffered
  • dreadfully, we are both quite well now, and as happy
  • as we must always be in one another's love. We have
  • had great trials, and great persecutions, but
  • however, at the same time, gratefully acknowledge
  • many friends, yourself not the least among them,
  • whose great kindness I shall always thankfully
  • remember, as will Edward too, who I have told of
  • it. I am sure you will be glad to hear, as likewise
  • dear Mrs. Jennings, I spent two happy hours with
  • him yesterday afternoon, he would not hear of our
  • parting, though earnestly did I, as I thought my
  • duty required, urge him to it for prudence sake,
  • and would have parted for ever on the spot, would
  • he consent to it; but he said it should never be,
  • he did not regard his mother's anger, while he could
  • have my affections; our prospects are not very
  • bright, to be sure, but we must wait, and hope for
  • the best; he will be ordained shortly; and should
  • it ever be in your power to recommend him to any
  • body that has a living to bestow, am very sure you
  • will not forget us, and dear Mrs. Jennings too,
  • trust she will speak a good word for us to Sir John,
  • or Mr. Palmer, or any friend that may be able to
  • assist us.--Poor Anne was much to blame for what
  • she did, but she did it for the best, so I say
  • nothing; hope Mrs. Jennings won't think it too much
  • trouble to give us a call, should she come this way
  • any morning, 'twould be a great kindness, and my
  • cousins would be proud to know her.--My paper reminds
  • me to conclude; and begging to be most gratefully
  • and respectfully remembered to her, and to Sir John,
  • and Lady Middleton, and the dear children, when you
  • chance to see them, and love to Miss Marianne,
  • "I am, &c."
  • As soon as Elinor had finished it, she performed what she concluded to
  • be its writer's real design, by placing it in the hands of Mrs.
  • Jennings, who read it aloud with many comments of satisfaction and
  • praise.
  • "Very well indeed!--how prettily she writes!--aye, that was quite
  • proper to let him be off if he would. That was just like Lucy.--Poor
  • soul! I wish I COULD get him a living, with all my heart.--She calls me
  • dear Mrs. Jennings, you see. She is a good-hearted girl as ever
  • lived.--Very well upon my word. That sentence is very prettily turned.
  • Yes, yes, I will go and see her, sure enough. How attentive she is, to
  • think of every body!--Thank you, my dear, for shewing it me. It is as
  • pretty a letter as ever I saw, and does Lucy's head and heart great
  • credit."
  • CHAPTER 39
  • The Miss Dashwoods had now been rather more than two months in town,
  • and Marianne's impatience to be gone increased every day. She sighed
  • for the air, the liberty, the quiet of the country; and fancied that if
  • any place could give her ease, Barton must do it. Elinor was hardly
  • less anxious than herself for their removal, and only so much less bent
  • on its being effected immediately, as that she was conscious of the
  • difficulties of so long a journey, which Marianne could not be brought
  • to acknowledge. She began, however, seriously to turn her thoughts
  • towards its accomplishment, and had already mentioned their wishes to
  • their kind hostess, who resisted them with all the eloquence of her
  • good-will, when a plan was suggested, which, though detaining them from
  • home yet a few weeks longer, appeared to Elinor altogether much more
  • eligible than any other. The Palmers were to remove to Cleveland about
  • the end of March, for the Easter holidays; and Mrs. Jennings, with both
  • her friends, received a very warm invitation from Charlotte to go with
  • them. This would not, in itself, have been sufficient for the delicacy
  • of Miss Dashwood;--but it was inforced with so much real politeness by
  • Mr. Palmer himself, as, joined to the very great amendment of his
  • manners towards them since her sister had been known to be unhappy,
  • induced her to accept it with pleasure.
  • When she told Marianne what she had done, however, her first reply was
  • not very auspicious.
  • "Cleveland!"--she cried, with great agitation. "No, I cannot go to
  • Cleveland."--
  • "You forget," said Elinor gently, "that its situation is not...that it
  • is not in the neighbourhood of..."
  • "But it is in Somersetshire.--I cannot go into Somersetshire.--There,
  • where I looked forward to going...No, Elinor, you cannot expect me to
  • go there."
  • Elinor would not argue upon the propriety of overcoming such
  • feelings;--she only endeavoured to counteract them by working on
  • others;--represented it, therefore, as a measure which would fix the
  • time of her returning to that dear mother, whom she so much wished to
  • see, in a more eligible, more comfortable manner, than any other plan
  • could do, and perhaps without any greater delay. From Cleveland, which
  • was within a few miles of Bristol, the distance to Barton was not
  • beyond one day, though a long day's journey; and their mother's servant
  • might easily come there to attend them down; and as there could be no
  • occasion of their staying above a week at Cleveland, they might now be
  • at home in little more than three weeks' time. As Marianne's affection
  • for her mother was sincere, it must triumph with little difficulty,
  • over the imaginary evils she had started.
  • Mrs. Jennings was so far from being weary of her guests, that she
  • pressed them very earnestly to return with her again from Cleveland.
  • Elinor was grateful for the attention, but it could not alter her
  • design; and their mother's concurrence being readily gained, every
  • thing relative to their return was arranged as far as it could be;--and
  • Marianne found some relief in drawing up a statement of the hours that
  • were yet to divide her from Barton.
  • "Ah! Colonel, I do not know what you and I shall do without the Miss
  • Dashwoods;"--was Mrs. Jennings's address to him when he first called on
  • her, after their leaving her was settled--"for they are quite resolved
  • upon going home from the Palmers;--and how forlorn we shall be, when I
  • come back!--Lord! we shall sit and gape at one another as dull as two
  • cats."
  • Perhaps Mrs. Jennings was in hopes, by this vigorous sketch of their
  • future ennui, to provoke him to make that offer, which might give
  • himself an escape from it;--and if so, she had soon afterwards good
  • reason to think her object gained; for, on Elinor's moving to the
  • window to take more expeditiously the dimensions of a print, which she
  • was going to copy for her friend, he followed her to it with a look of
  • particular meaning, and conversed with her there for several minutes.
  • The effect of his discourse on the lady too, could not escape her
  • observation, for though she was too honorable to listen, and had even
  • changed her seat, on purpose that she might NOT hear, to one close by
  • the piano forte on which Marianne was playing, she could not keep
  • herself from seeing that Elinor changed colour, attended with
  • agitation, and was too intent on what he said to pursue her
  • employment.-- Still farther in confirmation of her hopes, in the
  • interval of Marianne's turning from one lesson to another, some words
  • of the Colonel's inevitably reached her ear, in which he seemed to be
  • apologising for the badness of his house. This set the matter beyond a
  • doubt. She wondered, indeed, at his thinking it necessary to do so;
  • but supposed it to be the proper etiquette. What Elinor said in reply
  • she could not distinguish, but judged from the motion of her lips, that
  • she did not think THAT any material objection;--and Mrs. Jennings
  • commended her in her heart for being so honest. They then talked on
  • for a few minutes longer without her catching a syllable, when another
  • lucky stop in Marianne's performance brought her these words in the
  • Colonel's calm voice,--
  • "I am afraid it cannot take place very soon."
  • Astonished and shocked at so unlover-like a speech, she was almost
  • ready to cry out, "Lord! what should hinder it?"--but checking her
  • desire, confined herself to this silent ejaculation.
  • "This is very strange!--sure he need not wait to be older."
  • This delay on the Colonel's side, however, did not seem to offend or
  • mortify his fair companion in the least, for on their breaking up the
  • conference soon afterwards, and moving different ways, Mrs. Jennings
  • very plainly heard Elinor say, and with a voice which shewed her to
  • feel what she said,
  • "I shall always think myself very much obliged to you."
  • Mrs. Jennings was delighted with her gratitude, and only wondered that
  • after hearing such a sentence, the Colonel should be able to take leave
  • of them, as he immediately did, with the utmost sang-froid, and go away
  • without making her any reply!--She had not thought her old friend could
  • have made so indifferent a suitor.
  • What had really passed between them was to this effect.
  • "I have heard," said he, with great compassion, "of the injustice your
  • friend Mr. Ferrars has suffered from his family; for if I understand
  • the matter right, he has been entirely cast off by them for persevering
  • in his engagement with a very deserving young woman.-- Have I been
  • rightly informed?--Is it so?--"
  • Elinor told him that it was.
  • "The cruelty, the impolitic cruelty,"--he replied, with great
  • feeling,--"of dividing, or attempting to divide, two young people long
  • attached to each other, is terrible.-- Mrs. Ferrars does not know what
  • she may be doing--what she may drive her son to. I have seen Mr.
  • Ferrars two or three times in Harley Street, and am much pleased with
  • him. He is not a young man with whom one can be intimately acquainted
  • in a short time, but I have seen enough of him to wish him well for his
  • own sake, and as a friend of yours, I wish it still more. I understand
  • that he intends to take orders. Will you be so good as to tell him
  • that the living of Delaford, now just vacant, as I am informed by this
  • day's post, is his, if he think it worth his acceptance--but THAT,
  • perhaps, so unfortunately circumstanced as he is now, it may be
  • nonsense to appear to doubt; I only wish it were more valuable.-- It
  • is a rectory, but a small one; the late incumbent, I believe, did not
  • make more than 200 L per annum, and though it is certainly capable of
  • improvement, I fear, not to such an amount as to afford him a very
  • comfortable income. Such as it is, however, my pleasure in presenting
  • it to him, will be very great. Pray assure him of it."
  • Elinor's astonishment at this commission could hardly have been
  • greater, had the Colonel been really making her an offer of his hand.
  • The preferment, which only two days before she had considered as
  • hopeless for Edward, was already provided to enable him to marry;--and
  • SHE, of all people in the world, was fixed on to bestow it!--Her
  • emotion was such as Mrs. Jennings had attributed to a very different
  • cause;--but whatever minor feelings less pure, less pleasing, might
  • have a share in that emotion, her esteem for the general benevolence,
  • and her gratitude for the particular friendship, which together
  • prompted Colonel Brandon to this act, were strongly felt, and warmly
  • expressed. She thanked him for it with all her heart, spoke of
  • Edward's principles and disposition with that praise which she knew
  • them to deserve; and promised to undertake the commission with
  • pleasure, if it were really his wish to put off so agreeable an office
  • to another. But at the same time, she could not help thinking that no
  • one could so well perform it as himself. It was an office in short,
  • from which, unwilling to give Edward the pain of receiving an
  • obligation from HER, she would have been very glad to be spared
  • herself;-- but Colonel Brandon, on motives of equal delicacy, declining
  • it likewise, still seemed so desirous of its being given through her
  • means, that she would not on any account make farther opposition.
  • Edward, she believed, was still in town, and fortunately she had heard
  • his address from Miss Steele. She could undertake therefore to inform
  • him of it, in the course of the day. After this had been settled,
  • Colonel Brandon began to talk of his own advantage in securing so
  • respectable and agreeable a neighbour, and THEN it was that he
  • mentioned with regret, that the house was small and indifferent;--an
  • evil which Elinor, as Mrs. Jennings had supposed her to do, made very
  • light of, at least as far as regarded its size.
  • "The smallness of the house," said she, "I cannot imagine any
  • inconvenience to them, for it will be in proportion to their family and
  • income."
  • By which the Colonel was surprised to find that SHE was considering Mr.
  • Ferrars's marriage as the certain consequence of the presentation; for
  • he did not suppose it possible that Delaford living could supply such
  • an income, as anybody in his style of life would venture to settle
  • on--and he said so.
  • "This little rectory CAN do no more than make Mr. Ferrars comfortable
  • as a bachelor; it cannot enable him to marry. I am sorry to say that
  • my patronage ends with this; and my interest is hardly more extensive.
  • If, however, by an unforeseen chance it should be in my power to serve
  • him farther, I must think very differently of him from what I now do,
  • if I am not as ready to be useful to him then as I sincerely wish I
  • could be at present. What I am now doing indeed, seems nothing at all,
  • since it can advance him so little towards what must be his principal,
  • his only object of happiness. His marriage must still be a distant
  • good;--at least, I am afraid it cannot take place very soon.--"
  • Such was the sentence which, when misunderstood, so justly offended the
  • delicate feelings of Mrs. Jennings; but after this narration of what
  • really passed between Colonel Brandon and Elinor, while they stood at
  • the window, the gratitude expressed by the latter on their parting, may
  • perhaps appear in general, not less reasonably excited, nor less
  • properly worded than if it had arisen from an offer of marriage.
  • CHAPTER 40
  • "Well, Miss Dashwood," said Mrs. Jennings, sagaciously smiling, as soon
  • as the gentleman had withdrawn, "I do not ask you what the Colonel has
  • been saying to you; for though, upon my honour, I TRIED to keep out of
  • hearing, I could not help catching enough to understand his business.
  • And I assure you I never was better pleased in my life, and I wish you
  • joy of it with all my heart."
  • "Thank you, ma'am," said Elinor. "It is a matter of great joy to me;
  • and I feel the goodness of Colonel Brandon most sensibly. There are
  • not many men who would act as he has done. Few people who have so
  • compassionate a heart! I never was more astonished in my life."
  • "Lord! my dear, you are very modest. I an't the least astonished at it
  • in the world, for I have often thought of late, there was nothing more
  • likely to happen."
  • "You judged from your knowledge of the Colonel's general benevolence;
  • but at least you could not foresee that the opportunity would so very
  • soon occur."
  • "Opportunity!" repeated Mrs. Jennings--"Oh! as to that, when a man has
  • once made up his mind to such a thing, somehow or other he will soon
  • find an opportunity. Well, my dear, I wish you joy of it again and
  • again; and if ever there was a happy couple in the world, I think I
  • shall soon know where to look for them."
  • "You mean to go to Delaford after them I suppose," said Elinor, with a
  • faint smile.
  • "Aye, my dear, that I do, indeed. And as to the house being a bad one,
  • I do not know what the Colonel would be at, for it is as good a one as
  • ever I saw."
  • "He spoke of its being out of repair."
  • "Well, and whose fault is that? why don't he repair it?--who should do
  • it but himself?"
  • They were interrupted by the servant's coming in to announce the
  • carriage being at the door; and Mrs. Jennings immediately preparing to
  • go, said,--
  • "Well, my dear, I must be gone before I have had half my talk out.
  • But, however, we may have it all over in the evening; for we shall be
  • quite alone. I do not ask you to go with me, for I dare say your mind
  • is too full of the matter to care for company; and besides, you must
  • long to tell your sister all about it."
  • Marianne had left the room before the conversation began.
  • "Certainly, ma'am, I shall tell Marianne of it; but I shall not mention
  • it at present to any body else."
  • "Oh! very well," said Mrs. Jennings rather disappointed. "Then you
  • would not have me tell it to Lucy, for I think of going as far as
  • Holborn to-day."
  • "No, ma'am, not even Lucy if you please. One day's delay will not be
  • very material; and till I have written to Mr. Ferrars, I think it ought
  • not to be mentioned to any body else. I shall do THAT directly. It is
  • of importance that no time should be lost with him, for he will of
  • course have much to do relative to his ordination."
  • This speech at first puzzled Mrs. Jennings exceedingly. Why Mr.
  • Ferrars was to have been written to about it in such a hurry, she could
  • not immediately comprehend. A few moments' reflection, however,
  • produced a very happy idea, and she exclaimed;--
  • "Oh, ho!--I understand you. Mr. Ferrars is to be the man. Well, so
  • much the better for him. Ay, to be sure, he must be ordained in
  • readiness; and I am very glad to find things are so forward between
  • you. But, my dear, is not this rather out of character? Should not
  • the Colonel write himself?--sure, he is the proper person."
  • Elinor did not quite understand the beginning of Mrs. Jennings's
  • speech, neither did she think it worth inquiring into; and therefore
  • only replied to its conclusion.
  • "Colonel Brandon is so delicate a man, that he rather wished any one to
  • announce his intentions to Mr. Ferrars than himself."
  • "And so YOU are forced to do it. Well THAT is an odd kind of delicacy!
  • However, I will not disturb you (seeing her preparing to write.) You
  • know your own concerns best. So goodby, my dear. I have not heard of
  • any thing to please me so well since Charlotte was brought to bed."
  • And away she went; but returning again in a moment,
  • "I have just been thinking of Betty's sister, my dear. I should be
  • very glad to get her so good a mistress. But whether she would do for
  • a lady's maid, I am sure I can't tell. She is an excellent housemaid,
  • and works very well at her needle. However, you will think of all that
  • at your leisure."
  • "Certainly, ma'am," replied Elinor, not hearing much of what she said,
  • and more anxious to be alone, than to be mistress of the subject.
  • How she should begin--how she should express herself in her note to
  • Edward, was now all her concern. The particular circumstances between
  • them made a difficulty of that which to any other person would have
  • been the easiest thing in the world; but she equally feared to say too
  • much or too little, and sat deliberating over her paper, with the pen
  • in her hand, till broken in on by the entrance of Edward himself.
  • He had met Mrs. Jennings at the door in her way to the carriage, as he
  • came to leave his farewell card; and she, after apologising for not
  • returning herself, had obliged him to enter, by saying that Miss
  • Dashwood was above, and wanted to speak with him on very particular
  • business.
  • Elinor had just been congratulating herself, in the midst of her
  • perplexity, that however difficult it might be to express herself
  • properly by letter, it was at least preferable to giving the
  • information by word of mouth, when her visitor entered, to force her
  • upon this greatest exertion of all. Her astonishment and confusion
  • were very great on his so sudden appearance. She had not seen him
  • before since his engagement became public, and therefore not since his
  • knowing her to be acquainted with it; which, with the consciousness of
  • what she had been thinking of, and what she had to tell him, made her
  • feel particularly uncomfortable for some minutes. He too was much
  • distressed; and they sat down together in a most promising state of
  • embarrassment.--Whether he had asked her pardon for his intrusion on
  • first coming into the room, he could not recollect; but determining to
  • be on the safe side, he made his apology in form as soon as he could
  • say any thing, after taking a chair.
  • "Mrs. Jennings told me," said he, "that you wished to speak with me, at
  • least I understood her so--or I certainly should not have intruded on
  • you in such a manner; though at the same time, I should have been
  • extremely sorry to leave London without seeing you and your sister;
  • especially as it will most likely be some time--it is not probable that
  • I should soon have the pleasure of meeting you again. I go to Oxford
  • tomorrow."
  • "You would not have gone, however," said Elinor, recovering herself,
  • and determined to get over what she so much dreaded as soon as
  • possible, "without receiving our good wishes, even if we had not been
  • able to give them in person. Mrs. Jennings was quite right in what she
  • said. I have something of consequence to inform you of, which I was on
  • the point of communicating by paper. I am charged with a most
  • agreeable office (breathing rather faster than usual as she spoke.)
  • Colonel Brandon, who was here only ten minutes ago, has desired me to
  • say, that understanding you mean to take orders, he has great pleasure
  • in offering you the living of Delaford now just vacant, and only wishes
  • it were more valuable. Allow me to congratulate you on having so
  • respectable and well-judging a friend, and to join in his wish that the
  • living--it is about two hundred a-year--were much more considerable,
  • and such as might better enable you to--as might be more than a
  • temporary accommodation to yourself--such, in short, as might establish
  • all your views of happiness."
  • What Edward felt, as he could not say it himself, it cannot be expected
  • that any one else should say for him. He LOOKED all the astonishment
  • which such unexpected, such unthought-of information could not fail of
  • exciting; but he said only these two words,
  • "Colonel Brandon!"
  • "Yes," continued Elinor, gathering more resolution, as some of the
  • worst was over, "Colonel Brandon means it as a testimony of his concern
  • for what has lately passed--for the cruel situation in which the
  • unjustifiable conduct of your family has placed you--a concern which I
  • am sure Marianne, myself, and all your friends, must share; and
  • likewise as a proof of his high esteem for your general character, and
  • his particular approbation of your behaviour on the present occasion."
  • "Colonel Brandon give ME a living!--Can it be possible?"
  • "The unkindness of your own relations has made you astonished to find
  • friendship any where."
  • "No," replied he, with sudden consciousness, "not to find it in YOU;
  • for I cannot be ignorant that to you, to your goodness, I owe it
  • all.--I feel it--I would express it if I could--but, as you well know,
  • I am no orator."
  • "You are very much mistaken. I do assure you that you owe it entirely,
  • at least almost entirely, to your own merit, and Colonel Brandon's
  • discernment of it. I have had no hand in it. I did not even know,
  • till I understood his design, that the living was vacant; nor had it
  • ever occurred to me that he might have had such a living in his gift.
  • As a friend of mine, of my family, he may, perhaps--indeed I know he
  • HAS, still greater pleasure in bestowing it; but, upon my word, you owe
  • nothing to my solicitation."
  • Truth obliged her to acknowledge some small share in the action, but
  • she was at the same time so unwilling to appear as the benefactress of
  • Edward, that she acknowledged it with hesitation; which probably
  • contributed to fix that suspicion in his mind which had recently
  • entered it. For a short time he sat deep in thought, after Elinor had
  • ceased to speak;--at last, and as if it were rather an effort, he said,
  • "Colonel Brandon seems a man of great worth and respectability. I have
  • always heard him spoken of as such, and your brother I know esteems him
  • highly. He is undoubtedly a sensible man, and in his manners perfectly
  • the gentleman."
  • "Indeed," replied Elinor, "I believe that you will find him, on farther
  • acquaintance, all that you have heard him to be, and as you will be
  • such very near neighbours (for I understand the parsonage is almost
  • close to the mansion-house,) it is particularly important that he
  • SHOULD be all this."
  • Edward made no answer; but when she had turned away her head, gave her
  • a look so serious, so earnest, so uncheerful, as seemed to say, that he
  • might hereafter wish the distance between the parsonage and the
  • mansion-house much greater.
  • "Colonel Brandon, I think, lodges in St. James Street," said he, soon
  • afterwards, rising from his chair.
  • Elinor told him the number of the house.
  • "I must hurry away then, to give him those thanks which you will not
  • allow me to give YOU; to assure him that he has made me a very--an
  • exceedingly happy man."
  • Elinor did not offer to detain him; and they parted, with a very
  • earnest assurance on HER side of her unceasing good wishes for his
  • happiness in every change of situation that might befall him; on HIS,
  • with rather an attempt to return the same good will, than the power of
  • expressing it.
  • "When I see him again," said Elinor to herself, as the door shut him
  • out, "I shall see him the husband of Lucy."
  • And with this pleasing anticipation, she sat down to reconsider the
  • past, recall the words and endeavour to comprehend all the feelings of
  • Edward; and, of course, to reflect on her own with discontent.
  • When Mrs. Jennings came home, though she returned from seeing people
  • whom she had never seen before, and of whom therefore she must have a
  • great deal to say, her mind was so much more occupied by the important
  • secret in her possession, than by anything else, that she reverted to
  • it again as soon as Elinor appeared.
  • "Well, my dear," she cried, "I sent you up the young man. Did not I
  • do right?--And I suppose you had no great difficulty--You did not find
  • him very unwilling to accept your proposal?"
  • "No, ma'am; THAT was not very likely."
  • "Well, and how soon will he be ready?--For it seems all to depend upon
  • that."
  • "Really," said Elinor, "I know so little of these kind of forms, that I
  • can hardly even conjecture as to the time, or the preparation
  • necessary; but I suppose two or three months will complete his
  • ordination."
  • "Two or three months!" cried Mrs. Jennings; "Lord! my dear, how calmly
  • you talk of it; and can the Colonel wait two or three months! Lord
  • bless me!--I am sure it would put ME quite out of patience!--And though
  • one would be very glad to do a kindness by poor Mr. Ferrars, I do think
  • it is not worth while to wait two or three months for him. Sure
  • somebody else might be found that would do as well; somebody that is in
  • orders already."
  • "My dear ma'am," said Elinor, "what can you be thinking of?-- Why,
  • Colonel Brandon's only object is to be of use to Mr. Ferrars."
  • "Lord bless you, my dear!--Sure you do not mean to persuade me that the
  • Colonel only marries you for the sake of giving ten guineas to Mr.
  • Ferrars!"
  • The deception could not continue after this; and an explanation
  • immediately took place, by which both gained considerable amusement for
  • the moment, without any material loss of happiness to either, for Mrs.
  • Jennings only exchanged one form of delight for another, and still
  • without forfeiting her expectation of the first.
  • "Aye, aye, the parsonage is but a small one," said she, after the first
  • ebullition of surprise and satisfaction was over, "and very likely MAY
  • be out of repair; but to hear a man apologising, as I thought, for a
  • house that to my knowledge has five sitting rooms on the ground-floor,
  • and I think the housekeeper told me could make up fifteen beds!--and to
  • you too, that had been used to live in Barton cottage!-- It seems quite
  • ridiculous. But, my dear, we must touch up the Colonel to do some
  • thing to the parsonage, and make it comfortable for them, before Lucy
  • goes to it."
  • "But Colonel Brandon does not seem to have any idea of the living's
  • being enough to allow them to marry."
  • "The Colonel is a ninny, my dear; because he has two thousand a-year
  • himself, he thinks that nobody else can marry on less. Take my word
  • for it, that, if I am alive, I shall be paying a visit at Delaford
  • Parsonage before Michaelmas; and I am sure I shan't go if Lucy an't
  • there."
  • Elinor was quite of her opinion, as to the probability of their not
  • waiting for any thing more.
  • CHAPTER 41
  • Edward, having carried his thanks to Colonel Brandon, proceeded with
  • his happiness to Lucy; and such was the excess of it by the time he
  • reached Bartlett's Buildings, that she was able to assure Mrs.
  • Jennings, who called on her again the next day with her
  • congratulations, that she had never seen him in such spirits before in
  • her life.
  • Her own happiness, and her own spirits, were at least very certain; and
  • she joined Mrs. Jennings most heartily in her expectation of their
  • being all comfortably together in Delaford Parsonage before Michaelmas.
  • So far was she, at the same time, from any backwardness to give Elinor
  • that credit which Edward WOULD give her, that she spoke of her
  • friendship for them both with the most grateful warmth, was ready to
  • own all their obligation to her, and openly declared that no exertion
  • for their good on Miss Dashwood's part, either present or future, would
  • ever surprise her, for she believed her capable of doing any thing in
  • the world for those she really valued. As for Colonel Brandon, she was
  • not only ready to worship him as a saint, but was moreover truly
  • anxious that he should be treated as one in all worldly concerns;
  • anxious that his tithes should be raised to the utmost; and scarcely
  • resolved to avail herself, at Delaford, as far as she possibly could,
  • of his servants, his carriage, his cows, and his poultry.
  • It was now above a week since John Dashwood had called in Berkeley
  • Street, and as since that time no notice had been taken by them of his
  • wife's indisposition, beyond one verbal enquiry, Elinor began to feel
  • it necessary to pay her a visit.--This was an obligation, however,
  • which not only opposed her own inclination, but which had not the
  • assistance of any encouragement from her companions. Marianne, not
  • contented with absolutely refusing to go herself, was very urgent to
  • prevent her sister's going at all; and Mrs. Jennings, though her
  • carriage was always at Elinor's service, so very much disliked Mrs.
  • John Dashwood, that not even her curiosity to see how she looked after
  • the late discovery, nor her strong desire to affront her by taking
  • Edward's part, could overcome her unwillingness to be in her company
  • again. The consequence was, that Elinor set out by herself to pay a
  • visit, for which no one could really have less inclination, and to run
  • the risk of a tete-a-tete with a woman, whom neither of the others had
  • so much reason to dislike.
  • Mrs. Dashwood was denied; but before the carriage could turn from the
  • house, her husband accidentally came out. He expressed great pleasure
  • in meeting Elinor, told her that he had been just going to call in
  • Berkeley Street, and, assuring her that Fanny would be very glad to see
  • her, invited her to come in.
  • They walked up stairs in to the drawing-room.--Nobody was there.
  • "Fanny is in her own room, I suppose," said he:--"I will go to her
  • presently, for I am sure she will not have the least objection in the
  • world to seeing YOU.-- Very far from it, indeed. NOW especially there
  • cannot be--but however, you and Marianne were always great
  • favourites.--Why would not Marianne come?"--
  • Elinor made what excuse she could for her.
  • "I am not sorry to see you alone," he replied, "for I have a good deal
  • to say to you. This living of Colonel Brandon's--can it be true?--has
  • he really given it to Edward?--I heard it yesterday by chance, and was
  • coming to you on purpose to enquire farther about it."
  • "It is perfectly true.--Colonel Brandon has given the living of
  • Delaford to Edward."
  • "Really!--Well, this is very astonishing!--no relationship!--no
  • connection between them!--and now that livings fetch such a
  • price!--what was the value of this?"
  • "About two hundred a year."
  • "Very well--and for the next presentation to a living of that
  • value--supposing the late incumbent to have been old and sickly, and
  • likely to vacate it soon--he might have got I dare say--fourteen
  • hundred pounds. And how came he not to have settled that matter before
  • this person's death?--NOW indeed it would be too late to sell it, but a
  • man of Colonel Brandon's sense!--I wonder he should be so improvident
  • in a point of such common, such natural, concern!--Well, I am convinced
  • that there is a vast deal of inconsistency in almost every human
  • character. I suppose, however--on recollection--that the case may
  • probably be THIS. Edward is only to hold the living till the person to
  • whom the Colonel has really sold the presentation, is old enough to
  • take it.--Aye, aye, that is the fact, depend upon it."
  • Elinor contradicted it, however, very positively; and by relating that
  • she had herself been employed in conveying the offer from Colonel
  • Brandon to Edward, and, therefore, must understand the terms on which
  • it was given, obliged him to submit to her authority.
  • "It is truly astonishing!"--he cried, after hearing what she
  • said--"what could be the Colonel's motive?"
  • "A very simple one--to be of use to Mr. Ferrars."
  • "Well, well; whatever Colonel Brandon may be, Edward is a very lucky
  • man.--You will not mention the matter to Fanny, however, for though I
  • have broke it to her, and she bears it vastly well,--she will not like
  • to hear it much talked of."
  • Elinor had some difficulty here to refrain from observing, that she
  • thought Fanny might have borne with composure, an acquisition of wealth
  • to her brother, by which neither she nor her child could be possibly
  • impoverished.
  • "Mrs. Ferrars," added he, lowering his voice to the tone becoming so
  • important a subject, "knows nothing about it at present, and I believe
  • it will be best to keep it entirely concealed from her as long as may
  • be.-- When the marriage takes place, I fear she must hear of it all."
  • "But why should such precaution be used?--Though it is not to be
  • supposed that Mrs. Ferrars can have the smallest satisfaction in
  • knowing that her son has money enough to live upon,--for THAT must be
  • quite out of the question; yet why, upon her late behaviour, is she
  • supposed to feel at all?--She has done with her son, she cast him off
  • for ever, and has made all those over whom she had any influence, cast
  • him off likewise. Surely, after doing so, she cannot be imagined
  • liable to any impression of sorrow or of joy on his account--she cannot
  • be interested in any thing that befalls him.-- She would not be so weak
  • as to throw away the comfort of a child, and yet retain the anxiety of
  • a parent!"
  • "Ah! Elinor," said John, "your reasoning is very good, but it is
  • founded on ignorance of human nature. When Edward's unhappy match
  • takes place, depend upon it his mother will feel as much as if she had
  • never discarded him; and, therefore every circumstance that may
  • accelerate that dreadful event, must be concealed from her as much as
  • possible. Mrs. Ferrars can never forget that Edward is her son."
  • "You surprise me; I should think it must nearly have escaped her memory
  • by THIS time."
  • "You wrong her exceedingly. Mrs. Ferrars is one of the most
  • affectionate mothers in the world."
  • Elinor was silent.
  • "We think NOW,"--said Mr. Dashwood, after a short pause, "of ROBERT'S
  • marrying Miss Morton."
  • Elinor, smiling at the grave and decisive importance of her brother's
  • tone, calmly replied,
  • "The lady, I suppose, has no choice in the affair."
  • "Choice!--how do you mean?"
  • "I only mean that I suppose, from your manner of speaking, it must be
  • the same to Miss Morton whether she marry Edward or Robert."
  • "Certainly, there can be no difference; for Robert will now to all
  • intents and purposes be considered as the eldest son;--and as to any
  • thing else, they are both very agreeable young men: I do not know that
  • one is superior to the other."
  • Elinor said no more, and John was also for a short time silent.--His
  • reflections ended thus.
  • "Of ONE thing, my dear sister," kindly taking her hand, and speaking in
  • an awful whisper,--"I may assure you;--and I WILL do it, because I know
  • it must gratify you. I have good reason to think--indeed I have it
  • from the best authority, or I should not repeat it, for otherwise it
  • would be very wrong to say any thing about it--but I have it from the
  • very best authority--not that I ever precisely heard Mrs. Ferrars say
  • it herself--but her daughter DID, and I have it from her--That in
  • short, whatever objections there might be against a certain--a certain
  • connection--you understand me--it would have been far preferable to
  • her, it would not have given her half the vexation that THIS does. I
  • was exceedingly pleased to hear that Mrs. Ferrars considered it in that
  • light--a very gratifying circumstance you know to us all. 'It would
  • have been beyond comparison,' she said, 'the least evil of the two, and
  • she would be glad to compound NOW for nothing worse.' But however, all
  • that is quite out of the question--not to be thought of or
  • mentioned--as to any attachment you know--it never could be--all that
  • is gone by. But I thought I would just tell you of this, because I
  • knew how much it must please you. Not that you have any reason to
  • regret, my dear Elinor. There is no doubt of your doing exceedingly
  • well--quite as well, or better, perhaps, all things considered. Has
  • Colonel Brandon been with you lately?"
  • Elinor had heard enough, if not to gratify her vanity, and raise her
  • self-importance, to agitate her nerves and fill her mind;--and she was
  • therefore glad to be spared from the necessity of saying much in reply
  • herself, and from the danger of hearing any thing more from her
  • brother, by the entrance of Mr. Robert Ferrars. After a few moments'
  • chat, John Dashwood, recollecting that Fanny was yet uninformed of her
  • sister's being there, quitted the room in quest of her; and Elinor was
  • left to improve her acquaintance with Robert, who, by the gay
  • unconcern, the happy self-complacency of his manner while enjoying so
  • unfair a division of his mother's love and liberality, to the prejudice
  • of his banished brother, earned only by his own dissipated course of
  • life, and that brother's integrity, was confirming her most
  • unfavourable opinion of his head and heart.
  • They had scarcely been two minutes by themselves, before he began to
  • speak of Edward; for he, too, had heard of the living, and was very
  • inquisitive on the subject. Elinor repeated the particulars of it, as
  • she had given them to John; and their effect on Robert, though very
  • different, was not less striking than it had been on HIM. He laughed
  • most immoderately. The idea of Edward's being a clergyman, and living
  • in a small parsonage-house, diverted him beyond measure;--and when to
  • that was added the fanciful imagery of Edward reading prayers in a
  • white surplice, and publishing the banns of marriage between John Smith
  • and Mary Brown, he could conceive nothing more ridiculous.
  • Elinor, while she waited in silence and immovable gravity, the
  • conclusion of such folly, could not restrain her eyes from being fixed
  • on him with a look that spoke all the contempt it excited. It was a
  • look, however, very well bestowed, for it relieved her own feelings,
  • and gave no intelligence to him. He was recalled from wit to wisdom,
  • not by any reproof of hers, but by his own sensibility.
  • "We may treat it as a joke," said he, at last, recovering from the
  • affected laugh which had considerably lengthened out the genuine gaiety
  • of the moment--"but, upon my soul, it is a most serious business. Poor
  • Edward! he is ruined for ever. I am extremely sorry for it--for I
  • know him to be a very good-hearted creature; as well-meaning a fellow
  • perhaps, as any in the world. You must not judge of him, Miss
  • Dashwood, from YOUR slight acquaintance.--Poor Edward!--His manners are
  • certainly not the happiest in nature.--But we are not all born, you
  • know, with the same powers,--the same address.-- Poor fellow!--to see
  • him in a circle of strangers!--to be sure it was pitiable enough!--but
  • upon my soul, I believe he has as good a heart as any in the kingdom;
  • and I declare and protest to you I never was so shocked in my life, as
  • when it all burst forth. I could not believe it.-- My mother was the
  • first person who told me of it; and I, feeling myself called on to act
  • with resolution, immediately said to her, 'My dear madam, I do not know
  • what you may intend to do on the occasion, but as for myself, I must
  • say, that if Edward does marry this young woman, I never will see him
  • again.' That was what I said immediately.-- I was most uncommonly
  • shocked, indeed!--Poor Edward!--he has done for himself
  • completely--shut himself out for ever from all decent society!--but, as
  • I directly said to my mother, I am not in the least surprised at it;
  • from his style of education, it was always to be expected. My poor
  • mother was half frantic."
  • "Have you ever seen the lady?"
  • "Yes; once, while she was staying in this house, I happened to drop in
  • for ten minutes; and I saw quite enough of her. The merest awkward
  • country girl, without style, or elegance, and almost without beauty.--
  • I remember her perfectly. Just the kind of girl I should suppose
  • likely to captivate poor Edward. I offered immediately, as soon as my
  • mother related the affair to me, to talk to him myself, and dissuade
  • him from the match; but it was too late THEN, I found, to do any thing,
  • for unluckily, I was not in the way at first, and knew nothing of it
  • till after the breach had taken place, when it was not for me, you
  • know, to interfere. But had I been informed of it a few hours
  • earlier--I think it is most probable--that something might have been
  • hit on. I certainly should have represented it to Edward in a very
  • strong light. 'My dear fellow,' I should have said, 'consider what you
  • are doing. You are making a most disgraceful connection, and such a
  • one as your family are unanimous in disapproving.' I cannot help
  • thinking, in short, that means might have been found. But now it is
  • all too late. He must be starved, you know;--that is certain;
  • absolutely starved."
  • He had just settled this point with great composure, when the entrance
  • of Mrs. John Dashwood put an end to the subject. But though SHE never
  • spoke of it out of her own family, Elinor could see its influence on
  • her mind, in the something like confusion of countenance with which she
  • entered, and an attempt at cordiality in her behaviour to herself. She
  • even proceeded so far as to be concerned to find that Elinor and her
  • sister were so soon to leave town, as she had hoped to see more of
  • them;--an exertion in which her husband, who attended her into the
  • room, and hung enamoured over her accents, seemed to distinguish every
  • thing that was most affectionate and graceful.
  • CHAPTER 42
  • One other short call in Harley Street, in which Elinor received her
  • brother's congratulations on their travelling so far towards Barton
  • without any expense, and on Colonel Brandon's being to follow them to
  • Cleveland in a day or two, completed the intercourse of the brother and
  • sisters in town;--and a faint invitation from Fanny, to come to Norland
  • whenever it should happen to be in their way, which of all things was
  • the most unlikely to occur, with a more warm, though less public,
  • assurance, from John to Elinor, of the promptitude with which he should
  • come to see her at Delaford, was all that foretold any meeting in the
  • country.
  • It amused her to observe that all her friends seemed determined to send
  • her to Delaford;--a place, in which, of all others, she would now least
  • chuse to visit, or wish to reside; for not only was it considered as
  • her future home by her brother and Mrs. Jennings, but even Lucy, when
  • they parted, gave her a pressing invitation to visit her there.
  • Very early in April, and tolerably early in the day, the two parties
  • from Hanover Square and Berkeley Street set out from their respective
  • homes, to meet, by appointment, on the road. For the convenience of
  • Charlotte and her child, they were to be more than two days on their
  • journey, and Mr. Palmer, travelling more expeditiously with Colonel
  • Brandon, was to join them at Cleveland soon after their arrival.
  • Marianne, few as had been her hours of comfort in London, and eager as
  • she had long been to quit it, could not, when it came to the point, bid
  • adieu to the house in which she had for the last time enjoyed those
  • hopes, and that confidence, in Willoughby, which were now extinguished
  • for ever, without great pain. Nor could she leave the place in which
  • Willoughby remained, busy in new engagements, and new schemes, in which
  • SHE could have no share, without shedding many tears.
  • Elinor's satisfaction, at the moment of removal, was more positive.
  • She had no such object for her lingering thoughts to fix on, she left
  • no creature behind, from whom it would give her a moment's regret to be
  • divided for ever, she was pleased to be free herself from the
  • persecution of Lucy's friendship, she was grateful for bringing her
  • sister away unseen by Willoughby since his marriage, and she looked
  • forward with hope to what a few months of tranquility at Barton might
  • do towards restoring Marianne's peace of mind, and confirming her own.
  • Their journey was safely performed. The second day brought them into
  • the cherished, or the prohibited, county of Somerset, for as such was
  • it dwelt on by turns in Marianne's imagination; and in the forenoon of
  • the third they drove up to Cleveland.
  • Cleveland was a spacious, modern-built house, situated on a sloping
  • lawn. It had no park, but the pleasure-grounds were tolerably
  • extensive; and like every other place of the same degree of importance,
  • it had its open shrubbery, and closer wood walk, a road of smooth
  • gravel winding round a plantation, led to the front, the lawn was
  • dotted over with timber, the house itself was under the guardianship of
  • the fir, the mountain-ash, and the acacia, and a thick screen of them
  • altogether, interspersed with tall Lombardy poplars, shut out the
  • offices.
  • Marianne entered the house with a heart swelling with emotion from the
  • consciousness of being only eighty miles from Barton, and not thirty
  • from Combe Magna; and before she had been five minutes within its
  • walls, while the others were busily helping Charlotte to show her child
  • to the housekeeper, she quitted it again, stealing away through the
  • winding shrubberies, now just beginning to be in beauty, to gain a
  • distant eminence; where, from its Grecian temple, her eye, wandering
  • over a wide tract of country to the south-east, could fondly rest on
  • the farthest ridge of hills in the horizon, and fancy that from their
  • summits Combe Magna might be seen.
  • In such moments of precious, invaluable misery, she rejoiced in tears
  • of agony to be at Cleveland; and as she returned by a different circuit
  • to the house, feeling all the happy privilege of country liberty, of
  • wandering from place to place in free and luxurious solitude, she
  • resolved to spend almost every hour of every day while she remained
  • with the Palmers, in the indulgence of such solitary rambles.
  • She returned just in time to join the others as they quitted the house,
  • on an excursion through its more immediate premises; and the rest of
  • the morning was easily whiled away, in lounging round the kitchen
  • garden, examining the bloom upon its walls, and listening to the
  • gardener's lamentations upon blights, in dawdling through the
  • green-house, where the loss of her favourite plants, unwarily exposed,
  • and nipped by the lingering frost, raised the laughter of
  • Charlotte,--and in visiting her poultry-yard, where, in the
  • disappointed hopes of her dairy-maid, by hens forsaking their nests, or
  • being stolen by a fox, or in the rapid decrease of a promising young
  • brood, she found fresh sources of merriment.
  • The morning was fine and dry, and Marianne, in her plan of employment
  • abroad, had not calculated for any change of weather during their stay
  • at Cleveland. With great surprise therefore, did she find herself
  • prevented by a settled rain from going out again after dinner. She had
  • depended on a twilight walk to the Grecian temple, and perhaps all over
  • the grounds, and an evening merely cold or damp would not have deterred
  • her from it; but a heavy and settled rain even SHE could not fancy dry
  • or pleasant weather for walking.
  • Their party was small, and the hours passed quietly away. Mrs. Palmer
  • had her child, and Mrs. Jennings her carpet-work; they talked of the
  • friends they had left behind, arranged Lady Middleton's engagements,
  • and wondered whether Mr. Palmer and Colonel Brandon would get farther
  • than Reading that night. Elinor, however little concerned in it,
  • joined in their discourse; and Marianne, who had the knack of finding
  • her way in every house to the library, however it might be avoided by
  • the family in general, soon procured herself a book.
  • Nothing was wanting on Mrs. Palmer's side that constant and friendly
  • good humour could do, to make them feel themselves welcome. The
  • openness and heartiness of her manner more than atoned for that want of
  • recollection and elegance which made her often deficient in the forms
  • of politeness; her kindness, recommended by so pretty a face, was
  • engaging; her folly, though evident was not disgusting, because it was
  • not conceited; and Elinor could have forgiven every thing but her laugh.
  • The two gentlemen arrived the next day to a very late dinner, affording
  • a pleasant enlargement of the party, and a very welcome variety to
  • their conversation, which a long morning of the same continued rain had
  • reduced very low.
  • Elinor had seen so little of Mr. Palmer, and in that little had seen so
  • much variety in his address to her sister and herself, that she knew
  • not what to expect to find him in his own family. She found him,
  • however, perfectly the gentleman in his behaviour to all his visitors,
  • and only occasionally rude to his wife and her mother; she found him
  • very capable of being a pleasant companion, and only prevented from
  • being so always, by too great an aptitude to fancy himself as much
  • superior to people in general, as he must feel himself to be to Mrs.
  • Jennings and Charlotte. For the rest of his character and habits, they
  • were marked, as far as Elinor could perceive, with no traits at all
  • unusual in his sex and time of life. He was nice in his eating,
  • uncertain in his hours; fond of his child, though affecting to slight
  • it; and idled away the mornings at billiards, which ought to have been
  • devoted to business. She liked him, however, upon the whole, much
  • better than she had expected, and in her heart was not sorry that she
  • could like him no more;--not sorry to be driven by the observation of
  • his Epicurism, his selfishness, and his conceit, to rest with
  • complacency on the remembrance of Edward's generous temper, simple
  • taste, and diffident feelings.
  • Of Edward, or at least of some of his concerns, she now received
  • intelligence from Colonel Brandon, who had been into Dorsetshire
  • lately; and who, treating her at once as the disinterested friend of
  • Mr. Ferrars, and the kind confidante of himself, talked to her a
  • great deal of the parsonage at Delaford, described its deficiencies,
  • and told her what he meant to do himself towards removing them.--His
  • behaviour to her in this, as well as in every other particular, his
  • open pleasure in meeting her after an absence of only ten days, his
  • readiness to converse with her, and his deference for her opinion,
  • might very well justify Mrs. Jennings's persuasion of his attachment,
  • and would have been enough, perhaps, had not Elinor still, as from the
  • first, believed Marianne his real favourite, to make her suspect it
  • herself. But as it was, such a notion had scarcely ever entered her
  • head, except by Mrs. Jennings's suggestion; and she could not help
  • believing herself the nicest observer of the two;--she watched his
  • eyes, while Mrs. Jennings thought only of his behaviour;--and while his
  • looks of anxious solicitude on Marianne's feeling, in her head and
  • throat, the beginning of a heavy cold, because unexpressed by words,
  • entirely escaped the latter lady's observation;--SHE could discover in
  • them the quick feelings, and needless alarm of a lover.
  • Two delightful twilight walks on the third and fourth evenings of her
  • being there, not merely on the dry gravel of the shrubbery, but all
  • over the grounds, and especially in the most distant parts of them,
  • where there was something more of wildness than in the rest, where the
  • trees were the oldest, and the grass was the longest and wettest,
  • had--assisted by the still greater imprudence of sitting in her wet
  • shoes and stockings--given Marianne a cold so violent as, though for a
  • day or two trifled with or denied, would force itself by increasing
  • ailments on the concern of every body, and the notice of herself.
  • Prescriptions poured in from all quarters, and as usual, were all
  • declined. Though heavy and feverish, with a pain in her limbs, and a
  • cough, and a sore throat, a good night's rest was to cure her entirely;
  • and it was with difficulty that Elinor prevailed on her, when she went
  • to bed, to try one or two of the simplest of the remedies.
  • CHAPTER 43
  • Marianne got up the next morning at her usual time; to every inquiry
  • replied that she was better, and tried to prove herself so, by engaging
  • in her accustomary employments. But a day spent in sitting shivering
  • over the fire with a book in her hand, which she was unable to read, or
  • in lying, weary and languid, on a sofa, did not speak much in favour of
  • her amendment; and when, at last, she went early to bed, more and more
  • indisposed, Colonel Brandon was only astonished at her sister's
  • composure, who, though attending and nursing her the whole day, against
  • Marianne's inclination, and forcing proper medicines on her at night,
  • trusted, like Marianne, to the certainty and efficacy of sleep, and
  • felt no real alarm.
  • A very restless and feverish night, however, disappointed the
  • expectation of both; and when Marianne, after persisting in rising,
  • confessed herself unable to sit up, and returned voluntarily to her
  • bed, Elinor was very ready to adopt Mrs. Jennings's advice, of sending
  • for the Palmers' apothecary.
  • He came, examined his patient, and though encouraging Miss Dashwood to
  • expect that a very few days would restore her sister to health, yet, by
  • pronouncing her disorder to have a putrid tendency, and allowing the
  • word "infection" to pass his lips, gave instant alarm to Mrs. Palmer,
  • on her baby's account. Mrs. Jennings, who had been inclined from the
  • first to think Marianne's complaint more serious than Elinor, now
  • looked very grave on Mr. Harris's report, and confirming Charlotte's
  • fears and caution, urged the necessity of her immediate removal with
  • her infant; and Mr. Palmer, though treating their apprehensions as
  • idle, found the anxiety and importunity of his wife too great to be
  • withstood. Her departure, therefore, was fixed on; and within an hour
  • after Mr. Harris's arrival, she set off, with her little boy and his
  • nurse, for the house of a near relation of Mr. Palmer's, who lived a
  • few miles on the other side of Bath; whither her husband promised, at
  • her earnest entreaty, to join her in a day or two; and whither she was
  • almost equally urgent with her mother to accompany her. Mrs. Jennings,
  • however, with a kindness of heart which made Elinor really love her,
  • declared her resolution of not stirring from Cleveland as long as
  • Marianne remained ill, and of endeavouring, by her own attentive care,
  • to supply to her the place of the mother she had taken her from; and
  • Elinor found her on every occasion a most willing and active helpmate,
  • desirous to share in all her fatigues, and often by her better
  • experience in nursing, of material use.
  • Poor Marianne, languid and low from the nature of her malady, and
  • feeling herself universally ill, could no longer hope that tomorrow
  • would find her recovered; and the idea of what tomorrow would have
  • produced, but for this unlucky illness, made every ailment severe; for
  • on that day they were to have begun their journey home; and, attended
  • the whole way by a servant of Mrs. Jennings, were to have taken their
  • mother by surprise on the following forenoon. The little she said was
  • all in lamentation of this inevitable delay; though Elinor tried to
  • raise her spirits, and make her believe, as she THEN really believed
  • herself, that it would be a very short one.
  • The next day produced little or no alteration in the state of the
  • patient; she certainly was not better, and, except that there was no
  • amendment, did not appear worse. Their party was now farther reduced;
  • for Mr. Palmer, though very unwilling to go as well from real humanity
  • and good-nature, as from a dislike of appearing to be frightened away
  • by his wife, was persuaded at last by Colonel Brandon to perform his
  • promise of following her; and while he was preparing to go, Colonel
  • Brandon himself, with a much greater exertion, began to talk of going
  • likewise.--Here, however, the kindness of Mrs. Jennings interposed most
  • acceptably; for to send the Colonel away while his love was in so much
  • uneasiness on her sister's account, would be to deprive them both, she
  • thought, of every comfort; and therefore telling him at once that his
  • stay at Cleveland was necessary to herself, that she should want him to
  • play at piquet of an evening, while Miss Dashwood was above with her
  • sister, &c. she urged him so strongly to remain, that he, who was
  • gratifying the first wish of his own heart by a compliance, could not
  • long even affect to demur; especially as Mrs. Jennings's entreaty was
  • warmly seconded by Mr. Palmer, who seemed to feel a relief to himself,
  • in leaving behind him a person so well able to assist or advise Miss
  • Dashwood in any emergence.
  • Marianne was, of course, kept in ignorance of all these arrangements.
  • She knew not that she had been the means of sending the owners of
  • Cleveland away, in about seven days from the time of their arrival. It
  • gave her no surprise that she saw nothing of Mrs. Palmer; and as it
  • gave her likewise no concern, she never mentioned her name.
  • Two days passed away from the time of Mr. Palmer's departure, and her
  • situation continued, with little variation, the same. Mr. Harris, who
  • attended her every day, still talked boldly of a speedy recovery, and
  • Miss Dashwood was equally sanguine; but the expectation of the others
  • was by no means so cheerful. Mrs. Jennings had determined very early
  • in the seizure that Marianne would never get over it, and Colonel
  • Brandon, who was chiefly of use in listening to Mrs. Jennings's
  • forebodings, was not in a state of mind to resist their influence. He
  • tried to reason himself out of fears, which the different judgment of
  • the apothecary seemed to render absurd; but the many hours of each day
  • in which he was left entirely alone, were but too favourable for the
  • admission of every melancholy idea, and he could not expel from his
  • mind the persuasion that he should see Marianne no more.
  • On the morning of the third day however, the gloomy anticipations of
  • both were almost done away; for when Mr. Harris arrived, he declared
  • his patient materially better. Her pulse was much stronger, and every
  • symptom more favourable than on the preceding visit. Elinor, confirmed
  • in every pleasant hope, was all cheerfulness; rejoicing that in her
  • letters to her mother, she had pursued her own judgment rather than her
  • friend's, in making very light of the indisposition which delayed them
  • at Cleveland; and almost fixing on the time when Marianne would be able
  • to travel.
  • But the day did not close so auspiciously as it began.-- Towards the
  • evening Marianne became ill again, growing more heavy, restless, and
  • uncomfortable than before. Her sister, however, still sanguine, was
  • willing to attribute the change to nothing more than the fatigue of
  • having sat up to have her bed made; and carefully administering the
  • cordials prescribed, saw her, with satisfaction, sink at last into a
  • slumber, from which she expected the most beneficial effects. Her
  • sleep, though not so quiet as Elinor wished to see it, lasted a
  • considerable time; and anxious to observe the result of it herself, she
  • resolved to sit with her during the whole of it. Mrs. Jennings,
  • knowing nothing of any change in the patient, went unusually early to
  • bed; her maid, who was one of the principal nurses, was recreating
  • herself in the housekeeper's room, and Elinor remained alone with
  • Marianne.
  • The repose of the latter became more and more disturbed; and her
  • sister, who watched, with unremitting attention her continual change of
  • posture, and heard the frequent but inarticulate sounds of complaint
  • which passed her lips, was almost wishing to rouse her from so painful
  • a slumber, when Marianne, suddenly awakened by some accidental noise in
  • the house, started hastily up, and, with feverish wildness, cried out,--
  • "Is mama coming?--"
  • "Not yet," cried the other, concealing her terror, and assisting
  • Marianne to lie down again, "but she will be here, I hope, before it is
  • long. It is a great way, you know, from hence to Barton."
  • "But she must not go round by London," cried Marianne, in the same
  • hurried manner. "I shall never see her, if she goes by London."
  • Elinor perceived with alarm that she was not quite herself, and, while
  • attempting to soothe her, eagerly felt her pulse. It was lower and
  • quicker than ever! and Marianne, still talking wildly of mama, her
  • alarm increased so rapidly, as to determine her on sending instantly
  • for Mr. Harris, and despatching a messenger to Barton for her mother.
  • To consult with Colonel Brandon on the best means of effecting the
  • latter, was a thought which immediately followed the resolution of its
  • performance; and as soon she had rung up the maid to take her place by
  • her sister, she hastened down to the drawing-room, where she knew he
  • was generally to be found at a much later hour than the present.
  • It was no time for hesitation. Her fears and her difficulties were
  • immediately before him. Her fears, he had no courage, no confidence to
  • attempt the removal of:--he listened to them in silent despondence;--but
  • her difficulties were instantly obviated, for with a readiness that
  • seemed to speak the occasion, and the service pre-arranged in his mind,
  • he offered himself as the messenger who should fetch Mrs. Dashwood.
  • Elinor made no resistance that was not easily overcome. She thanked him
  • with brief, though fervent gratitude, and while he went to hurry off his
  • servant with a message to Mr. Harris, and an order for post-horses
  • directly, she wrote a few lines to her mother.
  • The comfort of such a friend at that moment as Colonel Brandon--or such
  • a companion for her mother,--how gratefully was it felt!--a companion
  • whose judgment would guide, whose attendance must relieve, and whose
  • friendship might soothe her!--as far as the shock of such a summons
  • COULD be lessened to her, his presence, his manners, his assistance,
  • would lessen it.
  • HE, meanwhile, whatever he might feel, acted with all the firmness of a
  • collected mind, made every necessary arrangement with the utmost
  • despatch, and calculated with exactness the time in which she might
  • look for his return. Not a moment was lost in delay of any kind. The
  • horses arrived, even before they were expected, and Colonel Brandon
  • only pressing her hand with a look of solemnity, and a few words spoken
  • too low to reach her ear, hurried into the carriage. It was then about
  • twelve o'clock, and she returned to her sister's apartment to wait for
  • the arrival of the apothecary, and to watch by her the rest of the
  • night. It was a night of almost equal suffering to both. Hour after
  • hour passed away in sleepless pain and delirium on Marianne's side, and
  • in the most cruel anxiety on Elinor's, before Mr. Harris appeared. Her
  • apprehensions once raised, paid by their excess for all her former
  • security; and the servant who sat up with her, for she would not allow
  • Mrs. Jennings to be called, only tortured her more, by hints of what
  • her mistress had always thought.
  • Marianne's ideas were still, at intervals, fixed incoherently on her
  • mother, and whenever she mentioned her name, it gave a pang to the
  • heart of poor Elinor, who, reproaching herself for having trifled with
  • so many days of illness, and wretched for some immediate relief,
  • fancied that all relief might soon be in vain, that every thing had
  • been delayed too long, and pictured to herself her suffering mother
  • arriving too late to see this darling child, or to see her rational.
  • She was on the point of sending again for Mr. Harris, or if HE could
  • not come, for some other advice, when the former--but not till after
  • five o'clock--arrived. His opinion, however, made some little amends
  • for his delay, for though acknowledging a very unexpected and
  • unpleasant alteration in his patient, he would not allow the danger to
  • be material, and talked of the relief which a fresh mode of treatment
  • must procure, with a confidence which, in a lesser degree, was
  • communicated to Elinor. He promised to call again in the course of
  • three or four hours, and left both the patient and her anxious
  • attendant more composed than he had found them.
  • With strong concern, and with many reproaches for not being called to
  • their aid, did Mrs. Jennings hear in the morning of what had passed.
  • Her former apprehensions, now with greater reason restored, left her no
  • doubt of the event; and though trying to speak comfort to Elinor, her
  • conviction of her sister's danger would not allow her to offer the
  • comfort of hope. Her heart was really grieved. The rapid decay, the
  • early death of a girl so young, so lovely as Marianne, must have struck
  • a less interested person with concern. On Mrs. Jennings's compassion
  • she had other claims. She had been for three months her companion, was
  • still under her care, and she was known to have been greatly injured,
  • and long unhappy. The distress of her sister too, particularly a
  • favourite, was before her;--and as for their mother, when Mrs. Jennings
  • considered that Marianne might probably be to HER what Charlotte was to
  • herself, her sympathy in HER sufferings was very sincere.
  • Mr. Harris was punctual in his second visit;--but he came to be
  • disappointed in his hopes of what the last would produce. His
  • medicines had failed;--the fever was unabated; and Marianne only more
  • quiet--not more herself--remained in a heavy stupor. Elinor, catching
  • all, and more than all, his fears in a moment, proposed to call in
  • further advice. But he judged it unnecessary: he had still something
  • more to try, some more fresh application, of whose success he was as
  • confident as the last, and his visit concluded with encouraging
  • assurances which reached the ear, but could not enter the heart of Miss
  • Dashwood. She was calm, except when she thought of her mother; but she
  • was almost hopeless; and in this state she continued till noon,
  • scarcely stirring from her sister's bed, her thoughts wandering from
  • one image of grief, one suffering friend to another, and her spirits
  • oppressed to the utmost by the conversation of Mrs. Jennings, who
  • scrupled not to attribute the severity and danger of this attack to the
  • many weeks of previous indisposition which Marianne's disappointment
  • had brought on. Elinor felt all the reasonableness of the idea, and it
  • gave fresh misery to her reflections.
  • About noon, however, she began--but with a caution--a dread of
  • disappointment which for some time kept her silent, even to her
  • friend--to fancy, to hope she could perceive a slight amendment in her
  • sister's pulse;--she waited, watched, and examined it again and
  • again;--and at last, with an agitation more difficult to bury under
  • exterior calmness, than all her foregoing distress, ventured to
  • communicate her hopes. Mrs. Jennings, though forced, on examination,
  • to acknowledge a temporary revival, tried to keep her young friend from
  • indulging a thought of its continuance;--and Elinor, conning over every
  • injunction of distrust, told herself likewise not to hope. But it was
  • too late. Hope had already entered; and feeling all its anxious
  • flutter, she bent over her sister to watch--she hardly knew for what.
  • Half an hour passed away, and the favourable symptom yet blessed her.
  • Others even arose to confirm it. Her breath, her skin, her lips, all
  • flattered Elinor with signs of amendment; and Marianne fixed her eyes
  • on her with a rational, though languid, gaze. Anxiety and hope now
  • oppressed her in equal degrees, and left her no moment of tranquillity
  • till the arrival of Mr. Harris at four o'clock;--when his assurances,
  • his felicitations on a recovery in her sister even surpassing his
  • expectation, gave her confidence, comfort, and tears of joy.
  • Marianne was in every respect materially better, and he declared her
  • entirely out of danger. Mrs. Jennings, perhaps satisfied with the
  • partial justification of her forebodings which had been found in their
  • late alarm, allowed herself to trust in his judgment, and admitted,
  • with unfeigned joy, and soon with unequivocal cheerfulness, the
  • probability of an entire recovery.
  • Elinor could not be cheerful. Her joy was of a different kind, and led
  • to any thing rather than to gaiety. Marianne restored to life, health,
  • friends, and to her doting mother, was an idea to fill her heart with
  • sensations of exquisite comfort, and expand it in fervent
  • gratitude;--but it led to no outward demonstrations of joy, no words,
  • no smiles. All within Elinor's breast was satisfaction, silent and
  • strong.
  • She continued by the side of her sister, with little intermission the
  • whole afternoon, calming every fear, satisfying every inquiry of her
  • enfeebled spirits, supplying every succour, and watching almost every
  • look and every breath. The possibility of a relapse would of course,
  • in some moments, occur to remind her of what anxiety was--but when she
  • saw, on her frequent and minute examination, that every symptom of
  • recovery continued, and saw Marianne at six o'clock sink into a quiet,
  • steady, and to all appearance comfortable, sleep, she silenced every
  • doubt.
  • The time was now drawing on, when Colonel Brandon might be expected
  • back. At ten o'clock, she trusted, or at least not much later her
  • mother would be relieved from the dreadful suspense in which she must
  • now be travelling towards them. The Colonel, too!--perhaps scarcely
  • less an object of pity!--Oh!--how slow was the progress of time which
  • yet kept them in ignorance!
  • At seven o'clock, leaving Marianne still sweetly asleep, she joined
  • Mrs. Jennings in the drawing-room to tea. Of breakfast she had been
  • kept by her fears, and of dinner by their sudden reverse, from eating
  • much;--and the present refreshment, therefore, with such feelings of
  • content as she brought to it, was particularly welcome. Mrs. Jennings
  • would have persuaded her, at its conclusion, to take some rest before
  • her mother's arrival, and allow HER to take her place by Marianne; but
  • Elinor had no sense of fatigue, no capability of sleep at that moment
  • about her, and she was not to be kept away from her sister an
  • unnecessary instant. Mrs. Jennings therefore attending her up stairs
  • into the sick chamber, to satisfy herself that all continued right,
  • left her there again to her charge and her thoughts, and retired to her
  • own room to write letters and sleep.
  • The night was cold and stormy. The wind roared round the house, and
  • the rain beat against the windows; but Elinor, all happiness within,
  • regarded it not. Marianne slept through every blast; and the
  • travellers--they had a rich reward in store, for every present
  • inconvenience.
  • The clock struck eight. Had it been ten, Elinor would have been
  • convinced that at that moment she heard a carriage driving up to the
  • house; and so strong was the persuasion that she DID, in spite of the
  • ALMOST impossibility of their being already come, that she moved into
  • the adjoining dressing-closet and opened a window shutter, to be
  • satisfied of the truth. She instantly saw that her ears had not
  • deceived her. The flaring lamps of a carriage were immediately in
  • view. By their uncertain light she thought she could discern it to be
  • drawn by four horses; and this, while it told the excess of her poor
  • mother's alarm, gave some explanation to such unexpected rapidity.
  • Never in her life had Elinor found it so difficult to be calm, as at
  • that moment. The knowledge of what her mother must be feeling as the
  • carriage stopt at the door--of her doubt--her dread--perhaps her
  • despair!--and of what SHE had to tell!--with such knowledge it was
  • impossible to be calm. All that remained to be done was to be speedy;
  • and, therefore staying only till she could leave Mrs. Jennings's maid
  • with her sister, she hurried down stairs.
  • The bustle in the vestibule, as she passed along an inner lobby,
  • assured her that they were already in the house. She rushed to the
  • drawing-room,--she entered it,--and saw only Willoughby.
  • CHAPTER 44
  • Elinor, starting back with a look of horror at the sight of him, obeyed
  • the first impulse of her heart in turning instantly to quit the room,
  • and her hand was already on the lock, when its action was suspended by
  • his hastily advancing, and saying, in a voice rather of command than
  • supplication,
  • "Miss Dashwood, for half an hour--for ten minutes--I entreat you to
  • stay."
  • "No, sir," she replied with firmness, "I shall NOT stay. Your business
  • cannot be with ME. The servants, I suppose, forgot to tell you that
  • Mr. Palmer was not in the house."
  • "Had they told me," he cried with vehemence, "that Mr. Palmer and all
  • his relations were at the devil, it would not have turned me from the
  • door. My business is with you, and only you."
  • "With me!"--in the utmost amazement--"well, sir,--be quick--and if you
  • can--less violent."
  • "Sit down, and I will be both."
  • She hesitated; she knew not what to do. The possibility of Colonel
  • Brandon's arriving and finding her there, came across her. But she had
  • promised to hear him, and her curiosity no less than her honor was
  • engaged. After a moment's recollection, therefore, concluding that
  • prudence required dispatch, and that her acquiescence would best
  • promote it, she walked silently towards the table, and sat down. He
  • took the opposite chair, and for half a minute not a word was said by
  • either.
  • "Pray be quick, sir,"--said Elinor, impatiently;--"I have no time to
  • spare."
  • He was sitting in an attitude of deep meditation, and seemed not to
  • hear her.
  • "Your sister," said he, with abruptness, a moment afterwards--"is out
  • of danger. I heard it from the servant. God be praised!--But is it
  • true? is it really true?"
  • Elinor would not speak. He repeated the inquiry with yet greater
  • eagerness.
  • "For God's sake tell me, is she out of danger, or is she not?"
  • "We hope she is."
  • He rose up, and walked across the room.
  • "Had I known as much half an hour ago--But since I AM here,"--speaking
  • with a forced vivacity as he returned to his seat--"what does it
  • signify?--For once, Miss Dashwood--it will be the last time,
  • perhaps--let us be cheerful together.--I am in a fine mood for
  • gaiety.-- Tell me honestly"--a deeper glow overspreading his
  • cheeks--"do you think me most a knave or a fool?"
  • Elinor looked at him with greater astonishment than ever. She began to
  • think that he must be in liquor;--the strangeness of such a visit, and
  • of such manners, seemed no otherwise intelligible; and with this
  • impression she immediately rose, saying,
  • "Mr. Willoughby, I advise you at present to return to Combe--I am not
  • at leisure to remain with you longer.-- Whatever your business may be
  • with me, it will be better recollected and explained to-morrow."
  • "I understand you," he replied, with an expressive smile, and a voice
  • perfectly calm; "yes, I am very drunk.-- A pint of porter with my cold
  • beef at Marlborough was enough to over-set me."
  • "At Marlborough!"--cried Elinor, more and more at a loss to understand
  • what he would be at.
  • "Yes,--I left London this morning at eight o'clock, and the only ten
  • minutes I have spent out of my chaise since that time procured me a
  • nuncheon at Marlborough."
  • The steadiness of his manner, and the intelligence of his eye as he
  • spoke, convincing Elinor, that whatever other unpardonable folly might
  • bring him to Cleveland, he was not brought there by intoxication, she
  • said, after a moment's recollection,
  • "Mr. Willoughby, you OUGHT to feel, and I certainly DO--that after what
  • has passed--your coming here in this manner, and forcing yourself upon
  • my notice, requires a very particular excuse.--What is it, that you
  • mean by it?"--
  • "I mean,"--said he, with serious energy--"if I can, to make you hate me
  • one degree less than you do NOW. I mean to offer some kind of
  • explanation, some kind of apology, for the past; to open my whole heart
  • to you, and by convincing you, that though I have been always a
  • blockhead, I have not been always a rascal, to obtain something like
  • forgiveness from Ma--from your sister."
  • "Is this the real reason of your coming?"
  • "Upon my soul it is,"--was his answer, with a warmth which brought all
  • the former Willoughby to her remembrance, and in spite of herself made
  • her think him sincere.
  • "If that is all, you may be satisfied already,--for Marianne DOES--she
  • has LONG forgiven you."
  • "Has she?"--he cried, in the same eager tone.-- "Then she has forgiven
  • me before she ought to have done it. But she shall forgive me again,
  • and on more reasonable grounds.--NOW will you listen to me?"
  • Elinor bowed her assent.
  • "I do not know," said he, after a pause of expectation on her side, and
  • thoughtfulness on his own,--"how YOU may have accounted for my
  • behaviour to your sister, or what diabolical motive you may have
  • imputed to me.-- Perhaps you will hardly think the better of me,--it is
  • worth the trial however, and you shall hear every thing. When I first
  • became intimate in your family, I had no other intention, no other view
  • in the acquaintance than to pass my time pleasantly while I was obliged
  • to remain in Devonshire, more pleasantly than I had ever done before.
  • Your sister's lovely person and interesting manners could not but
  • please me; and her behaviour to me almost from the first, was of a
  • kind--It is astonishing, when I reflect on what it was, and what SHE
  • was, that my heart should have been so insensible! But at first I must
  • confess, my vanity only was elevated by it. Careless of her happiness,
  • thinking only of my own amusement, giving way to feelings which I had
  • always been too much in the habit of indulging, I endeavoured, by every
  • means in my power, to make myself pleasing to her, without any design
  • of returning her affection."
  • Miss Dashwood, at this point, turning her eyes on him with the most
  • angry contempt, stopped him, by saying,
  • "It is hardly worth while, Mr. Willoughby, for you to relate, or for me
  • to listen any longer. Such a beginning as this cannot be followed by
  • any thing.-- Do not let me be pained by hearing any thing more on the
  • subject."
  • "I insist on you hearing the whole of it," he replied, "My fortune was
  • never large, and I had always been expensive, always in the habit of
  • associating with people of better income than myself. Every year since
  • my coming of age, or even before, I believe, had added to my debts; and
  • though the death of my old cousin, Mrs. Smith, was to set me free; yet
  • that event being uncertain, and possibly far distant, it had been for
  • some time my intention to re-establish my circumstances by marrying a
  • woman of fortune. To attach myself to your sister, therefore, was not
  • a thing to be thought of;--and with a meanness, selfishness,
  • cruelty--which no indignant, no contemptuous look, even of yours, Miss
  • Dashwood, can ever reprobate too much--I was acting in this manner,
  • trying to engage her regard, without a thought of returning it.--But
  • one thing may be said for me: even in that horrid state of selfish
  • vanity, I did not know the extent of the injury I meditated, because I
  • did not THEN know what it was to love. But have I ever known it?--Well
  • may it be doubted; for, had I really loved, could I have sacrificed my
  • feelings to vanity, to avarice?--or, what is more, could I have
  • sacrificed hers?-- But I have done it. To avoid a comparative poverty,
  • which her affection and her society would have deprived of all its
  • horrors, I have, by raising myself to affluence, lost every thing that
  • could make it a blessing."
  • "You did then," said Elinor, a little softened, "believe yourself at
  • one time attached to her?"
  • "To have resisted such attractions, to have withstood such
  • tenderness!--Is there a man on earth who could have done it?--Yes, I
  • found myself, by insensible degrees, sincerely fond of her; and the
  • happiest hours of my life were what I spent with her when I felt my
  • intentions were strictly honourable, and my feelings blameless. Even
  • THEN, however, when fully determined on paying my addresses to her, I
  • allowed myself most improperly to put off, from day to day, the moment
  • of doing it, from an unwillingness to enter into an engagement while my
  • circumstances were so greatly embarrassed. I will not reason here--nor
  • will I stop for YOU to expatiate on the absurdity, and the worse than
  • absurdity, of scrupling to engage my faith where my honour was already
  • bound. The event has proved, that I was a cunning fool, providing with
  • great circumspection for a possible opportunity of making myself
  • contemptible and wretched for ever. At last, however, my resolution
  • was taken, and I had determined, as soon as I could engage her alone,
  • to justify the attentions I had so invariably paid her, and openly
  • assure her of an affection which I had already taken such pains to
  • display. But in the interim--in the interim of the very few hours that
  • were to pass, before I could have an opportunity of speaking with her
  • in private--a circumstance occurred--an unlucky circumstance, to ruin
  • all my resolution, and with it all my comfort. A discovery took
  • place,"--here he hesitated and looked down.--"Mrs. Smith had somehow or
  • other been informed, I imagine by some distant relation, whose interest
  • it was to deprive me of her favour, of an affair, a connection--but I
  • need not explain myself farther," he added, looking at her with an
  • heightened colour and an enquiring eye--"your particular intimacy--you
  • have probably heard the whole story long ago."
  • "I have," returned Elinor, colouring likewise, and hardening her heart
  • anew against any compassion for him, "I have heard it all. And how you
  • will explain away any part of your guilt in that dreadful business, I
  • confess is beyond my comprehension."
  • "Remember," cried Willoughby, "from whom you received the account.
  • Could it be an impartial one? I acknowledge that her situation and her
  • character ought to have been respected by me. I do not mean to justify
  • myself, but at the same time cannot leave you to suppose that I have
  • nothing to urge--that because she was injured she was irreproachable,
  • and because I was a libertine, SHE must be a saint. If the violence of
  • her passions, the weakness of her understanding--I do not mean,
  • however, to defend myself. Her affection for me deserved better
  • treatment, and I often, with great self-reproach, recall the tenderness
  • which, for a very short time, had the power of creating any return. I
  • wish--I heartily wish it had never been. But I have injured more than
  • herself; and I have injured one, whose affection for me--(may I say
  • it?) was scarcely less warm than hers; and whose mind--Oh! how
  • infinitely superior!"--
  • "Your indifference, however, towards that unfortunate girl--I must say
  • it, unpleasant to me as the discussion of such a subject may well
  • be--your indifference is no apology for your cruel neglect of her. Do
  • not think yourself excused by any weakness, any natural defect of
  • understanding on her side, in the wanton cruelty so evident on yours.
  • You must have known, that while you were enjoying yourself in
  • Devonshire pursuing fresh schemes, always gay, always happy, she was
  • reduced to the extremest indigence."
  • "But, upon my soul, I did NOT know it," he warmly replied; "I did not
  • recollect that I had omitted to give her my direction; and common sense
  • might have told her how to find it out."
  • "Well, sir, and what said Mrs. Smith?"
  • "She taxed me with the offence at once, and my confusion may be
  • guessed. The purity of her life, the formality of her notions, her
  • ignorance of the world--every thing was against me. The matter itself
  • I could not deny, and vain was every endeavour to soften it. She was
  • previously disposed, I believe, to doubt the morality of my conduct in
  • general, and was moreover discontented with the very little attention,
  • the very little portion of my time that I had bestowed on her, in my
  • present visit. In short, it ended in a total breach. By one measure I
  • might have saved myself. In the height of her morality, good woman!
  • she offered to forgive the past, if I would marry Eliza. That could
  • not be--and I was formally dismissed from her favour and her house.
  • The night following this affair--I was to go the next morning--was
  • spent by me in deliberating on what my future conduct should be. The
  • struggle was great--but it ended too soon. My affection for Marianne,
  • my thorough conviction of her attachment to me--it was all insufficient
  • to outweigh that dread of poverty, or get the better of those false
  • ideas of the necessity of riches, which I was naturally inclined to
  • feel, and expensive society had increased. I had reason to believe
  • myself secure of my present wife, if I chose to address her, and I
  • persuaded myself to think that nothing else in common prudence remained
  • for me to do. A heavy scene however awaited me, before I could leave
  • Devonshire;--I was engaged to dine with you on that very day; some
  • apology was therefore necessary for my breaking this engagement. But
  • whether I should write this apology, or deliver it in person, was a
  • point of long debate. To see Marianne, I felt, would be dreadful, and
  • I even doubted whether I could see her again, and keep to my
  • resolution. In that point, however, I undervalued my own magnanimity,
  • as the event declared; for I went, I saw her, and saw her miserable,
  • and left her miserable--and left her hoping never to see her again."
  • "Why did you call, Mr. Willoughby?" said Elinor, reproachfully; "a note
  • would have answered every purpose.-- Why was it necessary to call?"
  • "It was necessary to my own pride. I could not bear to leave the
  • country in a manner that might lead you, or the rest of the
  • neighbourhood, to suspect any part of what had really passed between
  • Mrs. Smith and myself--and I resolved therefore on calling at the
  • cottage, in my way to Honiton. The sight of your dear sister, however,
  • was really dreadful; and, to heighten the matter, I found her alone.
  • You were all gone I do not know where. I had left her only the evening
  • before, so fully, so firmly resolved within my self on doing right! A
  • few hours were to have engaged her to me for ever; and I remember how
  • happy, how gay were my spirits, as I walked from the cottage to
  • Allenham, satisfied with myself, delighted with every body! But in
  • this, our last interview of friendship, I approached her with a sense
  • of guilt that almost took from me the power of dissembling. Her
  • sorrow, her disappointment, her deep regret, when I told her that I was
  • obliged to leave Devonshire so immediately--I never shall forget
  • it--united too with such reliance, such confidence in me!--Oh,
  • God!--what a hard-hearted rascal I was!"
  • They were both silent for a few moments. Elinor first spoke.
  • "Did you tell her that you should soon return?"
  • "I do not know what I told her," he replied, impatiently; "less than
  • was due to the past, beyond a doubt, and in all likelihood much more
  • than was justified by the future. I cannot think of it.--It won't
  • do.--Then came your dear mother to torture me farther, with all her
  • kindness and confidence. Thank Heaven! it DID torture me. I was
  • miserable. Miss Dashwood, you cannot have an idea of the comfort it
  • gives me to look back on my own misery. I owe such a grudge to myself
  • for the stupid, rascally folly of my own heart, that all my past
  • sufferings under it are only triumph and exultation to me now. Well, I
  • went, left all that I loved, and went to those to whom, at best, I was
  • only indifferent. My journey to town--travelling with my own horses,
  • and therefore so tediously--no creature to speak to--my own reflections
  • so cheerful--when I looked forward every thing so inviting!--when I
  • looked back at Barton, the picture so soothing!--oh, it was a blessed
  • journey!"
  • He stopped.
  • "Well, sir," said Elinor, who, though pitying him, grew impatient for
  • his departure, "and this is all?"
  • "Ah!--no,--have you forgot what passed in town?-- That infamous
  • letter--Did she shew it you?"
  • "Yes, I saw every note that passed."
  • "When the first of hers reached me (as it immediately did, for I was in
  • town the whole time,) what I felt is--in the common phrase, not to be
  • expressed; in a more simple one--perhaps too simple to raise any
  • emotion--my feelings were very, very painful.--Every line, every word
  • was--in the hackneyed metaphor which their dear writer, were she here,
  • would forbid--a dagger to my heart. To know that Marianne was in town
  • was--in the same language--a thunderbolt.--Thunderbolts and
  • daggers!--what a reproof would she have given me!--her taste, her
  • opinions--I believe they are better known to me than my own,--and I am
  • sure they are dearer."
  • Elinor's heart, which had undergone many changes in the course of this
  • extraordinary conversation, was now softened again;--yet she felt it
  • her duty to check such ideas in her companion as the last.
  • "This is not right, Mr. Willoughby.--Remember that you are married.
  • Relate only what in your conscience you think necessary for me to hear."
  • "Marianne's note, by assuring me that I was still as dear to her as in
  • former days, that in spite of the many, many weeks we had been
  • separated, she was as constant in her own feelings, and as full of
  • faith in the constancy of mine as ever, awakened all my remorse. I say
  • awakened, because time and London, business and dissipation, had in
  • some measure quieted it, and I had been growing a fine hardened
  • villain, fancying myself indifferent to her, and chusing to fancy that
  • she too must have become indifferent to me; talking to myself of our
  • past attachment as a mere idle, trifling business, shrugging up my
  • shoulders in proof of its being so, and silencing every reproach,
  • overcoming every scruple, by secretly saying now and then, 'I shall be
  • heartily glad to hear she is well married.'-- But this note made me
  • know myself better. I felt that she was infinitely dearer to me than
  • any other woman in the world, and that I was using her infamously. But
  • every thing was then just settled between Miss Grey and me. To retreat
  • was impossible. All that I had to do, was to avoid you both. I sent
  • no answer to Marianne, intending by that to preserve myself from her
  • farther notice; and for some time I was even determined not to call in
  • Berkeley Street;--but at last, judging it wiser to affect the air of a
  • cool, common acquaintance than anything else, I watched you all safely
  • out of the house one morning, and left my name."
  • "Watched us out of the house!"
  • "Even so. You would be surprised to hear how often I watched you, how
  • often I was on the point of falling in with you. I have entered many a
  • shop to avoid your sight, as the carriage drove by. Lodging as I did
  • in Bond Street, there was hardly a day in which I did not catch a
  • glimpse of one or other of you; and nothing but the most constant
  • watchfulness on my side, a most invariably prevailing desire to keep
  • out of your sight, could have separated us so long. I avoided the
  • Middletons as much as possible, as well as everybody else who was
  • likely to prove an acquaintance in common. Not aware of their being in
  • town, however, I blundered on Sir John, I believe, the first day of his
  • coming, and the day after I had called at Mrs. Jennings's. He asked me
  • to a party, a dance at his house in the evening.--Had he NOT told me as
  • an inducement that you and your sister were to be there, I should have
  • felt it too certain a thing, to trust myself near him. The next
  • morning brought another short note from Marianne--still affectionate,
  • open, artless, confiding--everything that could make MY conduct most
  • hateful. I could not answer it. I tried--but could not frame a
  • sentence. But I thought of her, I believe, every moment of the day.
  • If you CAN pity me, Miss Dashwood, pity my situation as it was THEN.
  • With my head and heart full of your sister, I was forced to play the
  • happy lover to another woman!--Those three or four weeks were worse
  • than all. Well, at last, as I need not tell you, you were forced on
  • me; and what a sweet figure I cut!--what an evening of agony it was!--
  • Marianne, beautiful as an angel on one side, calling me Willoughby in
  • such a tone!--Oh, God!--holding out her hand to me, asking me for an
  • explanation, with those bewitching eyes fixed in such speaking
  • solicitude on my face!--and Sophia, jealous as the devil on the other
  • hand, looking all that was--Well, it does not signify; it is over
  • now.-- Such an evening!--I ran away from you all as soon as I could;
  • but not before I had seen Marianne's sweet face as white as
  • death.--THAT was the last, last look I ever had of her;--the last
  • manner in which she appeared to me. It was a horrid sight!--yet when I
  • thought of her to-day as really dying, it was a kind of comfort to me
  • to imagine that I knew exactly how she would appear to those, who saw
  • her last in this world. She was before me, constantly before me, as I
  • travelled, in the same look and hue."
  • A short pause of mutual thoughtfulness succeeded. Willoughby first
  • rousing himself, broke it thus:
  • "Well, let me make haste and be gone. Your sister is certainly better,
  • certainly out of danger?"
  • "We are assured of it."
  • "Your poor mother, too!--doting on Marianne."
  • "But the letter, Mr. Willoughby, your own letter; have you any thing to
  • say about that?"
  • "Yes, yes, THAT in particular. Your sister wrote to me again, you
  • know, the very next morning. You saw what she said. I was
  • breakfasting at the Ellisons,--and her letter, with some others, was
  • brought to me there from my lodgings. It happened to catch Sophia's
  • eye before it caught mine--and its size, the elegance of the paper, the
  • hand-writing altogether, immediately gave her a suspicion. Some vague
  • report had reached her before of my attachment to some young lady in
  • Devonshire, and what had passed within her observation the preceding
  • evening had marked who the young lady was, and made her more jealous
  • than ever. Affecting that air of playfulness, therefore, which is
  • delightful in a woman one loves, she opened the letter directly,
  • and read its contents. She was well paid for her impudence.
  • She read what made her wretched. Her wretchedness I could have
  • borne, but her passion--her malice--At all events it must be appeased.
  • And, in short--what do you think of my wife's style of
  • letter-writing?--delicate--tender--truly feminine--was it not?"
  • "Your wife!--The letter was in your own hand-writing."
  • "Yes, but I had only the credit of servilely copying such sentences as
  • I was ashamed to put my name to. The original was all her own--her own
  • happy thoughts and gentle diction. But what could I do!--we were
  • engaged, every thing in preparation, the day almost fixed--But I am
  • talking like a fool. Preparation!--day!--In honest words, her money
  • was necessary to me, and in a situation like mine, any thing was to be
  • done to prevent a rupture. And after all, what did it signify to my
  • character in the opinion of Marianne and her friends, in what language
  • my answer was couched?--It must have been only to one end. My business
  • was to declare myself a scoundrel, and whether I did it with a bow or a
  • bluster was of little importance.-- 'I am ruined for ever in their
  • opinion--' said I to myself--'I am shut out for ever from their
  • society, they already think me an unprincipled fellow, this letter will
  • only make them think me a blackguard one.' Such were my reasonings, as,
  • in a sort of desperate carelessness, I copied my wife's words, and
  • parted with the last relics of Marianne. Her three notes--unluckily
  • they were all in my pocketbook, or I should have denied their
  • existence, and hoarded them for ever--I was forced to put them up, and
  • could not even kiss them. And the lock of hair--that too I had always
  • carried about me in the same pocket-book, which was now searched by
  • Madam with the most ingratiating virulence,--the dear lock--all, every
  • memento was torn from me."
  • "You are very wrong, Mr. Willoughby, very blamable," said Elinor, while
  • her voice, in spite of herself, betrayed her compassionate emotion;
  • "you ought not to speak in this way, either of Mrs. Willoughby or my
  • sister. You had made your own choice. It was not forced on you. Your
  • wife has a claim to your politeness, to your respect, at least. She
  • must be attached to you, or she would not have married you. To treat
  • her with unkindness, to speak of her slightingly is no atonement to
  • Marianne--nor can I suppose it a relief to your own conscience."
  • "Do not talk to me of my wife," said he with a heavy sigh.-- "She does
  • not deserve your compassion.--She knew I had no regard for her when we
  • married.--Well, married we were, and came down to Combe Magna to be
  • happy, and afterwards returned to town to be gay.--And now do you pity
  • me, Miss Dashwood?--or have I said all this to no purpose?-- Am I--be
  • it only one degree--am I less guilty in your opinion than I was
  • before?--My intentions were not always wrong. Have I explained away
  • any part of my guilt?"
  • "Yes, you have certainly removed something--a little.-- You have proved
  • yourself, on the whole, less faulty than I had believed you. You have
  • proved your heart less wicked, much less wicked. But I hardly
  • know--the misery that you have inflicted--I hardly know what could have
  • made it worse."
  • "Will you repeat to your sister when she is recovered, what I have been
  • telling you?--Let me be a little lightened too in her opinion as well
  • as in yours. You tell me that she has forgiven me already. Let me be
  • able to fancy that a better knowledge of my heart, and of my present
  • feelings, will draw from her a more spontaneous, more natural, more
  • gentle, less dignified, forgiveness. Tell her of my misery and my
  • penitence--tell her that my heart was never inconstant to her, and if
  • you will, that at this moment she is dearer to me than ever."
  • "I will tell her all that is necessary to what may comparatively be
  • called, your justification. But you have not explained to me the
  • particular reason of your coming now, nor how you heard of her illness."
  • "Last night, in Drury Lane lobby, I ran against Sir John Middleton, and
  • when he saw who I was--for the first time these two months--he spoke to
  • me.--That he had cut me ever since my marriage, I had seen without
  • surprise or resentment. Now, however, his good-natured, honest, stupid
  • soul, full of indignation against me, and concern for your sister,
  • could not resist the temptation of telling me what he knew ought
  • to--though probably he did not think it WOULD--vex me horridly. As
  • bluntly as he could speak it, therefore, he told me that Marianne
  • Dashwood was dying of a putrid fever at Cleveland--a letter that
  • morning received from Mrs. Jennings declared her danger most
  • imminent--the Palmers are all gone off in a fright, &c.--I was too much
  • shocked to be able to pass myself off as insensible even to the
  • undiscerning Sir John. His heart was softened in seeing mine suffer;
  • and so much of his ill-will was done away, that when we parted, he
  • almost shook me by the hand while he reminded me of an old promise
  • about a pointer puppy. What I felt on hearing that your sister was
  • dying--and dying too, believing me the greatest villain upon earth,
  • scorning, hating me in her latest moments--for how could I tell what
  • horrid projects might not have been imputed? ONE person I was sure
  • would represent me as capable of any thing-- What I felt was
  • dreadful!--My resolution was soon made, and at eight o'clock this
  • morning I was in my carriage. Now you know all."
  • Elinor made no answer. Her thoughts were silently fixed on the
  • irreparable injury which too early an independence and its consequent
  • habits of idleness, dissipation, and luxury, had made in the mind, the
  • character, the happiness, of a man who, to every advantage of person
  • and talents, united a disposition naturally open and honest, and a
  • feeling, affectionate temper. The world had made him extravagant and
  • vain--Extravagance and vanity had made him cold-hearted and selfish.
  • Vanity, while seeking its own guilty triumph at the expense of another,
  • had involved him in a real attachment, which extravagance, or at least
  • its offspring, necessity, had required to be sacrificed. Each faulty
  • propensity in leading him to evil, had led him likewise to punishment.
  • The attachment, from which against honour, against feeling, against
  • every better interest he had outwardly torn himself, now, when no
  • longer allowable, governed every thought; and the connection, for the
  • sake of which he had, with little scruple, left her sister to misery,
  • was likely to prove a source of unhappiness to himself of a far more
  • incurable nature. From a reverie of this kind she was recalled at the
  • end of some minutes by Willoughby, who, rousing himself from a reverie
  • at least equally painful, started up in preparation for going, and
  • said--
  • "There is no use in staying here; I must be off."
  • "Are you going back to town?"
  • "No--to Combe Magna. I have business there; from thence to town in a
  • day or two. Good bye."
  • He held out his hand. She could not refuse to give him hers;--he
  • pressed it with affection.
  • "And you DO think something better of me than you did?"--said he,
  • letting it fall, and leaning against the mantel-piece as if forgetting
  • he was to go.
  • Elinor assured him that she did;--that she forgave, pitied, wished him
  • well--was even interested in his happiness--and added some gentle
  • counsel as to the behaviour most likely to promote it. His answer was
  • not very encouraging.
  • "As to that," said he, "I must rub through the world as well as I can.
  • Domestic happiness is out of the question. If, however, I am allowed
  • to think that you and yours feel an interest in my fate and actions, it
  • may be the means--it may put me on my guard--at least, it may be
  • something to live for. Marianne to be sure is lost to me for ever.
  • Were I even by any blessed chance at liberty again--"
  • Elinor stopped him with a reproof.
  • "Well,"--he replied--"once more good bye. I shall now go away and live
  • in dread of one event."
  • "What do you mean?"
  • "Your sister's marriage."
  • "You are very wrong. She can never be more lost to you than she is
  • now."
  • "But she will be gained by some one else. And if that some one should
  • be the very he whom, of all others, I could least bear--but I will not
  • stay to rob myself of all your compassionate goodwill, by shewing that
  • where I have most injured I can least forgive. Good bye,--God bless
  • you!"
  • And with these words, he almost ran out of the room.
  • CHAPTER 45
  • Elinor, for some time after he left her, for some time even after the
  • sound of his carriage had died away, remained too much oppressed by a
  • crowd of ideas, widely differing in themselves, but of which sadness
  • was the general result, to think even of her sister.
  • Willoughby, he, whom only half an hour ago she had abhorred as the most
  • worthless of men, Willoughby, in spite of all his faults, excited a
  • degree of commiseration for the sufferings produced by them, which made
  • her think of him as now separated for ever from her family, with a
  • tenderness, a regret, rather in proportion, as she soon acknowledged
  • within herself--to his wishes than to his merits. She felt that his
  • influence over her mind was heightened by circumstances which ought not
  • in reason to have weight; by that person of uncommon attraction, that
  • open, affectionate, and lively manner which it was no merit to possess;
  • and by that still ardent love for Marianne, which it was not even
  • innocent to indulge. But she felt that it was so, long, long before
  • she could feel his influence less.
  • When at last she returned to the unconscious Marianne, she found her
  • just awaking, refreshed by so long and sweet a sleep to the extent of
  • her hopes. Elinor's heart was full. The past, the present, the
  • future, Willoughby's visit, Marianne's safety, and her mother's
  • expected arrival, threw her altogether into an agitation of spirits
  • which kept off every indication of fatigue, and made her only fearful
  • of betraying herself to her sister. Short was the time, however, in
  • which that fear could affect her, for within half an hour after
  • Willoughby's leaving the house, she was again called down stairs by the
  • sound of another carriage.--Eager to save her mother from every
  • unnecessary moment's horrible suspense, she ran immediately into the
  • hall, and reached the outward door just in time to receive and support
  • her as she entered it.
  • Mrs. Dashwood, whose terror as they drew near the house had produced
  • almost the conviction of Marianne's being no more, had no voice to
  • inquire after her, no voice even for Elinor; but SHE, waiting neither
  • for salutation nor inquiry, instantly gave the joyful relief;--and her
  • mother, catching it with all her usual warmth, was in a moment as much
  • overcome by her happiness, as she had been before by her fears. She
  • was supported into the drawing-room between her daughter and her
  • friend;--and there, shedding tears of joy, though still unable to
  • speak, embraced Elinor again and again, turning from her at intervals
  • to press Colonel Brandon's hand, with a look which spoke at once her
  • gratitude, and her conviction of his sharing with herself in the bliss
  • of the moment. He shared it, however, in a silence even greater than
  • her own.
  • As soon as Mrs. Dashwood had recovered herself, to see Marianne was her
  • first desire; and in two minutes she was with her beloved child,
  • rendered dearer to her than ever by absence, unhappiness, and danger.
  • Elinor's delight, as she saw what each felt in the meeting, was only
  • checked by an apprehension of its robbing Marianne of farther
  • sleep;--but Mrs. Dashwood could be calm, could be even prudent, when
  • the life of a child was at stake, and Marianne, satisfied in knowing
  • her mother was near her, and conscious of being too weak for
  • conversation, submitted readily to the silence and quiet prescribed by
  • every nurse around her. Mrs. Dashwood WOULD sit up with her all night;
  • and Elinor, in compliance with her mother's entreaty, went to bed. But
  • the rest, which one night entirely sleepless, and many hours of the
  • most wearing anxiety seemed to make requisite, was kept off by
  • irritation of spirits. Willoughby, "poor Willoughby," as she now
  • allowed herself to call him, was constantly in her thoughts; she would
  • not but have heard his vindication for the world, and now blamed, now
  • acquitted herself for having judged him so harshly before. But her
  • promise of relating it to her sister was invariably painful. She
  • dreaded the performance of it, dreaded what its effect on Marianne
  • might be; doubted whether after such an explanation she could ever be
  • happy with another; and for a moment wished Willoughby a widower.
  • Then, remembering Colonel Brandon, reproved herself, felt that to HIS
  • sufferings and his constancy far more than to his rival's, the reward
  • of her sister was due, and wished any thing rather than Mrs.
  • Willoughby's death.
  • The shock of Colonel Brandon's errand at Barton had been much softened
  • to Mrs. Dashwood by her own previous alarm; for so great was her
  • uneasiness about Marianne, that she had already determined to set out
  • for Cleveland on that very day, without waiting for any further
  • intelligence, and had so far settled her journey before his arrival,
  • that the Careys were then expected every moment to fetch Margaret away,
  • as her mother was unwilling to take her where there might be infection.
  • Marianne continued to mend every day, and the brilliant cheerfulness of
  • Mrs. Dashwood's looks and spirits proved her to be, as she repeatedly
  • declared herself, one of the happiest women in the world. Elinor could
  • not hear the declaration, nor witness its proofs without sometimes
  • wondering whether her mother ever recollected Edward. But Mrs.
  • Dashwood, trusting to the temperate account of her own disappointment
  • which Elinor had sent her, was led away by the exuberance of her joy to
  • think only of what would increase it. Marianne was restored to her
  • from a danger in which, as she now began to feel, her own mistaken
  • judgment in encouraging the unfortunate attachment to Willoughby, had
  • contributed to place her;--and in her recovery she had yet another
  • source of joy unthought of by Elinor. It was thus imparted to her, as
  • soon as any opportunity of private conference between them occurred.
  • "At last we are alone. My Elinor, you do not yet know all my
  • happiness. Colonel Brandon loves Marianne. He has told me so himself."
  • Her daughter, feeling by turns both pleased and pained, surprised and
  • not surprised, was all silent attention.
  • "You are never like me, dear Elinor, or I should wonder at your
  • composure now. Had I sat down to wish for any possible good to my
  • family, I should have fixed on Colonel Brandon's marrying one of you as
  • the object most desirable. And I believe Marianne will be the most
  • happy with him of the two."
  • Elinor was half inclined to ask her reason for thinking so, because
  • satisfied that none founded on an impartial consideration of their age,
  • characters, or feelings, could be given;--but her mother must always be
  • carried away by her imagination on any interesting subject, and
  • therefore instead of an inquiry, she passed it off with a smile.
  • "He opened his whole heart to me yesterday as we travelled. It came
  • out quite unawares, quite undesignedly. I, you may well believe, could
  • talk of nothing but my child;--he could not conceal his distress; I saw
  • that it equalled my own, and he perhaps, thinking that mere friendship,
  • as the world now goes, would not justify so warm a sympathy--or rather,
  • not thinking at all, I suppose--giving way to irresistible feelings,
  • made me acquainted with his earnest, tender, constant, affection for
  • Marianne. He has loved her, my Elinor, ever since the first moment of
  • seeing her."
  • Here, however, Elinor perceived,--not the language, not the professions
  • of Colonel Brandon, but the natural embellishments of her mother's
  • active fancy, which fashioned every thing delightful to her as it chose.
  • "His regard for her, infinitely surpassing anything that Willoughby
  • ever felt or feigned, as much more warm, as more sincere or
  • constant--which ever we are to call it--has subsisted through all the
  • knowledge of dear Marianne's unhappy prepossession for that worthless
  • young man!--and without selfishness--without encouraging a hope!--could
  • he have seen her happy with another--Such a noble mind!--such openness,
  • such sincerity!--no one can be deceived in HIM."
  • "Colonel Brandon's character," said Elinor, "as an excellent man, is
  • well established."
  • "I know it is,"--replied her mother seriously, "or after such a warning,
  • I should be the last to encourage such affection, or even to be pleased
  • by it. But his coming for me as he did, with such active, such ready
  • friendship, is enough to prove him one of the worthiest of men."
  • "His character, however," answered Elinor, "does not rest on ONE act of
  • kindness, to which his affection for Marianne, were humanity out of the
  • case, would have prompted him. To Mrs. Jennings, to the Middletons, he
  • has been long and intimately known; they equally love and respect him;
  • and even my own knowledge of him, though lately acquired, is very
  • considerable; and so highly do I value and esteem him, that if Marianne
  • can be happy with him, I shall be as ready as yourself to think our
  • connection the greatest blessing to us in the world. What answer did
  • you give him?--Did you allow him to hope?"
  • "Oh! my love, I could not then talk of hope to him or to myself.
  • Marianne might at that moment be dying. But he did not ask for hope or
  • encouragement. His was an involuntary confidence, an irrepressible
  • effusion to a soothing friend--not an application to a parent. Yet
  • after a time I DID say, for at first I was quite overcome--that if she
  • lived, as I trusted she might, my greatest happiness would lie in
  • promoting their marriage; and since our arrival, since our delightful
  • security, I have repeated it to him more fully, have given him every
  • encouragement in my power. Time, a very little time, I tell him, will
  • do everything;--Marianne's heart is not to be wasted for ever on such a
  • man as Willoughby.-- His own merits must soon secure it."
  • "To judge from the Colonel's spirits, however, you have not yet made
  • him equally sanguine."
  • "No.--He thinks Marianne's affection too deeply rooted for any change
  • in it under a great length of time, and even supposing her heart again
  • free, is too diffident of himself to believe, that with such a
  • difference of age and disposition he could ever attach her. There,
  • however, he is quite mistaken. His age is only so much beyond hers as
  • to be an advantage, as to make his character and principles fixed;--and
  • his disposition, I am well convinced, is exactly the very one to make
  • your sister happy. And his person, his manners too, are all in his
  • favour. My partiality does not blind me; he certainly is not so
  • handsome as Willoughby--but at the same time, there is something much
  • more pleasing in his countenance.-- There was always a something,--if
  • you remember,--in Willoughby's eyes at times, which I did not like."
  • Elinor could NOT remember it;--but her mother, without waiting for her
  • assent, continued,
  • "And his manners, the Colonel's manners are not only more pleasing to
  • me than Willoughby's ever were, but they are of a kind I well know to
  • be more solidly attaching to Marianne. Their gentleness, their genuine
  • attention to other people, and their manly unstudied simplicity is much
  • more accordant with her real disposition, than the liveliness--often
  • artificial, and often ill-timed of the other. I am very sure myself,
  • that had Willoughby turned out as really amiable, as he has proved
  • himself the contrary, Marianne would yet never have been so happy with
  • HIM, as she will be with Colonel Brandon."
  • She paused.--Her daughter could not quite agree with her, but her
  • dissent was not heard, and therefore gave no offence.
  • "At Delaford, she will be within an easy distance of me," added Mrs.
  • Dashwood, "even if I remain at Barton; and in all probability,--for I
  • hear it is a large village,--indeed there certainly MUST be some small
  • house or cottage close by, that would suit us quite as well as our
  • present situation."
  • Poor Elinor!--here was a new scheme for getting her to Delaford!--but
  • her spirit was stubborn.
  • "His fortune too!--for at my time of life you know, everybody cares
  • about THAT;--and though I neither know nor desire to know, what it
  • really is, I am sure it must be a good one."
  • Here they were interrupted by the entrance of a third person, and
  • Elinor withdrew to think it all over in private, to wish success to her
  • friend, and yet in wishing it, to feel a pang for Willoughby.
  • CHAPTER 46
  • Marianne's illness, though weakening in its kind, had not been long
  • enough to make her recovery slow; and with youth, natural strength, and
  • her mother's presence in aid, it proceeded so smoothly as to enable her
  • to remove, within four days after the arrival of the latter, into Mrs.
  • Palmer's dressing-room. When there, at her own particular request, for
  • she was impatient to pour forth her thanks to him for fetching her
  • mother, Colonel Brandon was invited to visit her.
  • His emotion on entering the room, in seeing her altered looks, and in
  • receiving the pale hand which she immediately held out to him, was
  • such, as, in Elinor's conjecture, must arise from something more than
  • his affection for Marianne, or the consciousness of its being known to
  • others; and she soon discovered in his melancholy eye and varying
  • complexion as he looked at her sister, the probable recurrence of many
  • past scenes of misery to his mind, brought back by that resemblance
  • between Marianne and Eliza already acknowledged, and now strengthened
  • by the hollow eye, the sickly skin, the posture of reclining weakness,
  • and the warm acknowledgment of peculiar obligation.
  • Mrs. Dashwood, not less watchful of what passed than her daughter, but
  • with a mind very differently influenced, and therefore watching to very
  • different effect, saw nothing in the Colonel's behaviour but what arose
  • from the most simple and self-evident sensations, while in the actions
  • and words of Marianne she persuaded herself to think that something
  • more than gratitude already dawned.
  • At the end of another day or two, Marianne growing visibly stronger
  • every twelve hours, Mrs. Dashwood, urged equally by her own and her
  • daughter's wishes, began to talk of removing to Barton. On HER
  • measures depended those of her two friends; Mrs. Jennings could not
  • quit Cleveland during the Dashwoods' stay; and Colonel Brandon was soon
  • brought, by their united request, to consider his own abode there as
  • equally determinate, if not equally indispensable. At his and Mrs.
  • Jennings's united request in return, Mrs. Dashwood was prevailed on to
  • accept the use of his carriage on her journey back, for the better
  • accommodation of her sick child; and the Colonel, at the joint
  • invitation of Mrs. Dashwood and Mrs. Jennings, whose active good-nature
  • made her friendly and hospitable for other people as well as herself,
  • engaged with pleasure to redeem it by a visit at the cottage, in the
  • course of a few weeks.
  • The day of separation and departure arrived; and Marianne, after taking
  • so particular and lengthened a leave of Mrs. Jennings, one so earnestly
  • grateful, so full of respect and kind wishes as seemed due to her own
  • heart from a secret acknowledgment of past inattention, and bidding
  • Colonel Brandon farewell with a cordiality of a friend, was carefully
  • assisted by him into the carriage, of which he seemed anxious that she
  • should engross at least half. Mrs. Dashwood and Elinor then followed,
  • and the others were left by themselves, to talk of the travellers, and
  • feel their own dullness, till Mrs. Jennings was summoned to her chaise
  • to take comfort in the gossip of her maid for the loss of her two young
  • companions; and Colonel Brandon immediately afterwards took his
  • solitary way to Delaford.
  • The Dashwoods were two days on the road, and Marianne bore her journey
  • on both, without essential fatigue. Every thing that the most zealous
  • affection, the most solicitous care could do to render her comfortable,
  • was the office of each watchful companion, and each found their reward
  • in her bodily ease, and her calmness of spirits. To Elinor, the
  • observation of the latter was particularly grateful. She, who had seen
  • her week after week so constantly suffering, oppressed by anguish of
  • heart which she had neither courage to speak of, nor fortitude to
  • conceal, now saw with a joy, which no other could equally share, an
  • apparent composure of mind, which, in being the result as she trusted
  • of serious reflection, must eventually lead her to contentment and
  • cheerfulness.
  • As they approached Barton, indeed, and entered on scenes of which every
  • field and every tree brought some peculiar, some painful recollection,
  • she grew silent and thoughtful, and turning away her face from their
  • notice, sat earnestly gazing through the window. But here, Elinor
  • could neither wonder nor blame; and when she saw, as she assisted
  • Marianne from the carriage, that she had been crying, she saw only an
  • emotion too natural in itself to raise any thing less tender than pity,
  • and in its unobtrusiveness entitled to praise. In the whole of her
  • subsequent manner, she traced the direction of a mind awakened to
  • reasonable exertion; for no sooner had they entered their common
  • sitting-room, than Marianne turned her eyes around it with a look of
  • resolute firmness, as if determined at once to accustom herself to the
  • sight of every object with which the remembrance of Willoughby could be
  • connected.--She said little, but every sentence aimed at cheerfulness,
  • and though a sigh sometimes escaped her, it never passed away without
  • the atonement of a smile. After dinner she would try her piano-forte.
  • She went to it; but the music on which her eye first rested was an
  • opera, procured for her by Willoughby, containing some of their
  • favourite duets, and bearing on its outward leaf her own name in his
  • hand-writing.--That would not do.--She shook her head, put the music
  • aside, and after running over the keys for a minute, complained of
  • feebleness in her fingers, and closed the instrument again; declaring
  • however with firmness as she did so, that she should in future practice
  • much.
  • The next morning produced no abatement in these happy symptoms. On the
  • contrary, with a mind and body alike strengthened by rest, she looked
  • and spoke with more genuine spirit, anticipating the pleasure of
  • Margaret's return, and talking of the dear family party which would
  • then be restored, of their mutual pursuits and cheerful society, as the
  • only happiness worth a wish.
  • "When the weather is settled, and I have recovered my strength," said
  • she, "we will take long walks together every day. We will walk to the
  • farm at the edge of the down, and see how the children go on; we will
  • walk to Sir John's new plantations at Barton Cross, and the Abbeyland;
  • and we will often go to the old ruins of the Priory, and try to trace its
  • foundations as far as we are told they once reached. I know we shall
  • be happy. I know the summer will pass happily away. I mean never to
  • be later in rising than six, and from that time till dinner I shall
  • divide every moment between music and reading. I have formed my plan,
  • and am determined to enter on a course of serious study. Our own
  • library is too well known to me, to be resorted to for any thing beyond
  • mere amusement. But there are many works well worth reading at the
  • Park; and there are others of more modern production which I know I can
  • borrow of Colonel Brandon. By reading only six hours a-day, I shall
  • gain in the course of a twelve-month a great deal of instruction which
  • I now feel myself to want."
  • Elinor honoured her for a plan which originated so nobly as this;
  • though smiling to see the same eager fancy which had been leading her
  • to the extreme of languid indolence and selfish repining, now at work
  • in introducing excess into a scheme of such rational employment and
  • virtuous self-control. Her smile however changed to a sigh when she
  • remembered that promise to Willoughby was yet unfulfilled, and feared
  • she had that to communicate which might again unsettle the mind of
  • Marianne, and ruin at least for a time this fair prospect of busy
  • tranquillity. Willing therefore to delay the evil hour, she resolved
  • to wait till her sister's health were more secure, before she appointed
  • it. But the resolution was made only to be broken.
  • Marianne had been two or three days at home, before the weather was
  • fine enough for an invalid like herself to venture out. But at last a
  • soft, genial morning appeared; such as might tempt the daughter's
  • wishes and the mother's confidence; and Marianne, leaning on Elinor's
  • arm, was authorised to walk as long as she could without fatigue, in
  • the lane before the house.
  • The sisters set out at a pace, slow as the feebleness of Marianne in an
  • exercise hitherto untried since her illness required;--and they had
  • advanced only so far beyond the house as to admit a full view of the
  • hill, the important hill behind, when pausing with her eyes turned
  • towards it, Marianne calmly said,
  • "There, exactly there,"--pointing with one hand, "on that projecting
  • mound,--there I fell; and there I first saw Willoughby."
  • Her voice sunk with the word, but presently reviving she added,
  • "I am thankful to find that I can look with so little pain on the
  • spot!--shall we ever talk on that subject, Elinor?"--hesitatingly it
  • was said.--"Or will it be wrong?--I can talk of it now, I hope, as I
  • ought to do."--
  • Elinor tenderly invited her to be open.
  • "As for regret," said Marianne, "I have done with that, as far as HE is
  • concerned. I do not mean to talk to you of what my feelings have been
  • for him, but what they are NOW.--At present, if I could be satisfied on
  • one point, if I could be allowed to think that he was not ALWAYS acting
  • a part, not ALWAYS deceiving me;--but above all, if I could be assured
  • that he never was so VERY wicked as my fears have sometimes fancied
  • him, since the story of that unfortunate girl"--
  • She stopt. Elinor joyfully treasured her words as she answered,
  • "If you could be assured of that, you think you should be easy."
  • "Yes. My peace of mind is doubly involved in it;--for not only is it
  • horrible to suspect a person, who has been what HE has been to ME, of
  • such designs,--but what must it make me appear to myself?--What in a
  • situation like mine, but a most shamefully unguarded affection could
  • expose me to"--
  • "How then," asked her sister, "would you account for his behaviour?"
  • "I would suppose him,--Oh, how gladly would I suppose him, only fickle,
  • very, very fickle."
  • Elinor said no more. She was debating within herself on the
  • eligibility of beginning her story directly, or postponing it till
  • Marianne were in stronger health;--and they crept on for a few minutes
  • in silence.
  • "I am not wishing him too much good," said Marianne at last with a
  • sigh, "when I wish his secret reflections may be no more unpleasant
  • than my own. He will suffer enough in them."
  • "Do you compare your conduct with his?"
  • "No. I compare it with what it ought to have been; I compare it with
  • yours."
  • "Our situations have borne little resemblance."
  • "They have borne more than our conduct.--Do not, my dearest Elinor, let
  • your kindness defend what I know your judgment must censure. My
  • illness has made me think-- It has given me leisure and calmness for
  • serious recollection. Long before I was enough recovered to talk, I
  • was perfectly able to reflect. I considered the past: I saw in my own
  • behaviour, since the beginning of our acquaintance with him last
  • autumn, nothing but a series of imprudence towards myself, and want of
  • kindness to others. I saw that my own feelings had prepared my
  • sufferings, and that my want of fortitude under them had almost led me
  • to the grave. My illness, I well knew, had been entirely brought on by
  • myself by such negligence of my own health, as I had felt even at the
  • time to be wrong. Had I died,--it would have been self-destruction. I
  • did not know my danger till the danger was removed; but with such
  • feelings as these reflections gave me, I wonder at my recovery,--wonder
  • that the very eagerness of my desire to live, to have time for
  • atonement to my God, and to you all, did not kill me at once. Had I
  • died,--in what peculiar misery should I have left you, my nurse, my
  • friend, my sister!--You, who had seen all the fretful selfishness of my
  • latter days; who had known all the murmurings of my heart!--How should
  • I have lived in YOUR remembrance!--My mother too! How could you have
  • consoled her!--I cannot express my own abhorrence of myself. Whenever
  • I looked towards the past, I saw some duty neglected, or some failing
  • indulged. Every body seemed injured by me. The kindness, the
  • unceasing kindness of Mrs. Jennings, I had repaid with ungrateful
  • contempt. To the Middletons, to the Palmers, the Steeles, to every
  • common acquaintance even, I had been insolent and unjust; with a heart
  • hardened against their merits, and a temper irritated by their very
  • attention.--To John, to Fanny,--yes, even to them, little as they
  • deserve, I had given less than their due. But you,--you above all,
  • above my mother, had been wronged by me. I, and only I, knew your
  • heart and its sorrows; yet to what did it influence me?--not to any
  • compassion that could benefit you or myself.--Your example was before
  • me; but to what avail?--Was I more considerate of you and your comfort?
  • Did I imitate your forbearance, or lessen your restraints, by taking
  • any part in those offices of general complaisance or particular
  • gratitude which you had hitherto been left to discharge
  • alone?--No;--not less when I knew you to be unhappy, than when I had
  • believed you at ease, did I turn away from every exertion of duty or
  • friendship; scarcely allowing sorrow to exist but with me, regretting
  • only THAT heart which had deserted and wronged me, and leaving you, for
  • whom I professed an unbounded affection, to be miserable for my sake."
  • Here ceased the rapid flow of her self-reproving spirit; and Elinor,
  • impatient to soothe, though too honest to flatter, gave her instantly
  • that praise and support which her frankness and her contrition so well
  • deserved. Marianne pressed her hand and replied,
  • "You are very good.--The future must be my proof. I have laid down my
  • plan, and if I am capable of adhering to it--my feelings shall be
  • governed and my temper improved. They shall no longer worry others,
  • nor torture myself. I shall now live solely for my family. You, my
  • mother, and Margaret, must henceforth be all the world to me; you will
  • share my affections entirely between you. From you, from my home, I
  • shall never again have the smallest incitement to move; and if I do mix
  • in other society, it will be only to shew that my spirit is humbled, my
  • heart amended, and that I can practise the civilities, the lesser
  • duties of life, with gentleness and forbearance. As for Willoughby--to
  • say that I shall soon or that I shall ever forget him, would be idle.
  • His remembrance can be overcome by no change of circumstances or
  • opinions. But it shall be regulated, it shall be checked by religion,
  • by reason, by constant employment."
  • She paused--and added in a low voice, "If I could but know HIS heart,
  • everything would become easy."
  • Elinor, who had now been for some time reflecting on the propriety or
  • impropriety of speedily hazarding her narration, without feeling at all
  • nearer decision than at first, heard this; and perceiving that as
  • reflection did nothing, resolution must do all, soon found herself
  • leading to the fact.
  • She managed the recital, as she hoped, with address; prepared her
  • anxious listener with caution; related simply and honestly the chief
  • points on which Willoughby grounded his apology; did justice to his
  • repentance, and softened only his protestations of present regard.
  • Marianne said not a word.--She trembled, her eyes were fixed on the
  • ground, and her lips became whiter than even sickness had left them. A
  • thousand inquiries sprung up from her heart, but she dared not urge
  • one. She caught every syllable with panting eagerness; her hand,
  • unknowingly to herself, closely pressed her sister's, and tears covered
  • her cheeks.
  • Elinor, dreading her being tired, led her towards home; and till they
  • reached the door of the cottage, easily conjecturing what her curiosity
  • must be though no question was suffered to speak it, talked of nothing
  • but Willoughby, and their conversation together; and was carefully
  • minute in every particular of speech and look, where minuteness could
  • be safely indulged. As soon as they entered the house, Marianne with a
  • kiss of gratitude and these two words just articulate through her
  • tears, "Tell mama," withdrew from her sister and walked slowly up
  • stairs. Elinor would not attempt to disturb a solitude so reasonable
  • as what she now sought; and with a mind anxiously pre-arranging its
  • result, and a resolution of reviving the subject again, should Marianne
  • fail to do it, she turned into the parlour to fulfill her parting
  • injunction.
  • CHAPTER 47
  • Mrs. Dashwood did not hear unmoved the vindication of her former
  • favourite. She rejoiced in his being cleared from some part of his
  • imputed guilt;--she was sorry for him;--she wished him happy. But the
  • feelings of the past could not be recalled.--Nothing could restore him
  • with a faith unbroken--a character unblemished, to Marianne. Nothing
  • could do away the knowledge of what the latter had suffered through his
  • means, nor remove the guilt of his conduct towards Eliza. Nothing
  • could replace him, therefore, in her former esteem, nor injure the
  • interests of Colonel Brandon.
  • Had Mrs. Dashwood, like her daughter, heard Willoughby's story from
  • himself--had she witnessed his distress, and been under the influence
  • of his countenance and his manner, it is probable that her compassion
  • would have been greater. But it was neither in Elinor's power, nor in
  • her wish, to rouse such feelings in another, by her retailed
  • explanation, as had at first been called forth in herself. Reflection
  • had given calmness to her judgment, and sobered her own opinion of
  • Willoughby's deserts;--she wished, therefore, to declare only the
  • simple truth, and lay open such facts as were really due to his
  • character, without any embellishment of tenderness to lead the fancy
  • astray.
  • In the evening, when they were all three together, Marianne began
  • voluntarily to speak of him again;--but that it was not without an
  • effort, the restless, unquiet thoughtfulness in which she had been for
  • some time previously sitting--her rising colour, as she spoke,--and her
  • unsteady voice, plainly shewed.
  • "I wish to assure you both," said she, "that I see every thing--as you
  • can desire me to do."
  • Mrs. Dashwood would have interrupted her instantly with soothing
  • tenderness, had not Elinor, who really wished to hear her sister's
  • unbiased opinion, by an eager sign, engaged her silence. Marianne
  • slowly continued--
  • "It is a great relief to me--what Elinor told me this morning--I have
  • now heard exactly what I wished to hear."--For some moments her voice
  • was lost; but recovering herself, she added, and with greater calmness
  • than before--"I am now perfectly satisfied, I wish for no change. I
  • never could have been happy with him, after knowing, as sooner or later
  • I must have known, all this.--I should have had no confidence, no
  • esteem. Nothing could have done it away to my feelings."
  • "I know it--I know it," cried her mother. "Happy with a man of
  • libertine practices!--With one who so injured the peace of the dearest
  • of our friends, and the best of men!--No--my Marianne has not a heart
  • to be made happy with such a man!--Her conscience, her sensitive
  • conscience, would have felt all that the conscience of her husband
  • ought to have felt."
  • Marianne sighed, and repeated, "I wish for no change."
  • "You consider the matter," said Elinor, "exactly as a good mind and a
  • sound understanding must consider it; and I dare say you perceive, as
  • well as myself, not only in this, but in many other circumstances,
  • reason enough to be convinced that your marriage must have involved you
  • in many certain troubles and disappointments, in which you would have
  • been poorly supported by an affection, on his side, much less certain.
  • Had you married, you must have been always poor. His expensiveness is
  • acknowledged even by himself, and his whole conduct declares that
  • self-denial is a word hardly understood by him. His demands and your
  • inexperience together, on a small, very small income, must have brought
  • on distresses which would not be the LESS grievous to you, from having
  • been entirely unknown and unthought of before. YOUR sense of honour
  • and honesty would have led you, I know, when aware of your situation,
  • to attempt all the economy that would appear to you possible: and,
  • perhaps, as long as your frugality retrenched only on your own comfort,
  • you might have been suffered to practice it, but beyond that--and how
  • little could the utmost of your single management do to stop the ruin
  • which had begun before your marriage?-- Beyond THAT, had you
  • endeavoured, however reasonably, to abridge HIS enjoyments, is it not
  • to be feared, that instead of prevailing on feelings so selfish to
  • consent to it, you would have lessened your own influence on his heart,
  • and made him regret the connection which had involved him in such
  • difficulties?"
  • Marianne's lips quivered, and she repeated the word "Selfish?" in a
  • tone that implied--"do you really think him selfish?"
  • "The whole of his behaviour," replied Elinor, "from the beginning to
  • the end of the affair, has been grounded on selfishness. It was
  • selfishness which first made him sport with your affections; which
  • afterwards, when his own were engaged, made him delay the confession of
  • it, and which finally carried him from Barton. His own enjoyment, or
  • his own ease, was, in every particular, his ruling principle."
  • "It is very true. MY happiness never was his object."
  • "At present," continued Elinor, "he regrets what he has done. And why
  • does he regret it?--Because he finds it has not answered towards
  • himself. It has not made him happy. His circumstances are now
  • unembarrassed--he suffers from no evil of that kind; and he thinks only
  • that he has married a woman of a less amiable temper than yourself.
  • But does it follow that had he married you, he would have been
  • happy?--The inconveniences would have been different. He would then
  • have suffered under the pecuniary distresses which, because they are
  • removed, he now reckons as nothing. He would have had a wife of whose
  • temper he could make no complaint, but he would have been always
  • necessitous--always poor; and probably would soon have learned to rank
  • the innumerable comforts of a clear estate and good income as of far
  • more importance, even to domestic happiness, than the mere temper of a
  • wife."
  • "I have not a doubt of it," said Marianne; "and I have nothing to
  • regret--nothing but my own folly."
  • "Rather say your mother's imprudence, my child," said Mrs. Dashwood;
  • "SHE must be answerable."
  • Marianne would not let her proceed;--and Elinor, satisfied that each
  • felt their own error, wished to avoid any survey of the past that might
  • weaken her sister's spirits; she, therefore, pursuing the first
  • subject, immediately continued,
  • "One observation may, I think, be fairly drawn from the whole of the
  • story--that all Willoughby's difficulties have arisen from the first
  • offence against virtue, in his behaviour to Eliza Williams. That crime
  • has been the origin of every lesser one, and of all his present
  • discontents."
  • Marianne assented most feelingly to the remark; and her mother was led
  • by it to an enumeration of Colonel Brandon's injuries and merits, warm
  • as friendship and design could unitedly dictate. Her daughter did not
  • look, however, as if much of it were heard by her.
  • Elinor, according to her expectation, saw on the two or three following
  • days, that Marianne did not continue to gain strength as she had done;
  • but while her resolution was unsubdued, and she still tried to appear
  • cheerful and easy, her sister could safely trust to the effect of time
  • upon her health.
  • Margaret returned, and the family were again all restored to each
  • other, again quietly settled at the cottage; and if not pursuing their
  • usual studies with quite so much vigour as when they first came to
  • Barton, at least planning a vigorous prosecution of them in future.
  • Elinor grew impatient for some tidings of Edward. She had heard
  • nothing of him since her leaving London, nothing new of his plans,
  • nothing certain even of his present abode. Some letters had passed
  • between her and her brother, in consequence of Marianne's illness; and
  • in the first of John's, there had been this sentence:-- "We know
  • nothing of our unfortunate Edward, and can make no enquiries on so
  • prohibited a subject, but conclude him to be still at Oxford;" which
  • was all the intelligence of Edward afforded her by the correspondence,
  • for his name was not even mentioned in any of the succeeding letters.
  • She was not doomed, however, to be long in ignorance of his measures.
  • Their man-servant had been sent one morning to Exeter on business; and
  • when, as he waited at table, he had satisfied the inquiries of his
  • mistress as to the event of his errand, this was his voluntary
  • communication--
  • "I suppose you know, ma'am, that Mr. Ferrars is married."
  • Marianne gave a violent start, fixed her eyes upon Elinor, saw her
  • turning pale, and fell back in her chair in hysterics. Mrs. Dashwood,
  • whose eyes, as she answered the servant's inquiry, had intuitively
  • taken the same direction, was shocked to perceive by Elinor's
  • countenance how much she really suffered, and a moment afterwards,
  • alike distressed by Marianne's situation, knew not on which child to
  • bestow her principal attention.
  • The servant, who saw only that Miss Marianne was taken ill, had sense
  • enough to call one of the maids, who, with Mrs. Dashwood's assistance,
  • supported her into the other room. By that time, Marianne was rather
  • better, and her mother leaving her to the care of Margaret and the
  • maid, returned to Elinor, who, though still much disordered, had so far
  • recovered the use of her reason and voice as to be just beginning an
  • inquiry of Thomas, as to the source of his intelligence. Mrs. Dashwood
  • immediately took all that trouble on herself; and Elinor had the
  • benefit of the information without the exertion of seeking it.
  • "Who told you that Mr. Ferrars was married, Thomas?"
  • "I see Mr. Ferrars myself, ma'am, this morning in Exeter, and his lady
  • too, Miss Steele as was. They was stopping in a chaise at the door of
  • the New London Inn, as I went there with a message from Sally at the
  • Park to her brother, who is one of the post-boys. I happened to look up
  • as I went by the chaise, and so I see directly it was the youngest Miss
  • Steele; so I took off my hat, and she knew me and called to me, and
  • inquired after you, ma'am, and the young ladies, especially Miss
  • Marianne, and bid me I should give her compliments and Mr. Ferrars's,
  • their best compliments and service, and how sorry they was they had not
  • time to come on and see you, but they was in a great hurry to go
  • forwards, for they was going further down for a little while, but
  • howsever, when they come back, they'd make sure to come and see you."
  • "But did she tell you she was married, Thomas?"
  • "Yes, ma'am. She smiled, and said how she had changed her name since
  • she was in these parts. She was always a very affable and free-spoken
  • young lady, and very civil behaved. So, I made free to wish her joy."
  • "Was Mr. Ferrars in the carriage with her?"
  • "Yes, ma'am, I just see him leaning back in it, but he did not look
  • up;--he never was a gentleman much for talking."
  • Elinor's heart could easily account for his not putting himself
  • forward; and Mrs. Dashwood probably found the same explanation.
  • "Was there no one else in the carriage?"
  • "No, ma'am, only they two."
  • "Do you know where they came from?"
  • "They come straight from town, as Miss Lucy--Mrs. Ferrars told me."
  • "And are they going farther westward?"
  • "Yes, ma'am--but not to bide long. They will soon be back again, and
  • then they'd be sure and call here."
  • Mrs. Dashwood now looked at her daughter; but Elinor knew better than
  • to expect them. She recognised the whole of Lucy in the message, and
  • was very confident that Edward would never come near them. She
  • observed in a low voice, to her mother, that they were probably going
  • down to Mr. Pratt's, near Plymouth.
  • Thomas's intelligence seemed over. Elinor looked as if she wished to
  • hear more.
  • "Did you see them off, before you came away?"
  • "No, ma'am--the horses were just coming out, but I could not bide any
  • longer; I was afraid of being late."
  • "Did Mrs. Ferrars look well?"
  • "Yes, ma'am, she said how she was very well; and to my mind she was
  • always a very handsome young lady--and she seemed vastly contented."
  • Mrs. Dashwood could think of no other question, and Thomas and the
  • tablecloth, now alike needless, were soon afterwards dismissed.
  • Marianne had already sent to say, that she should eat nothing more.
  • Mrs. Dashwood's and Elinor's appetites were equally lost, and Margaret
  • might think herself very well off, that with so much uneasiness as both
  • her sisters had lately experienced, so much reason as they had often
  • had to be careless of their meals, she had never been obliged to go
  • without her dinner before.
  • When the dessert and the wine were arranged, and Mrs. Dashwood and
  • Elinor were left by themselves, they remained long together in a
  • similarity of thoughtfulness and silence. Mrs. Dashwood feared to
  • hazard any remark, and ventured not to offer consolation. She now
  • found that she had erred in relying on Elinor's representation of
  • herself; and justly concluded that every thing had been expressly
  • softened at the time, to spare her from an increase of unhappiness,
  • suffering as she then had suffered for Marianne. She found that she
  • had been misled by the careful, the considerate attention of her
  • daughter, to think the attachment, which once she had so well
  • understood, much slighter in reality, than she had been wont to
  • believe, or than it was now proved to be. She feared that under this
  • persuasion she had been unjust, inattentive, nay, almost unkind, to her
  • Elinor;--that Marianne's affliction, because more acknowledged, more
  • immediately before her, had too much engrossed her tenderness, and led
  • her away to forget that in Elinor she might have a daughter suffering
  • almost as much, certainly with less self-provocation, and greater
  • fortitude.
  • CHAPTER 48
  • Elinor now found the difference between the expectation of an
  • unpleasant event, however certain the mind may be told to consider it,
  • and certainty itself. She now found, that in spite of herself, she had
  • always admitted a hope, while Edward remained single, that something
  • would occur to prevent his marrying Lucy; that some resolution of his
  • own, some mediation of friends, or some more eligible opportunity of
  • establishment for the lady, would arise to assist the happiness of all.
  • But he was now married; and she condemned her heart for the lurking
  • flattery, which so much heightened the pain of the intelligence.
  • That he should be married soon, before (as she imagined) he could be in
  • orders, and consequently before he could be in possession of the
  • living, surprised her a little at first. But she soon saw how likely
  • it was that Lucy, in her self-provident care, in her haste to secure
  • him, should overlook every thing but the risk of delay. They were
  • married, married in town, and now hastening down to her uncle's. What
  • had Edward felt on being within four miles from Barton, on seeing her
  • mother's servant, on hearing Lucy's message!
  • They would soon, she supposed, be settled at Delaford.--Delaford,--that
  • place in which so much conspired to give her an interest; which she
  • wished to be acquainted with, and yet desired to avoid. She saw them
  • in an instant in their parsonage-house; saw in Lucy, the active,
  • contriving manager, uniting at once a desire of smart appearance with
  • the utmost frugality, and ashamed to be suspected of half her
  • economical practices;--pursuing her own interest in every thought,
  • courting the favour of Colonel Brandon, of Mrs. Jennings, and of every
  • wealthy friend. In Edward--she knew not what she saw, nor what she
  • wished to see;--happy or unhappy,--nothing pleased her; she turned away
  • her head from every sketch of him.
  • Elinor flattered herself that some one of their connections in London
  • would write to them to announce the event, and give farther
  • particulars,--but day after day passed off, and brought no letter, no
  • tidings. Though uncertain that any one were to blame, she found fault
  • with every absent friend. They were all thoughtless or indolent.
  • "When do you write to Colonel Brandon, ma'am?" was an inquiry which
  • sprung from the impatience of her mind to have something going on.
  • "I wrote to him, my love, last week, and rather expect to see, than to
  • hear from him again. I earnestly pressed his coming to us, and should
  • not be surprised to see him walk in today or tomorrow, or any day."
  • This was gaining something, something to look forward to. Colonel
  • Brandon must have some information to give.
  • Scarcely had she so determined it, when the figure of a man on
  • horseback drew her eyes to the window. He stopt at their gate. It was
  • a gentleman, it was Colonel Brandon himself. Now she could hear more;
  • and she trembled in expectation of it. But--it was NOT Colonel
  • Brandon--neither his air--nor his height. Were it possible, she must
  • say it must be Edward. She looked again. He had just dismounted;--she
  • could not be mistaken,--it WAS Edward. She moved away and sat down.
  • "He comes from Mr. Pratt's purposely to see us. I WILL be calm; I WILL
  • be mistress of myself."
  • In a moment she perceived that the others were likewise aware of the
  • mistake. She saw her mother and Marianne change colour; saw them look
  • at herself, and whisper a few sentences to each other. She would have
  • given the world to be able to speak--and to make them understand that
  • she hoped no coolness, no slight, would appear in their behaviour to
  • him;--but she had no utterance, and was obliged to leave all to their
  • own discretion.
  • Not a syllable passed aloud. They all waited in silence for the
  • appearance of their visitor. His footsteps were heard along the gravel
  • path; in a moment he was in the passage, and in another he was before
  • them.
  • His countenance, as he entered the room, was not too happy, even for
  • Elinor. His complexion was white with agitation, and he looked as if
  • fearful of his reception, and conscious that he merited no kind one.
  • Mrs. Dashwood, however, conforming, as she trusted, to the wishes of
  • that daughter, by whom she then meant in the warmth of her heart to be
  • guided in every thing, met with a look of forced complacency, gave him
  • her hand, and wished him joy.
  • He coloured, and stammered out an unintelligible reply. Elinor's lips
  • had moved with her mother's, and, when the moment of action was over,
  • she wished that she had shaken hands with him too. But it was then too
  • late, and with a countenance meaning to be open, she sat down again and
  • talked of the weather.
  • Marianne had retreated as much as possible out of sight, to conceal her
  • distress; and Margaret, understanding some part, but not the whole of
  • the case, thought it incumbent on her to be dignified, and therefore
  • took a seat as far from him as she could, and maintained a strict
  • silence.
  • When Elinor had ceased to rejoice in the dryness of the season, a very
  • awful pause took place. It was put an end to by Mrs. Dashwood, who
  • felt obliged to hope that he had left Mrs. Ferrars very well. In a
  • hurried manner, he replied in the affirmative.
  • Another pause.
  • Elinor resolving to exert herself, though fearing the sound of her own
  • voice, now said,
  • "Is Mrs. Ferrars at Longstaple?"
  • "At Longstaple!" he replied, with an air of surprise.-- "No, my mother
  • is in town."
  • "I meant," said Elinor, taking up some work from the table, "to inquire
  • for Mrs. EDWARD Ferrars."
  • She dared not look up;--but her mother and Marianne both turned their
  • eyes on him. He coloured, seemed perplexed, looked doubtingly, and,
  • after some hesitation, said,--
  • "Perhaps you mean--my brother--you mean Mrs.--Mrs. ROBERT Ferrars."
  • "Mrs. Robert Ferrars!"--was repeated by Marianne and her mother in an
  • accent of the utmost amazement;--and though Elinor could not speak,
  • even HER eyes were fixed on him with the same impatient wonder. He
  • rose from his seat, and walked to the window, apparently from not
  • knowing what to do; took up a pair of scissors that lay there, and
  • while spoiling both them and their sheath by cutting the latter to
  • pieces as he spoke, said, in a hurried voice,
  • "Perhaps you do not know--you may not have heard that my brother is
  • lately married to--to the youngest--to Miss Lucy Steele."
  • His words were echoed with unspeakable astonishment by all but Elinor,
  • who sat with her head leaning over her work, in a state of such
  • agitation as made her hardly know where she was.
  • "Yes," said he, "they were married last week, and are now at Dawlish."
  • Elinor could sit it no longer. She almost ran out of the room, and as
  • soon as the door was closed, burst into tears of joy, which at first
  • she thought would never cease. Edward, who had till then looked any
  • where, rather than at her, saw her hurry away, and perhaps saw--or even
  • heard, her emotion; for immediately afterwards he fell into a reverie,
  • which no remarks, no inquiries, no affectionate address of Mrs.
  • Dashwood could penetrate, and at last, without saying a word, quitted
  • the room, and walked out towards the village--leaving the others in the
  • greatest astonishment and perplexity on a change in his situation, so
  • wonderful and so sudden;--a perplexity which they had no means of
  • lessening but by their own conjectures.
  • CHAPTER 49
  • Unaccountable, however, as the circumstances of his release might
  • appear to the whole family, it was certain that Edward was free; and to
  • what purpose that freedom would be employed was easily pre-determined
  • by all;--for after experiencing the blessings of ONE imprudent
  • engagement, contracted without his mother's consent, as he had already
  • done for more than four years, nothing less could be expected of him in
  • the failure of THAT, than the immediate contraction of another.
  • His errand at Barton, in fact, was a simple one. It was only to ask
  • Elinor to marry him;--and considering that he was not altogether
  • inexperienced in such a question, it might be strange that he should
  • feel so uncomfortable in the present case as he really did, so much in
  • need of encouragement and fresh air.
  • How soon he had walked himself into the proper resolution, however, how
  • soon an opportunity of exercising it occurred, in what manner he
  • expressed himself, and how he was received, need not be particularly
  • told. This only need be said;--that when they all sat down to table at
  • four o'clock, about three hours after his arrival, he had secured his
  • lady, engaged her mother's consent, and was not only in the rapturous
  • profession of the lover, but, in the reality of reason and truth, one
  • of the happiest of men. His situation indeed was more than commonly
  • joyful. He had more than the ordinary triumph of accepted love to
  • swell his heart, and raise his spirits. He was released without any
  • reproach to himself, from an entanglement which had long formed his
  • misery, from a woman whom he had long ceased to love;--and elevated at
  • once to that security with another, which he must have thought of
  • almost with despair, as soon as he had learnt to consider it with
  • desire. He was brought, not from doubt or suspense, but from misery to
  • happiness;--and the change was openly spoken in such a genuine,
  • flowing, grateful cheerfulness, as his friends had never witnessed in
  • him before.
  • His heart was now open to Elinor, all its weaknesses, all its errors
  • confessed, and his first boyish attachment to Lucy treated with all the
  • philosophic dignity of twenty-four.
  • "It was a foolish, idle inclination on my side," said he, "the
  • consequence of ignorance of the world--and want of employment. Had my
  • mother given me some active profession when I was removed at eighteen
  • from the care of Mr. Pratt, I think--nay, I am sure, it would never
  • have happened; for though I left Longstaple with what I thought, at the
  • time, a most unconquerable preference for his niece, yet had I then had
  • any pursuit, any object to engage my time and keep me at a distance
  • from her for a few months, I should very soon have outgrown the fancied
  • attachment, especially by mixing more with the world, as in such case I
  • must have done. But instead of having any thing to do, instead of
  • having any profession chosen for me, or being allowed to chuse any
  • myself, I returned home to be completely idle; and for the first
  • twelvemonth afterwards I had not even the nominal employment, which
  • belonging to the university would have given me; for I was not entered
  • at Oxford till I was nineteen. I had therefore nothing in the world to
  • do, but to fancy myself in love; and as my mother did not make my home
  • in every respect comfortable, as I had no friend, no companion in my
  • brother, and disliked new acquaintance, it was not unnatural for me to
  • be very often at Longstaple, where I always felt myself at home, and
  • was always sure of a welcome; and accordingly I spent the greatest part
  • of my time there from eighteen to nineteen: Lucy appeared everything
  • that was amiable and obliging. She was pretty too--at least I thought
  • so THEN; and I had seen so little of other women, that I could make no
  • comparisons, and see no defects. Considering everything, therefore, I
  • hope, foolish as our engagement was, foolish as it has since in every
  • way been proved, it was not at the time an unnatural or an inexcusable
  • piece of folly."
  • The change which a few hours had wrought in the minds and the happiness
  • of the Dashwoods, was such--so great--as promised them all, the
  • satisfaction of a sleepless night. Mrs. Dashwood, too happy to be
  • comfortable, knew not how to love Edward, nor praise Elinor enough, how
  • to be enough thankful for his release without wounding his delicacy,
  • nor how at once to give them leisure for unrestrained conversation
  • together, and yet enjoy, as she wished, the sight and society of both.
  • Marianne could speak HER happiness only by tears. Comparisons would
  • occur--regrets would arise;--and her joy, though sincere as her love
  • for her sister, was of a kind to give her neither spirits nor language.
  • But Elinor--how are HER feelings to be described?--From the moment of
  • learning that Lucy was married to another, that Edward was free, to the
  • moment of his justifying the hopes which had so instantly followed, she
  • was every thing by turns but tranquil. But when the second moment had
  • passed, when she found every doubt, every solicitude removed, compared
  • her situation with what so lately it had been,--saw him honourably
  • released from his former engagement, saw him instantly profiting by the
  • release, to address herself and declare an affection as tender, as
  • constant as she had ever supposed it to be,--she was oppressed, she was
  • overcome by her own felicity;--and happily disposed as is the human
  • mind to be easily familiarized with any change for the better, it
  • required several hours to give sedateness to her spirits, or any degree
  • of tranquillity to her heart.
  • Edward was now fixed at the cottage at least for a week;--for whatever
  • other claims might be made on him, it was impossible that less than a
  • week should be given up to the enjoyment of Elinor's company, or
  • suffice to say half that was to be said of the past, the present, and
  • the future;--for though a very few hours spent in the hard labor of
  • incessant talking will despatch more subjects than can really be in
  • common between any two rational creatures, yet with lovers it is
  • different. Between THEM no subject is finished, no communication is
  • even made, till it has been made at least twenty times over.
  • Lucy's marriage, the unceasing and reasonable wonder among them all,
  • formed of course one of the earliest discussions of the lovers;--and
  • Elinor's particular knowledge of each party made it appear to her in
  • every view, as one of the most extraordinary and unaccountable
  • circumstances she had ever heard. How they could be thrown together,
  • and by what attraction Robert could be drawn on to marry a girl, of
  • whose beauty she had herself heard him speak without any admiration,--a
  • girl too already engaged to his brother, and on whose account that
  • brother had been thrown off by his family--it was beyond her
  • comprehension to make out. To her own heart it was a delightful
  • affair, to her imagination it was even a ridiculous one, but to her
  • reason, her judgment, it was completely a puzzle.
  • Edward could only attempt an explanation by supposing, that, perhaps,
  • at first accidentally meeting, the vanity of the one had been so worked
  • on by the flattery of the other, as to lead by degrees to all the rest.
  • Elinor remembered what Robert had told her in Harley Street, of his
  • opinion of what his own mediation in his brother's affairs might have
  • done, if applied to in time. She repeated it to Edward.
  • "THAT was exactly like Robert,"--was his immediate observation.--"And
  • THAT," he presently added, "might perhaps be in HIS head when the
  • acquaintance between them first began. And Lucy perhaps at first might
  • think only of procuring his good offices in my favour. Other designs
  • might afterward arise."
  • How long it had been carrying on between them, however, he was equally
  • at a loss with herself to make out; for at Oxford, where he had
  • remained for choice ever since his quitting London, he had had no means
  • of hearing of her but from herself, and her letters to the very last
  • were neither less frequent, nor less affectionate than usual. Not the
  • smallest suspicion, therefore, had ever occurred to prepare him for
  • what followed;--and when at last it burst on him in a letter from Lucy
  • herself, he had been for some time, he believed, half stupified between
  • the wonder, the horror, and the joy of such a deliverance. He put the
  • letter into Elinor's hands.
  • "DEAR SIR,
  • "Being very sure I have long lost your affections,
  • I have thought myself at liberty to bestow my own
  • on another, and have no doubt of being as happy with
  • him as I once used to think I might be with you;
  • but I scorn to accept a hand while the heart was
  • another's. Sincerely wish you happy in your choice,
  • and it shall not be my fault if we are not always
  • good friends, as our near relationship now makes
  • proper. I can safely say I owe you no ill-will,
  • and am sure you will be too generous to do us any
  • ill offices. Your brother has gained my affections
  • entirely, and as we could not live without one
  • another, we are just returned from the altar, and
  • are now on our way to Dawlish for a few weeks, which
  • place your dear brother has great curiosity to see,
  • but thought I would first trouble you with these
  • few lines, and shall always remain,
  • "Your sincere well-wisher, friend, and sister,
  • "LUCY FERRARS.
  • "I have burnt all your letters, and will return
  • your picture the first opportunity. Please to destroy
  • my scrawls--but the ring with my hair you are very
  • welcome to keep."
  • Elinor read and returned it without any comment.
  • "I will not ask your opinion of it as a composition," said
  • Edward.--"For worlds would not I have had a letter of hers seen by YOU
  • in former days.--In a sister it is bad enough, but in a wife!--how I
  • have blushed over the pages of her writing!--and I believe I may say
  • that since the first half year of our foolish--business--this is the
  • only letter I ever received from her, of which the substance made me
  • any amends for the defect of the style."
  • "However it may have come about," said Elinor, after a pause,--"they
  • are certainly married. And your mother has brought on herself a most
  • appropriate punishment. The independence she settled on Robert,
  • through resentment against you, has put it in his power to make his own
  • choice; and she has actually been bribing one son with a thousand
  • a-year, to do the very deed which she disinherited the other for
  • intending to do. She will hardly be less hurt, I suppose, by Robert's
  • marrying Lucy, than she would have been by your marrying her."
  • "She will be more hurt by it, for Robert always was her favourite.--She
  • will be more hurt by it, and on the same principle will forgive him
  • much sooner."
  • In what state the affair stood at present between them, Edward knew
  • not, for no communication with any of his family had yet been attempted
  • by him. He had quitted Oxford within four and twenty hours after
  • Lucy's letter arrived, and with only one object before him, the nearest
  • road to Barton, had had no leisure to form any scheme of conduct, with
  • which that road did not hold the most intimate connection. He could do
  • nothing till he were assured of his fate with Miss Dashwood; and by his
  • rapidity in seeking THAT fate, it is to be supposed, in spite of the
  • jealousy with which he had once thought of Colonel Brandon, in spite of
  • the modesty with which he rated his own deserts, and the politeness
  • with which he talked of his doubts, he did not, upon the whole, expect
  • a very cruel reception. It was his business, however, to say that he
  • DID, and he said it very prettily. What he might say on the subject a
  • twelvemonth after, must be referred to the imagination of husbands and
  • wives.
  • That Lucy had certainly meant to deceive, to go off with a flourish of
  • malice against him in her message by Thomas, was perfectly clear to
  • Elinor; and Edward himself, now thoroughly enlightened on her
  • character, had no scruple in believing her capable of the utmost
  • meanness of wanton ill-nature. Though his eyes had been long opened,
  • even before his acquaintance with Elinor began, to her ignorance and a
  • want of liberality in some of her opinions--they had been equally
  • imputed, by him, to her want of education; and till her last letter
  • reached him, he had always believed her to be a well-disposed,
  • good-hearted girl, and thoroughly attached to himself. Nothing but
  • such a persuasion could have prevented his putting an end to an
  • engagement, which, long before the discovery of it laid him open to his
  • mother's anger, had been a continual source of disquiet and regret to
  • him.
  • "I thought it my duty," said he, "independent of my feelings, to give
  • her the option of continuing the engagement or not, when I was
  • renounced by my mother, and stood to all appearance without a friend in
  • the world to assist me. In such a situation as that, where there
  • seemed nothing to tempt the avarice or the vanity of any living
  • creature, how could I suppose, when she so earnestly, so warmly
  • insisted on sharing my fate, whatever it might be, that any thing but
  • the most disinterested affection was her inducement? And even now, I
  • cannot comprehend on what motive she acted, or what fancied advantage
  • it could be to her, to be fettered to a man for whom she had not the
  • smallest regard, and who had only two thousand pounds in the world.
  • She could not foresee that Colonel Brandon would give me a living."
  • "No; but she might suppose that something would occur in your favour;
  • that your own family might in time relent. And at any rate, she lost
  • nothing by continuing the engagement, for she has proved that it
  • fettered neither her inclination nor her actions. The connection was
  • certainly a respectable one, and probably gained her consideration
  • among her friends; and, if nothing more advantageous occurred, it would
  • be better for her to marry YOU than be single."
  • Edward was, of course, immediately convinced that nothing could have
  • been more natural than Lucy's conduct, nor more self-evident than the
  • motive of it.
  • Elinor scolded him, harshly as ladies always scold the imprudence which
  • compliments themselves, for having spent so much time with them at
  • Norland, when he must have felt his own inconstancy.
  • "Your behaviour was certainly very wrong," said she; "because--to say
  • nothing of my own conviction, our relations were all led away by it to
  • fancy and expect WHAT, as you were THEN situated, could never be."
  • He could only plead an ignorance of his own heart, and a mistaken
  • confidence in the force of his engagement.
  • "I was simple enough to think, that because my FAITH was plighted to
  • another, there could be no danger in my being with you; and that the
  • consciousness of my engagement was to keep my heart as safe and sacred
  • as my honour. I felt that I admired you, but I told myself it was only
  • friendship; and till I began to make comparisons between yourself and
  • Lucy, I did not know how far I was got. After that, I suppose, I WAS
  • wrong in remaining so much in Sussex, and the arguments with which I
  • reconciled myself to the expediency of it, were no better than
  • these:--The danger is my own; I am doing no injury to anybody but
  • myself."
  • Elinor smiled, and shook her head.
  • Edward heard with pleasure of Colonel Brandon's being expected at the
  • Cottage, as he really wished not only to be better acquainted with him,
  • but to have an opportunity of convincing him that he no longer resented
  • his giving him the living of Delaford--"Which, at present," said he,
  • "after thanks so ungraciously delivered as mine were on the occasion,
  • he must think I have never forgiven him for offering."
  • NOW he felt astonished himself that he had never yet been to the place.
  • But so little interest had he taken in the matter, that he owed all his
  • knowledge of the house, garden, and glebe, extent of the parish,
  • condition of the land, and rate of the tithes, to Elinor herself, who
  • had heard so much of it from Colonel Brandon, and heard it with so much
  • attention, as to be entirely mistress of the subject.
  • One question after this only remained undecided, between them, one
  • difficulty only was to be overcome. They were brought together by
  • mutual affection, with the warmest approbation of their real friends;
  • their intimate knowledge of each other seemed to make their happiness
  • certain--and they only wanted something to live upon. Edward had two
  • thousand pounds, and Elinor one, which, with Delaford living, was all
  • that they could call their own; for it was impossible that Mrs.
  • Dashwood should advance anything; and they were neither of them quite
  • enough in love to think that three hundred and fifty pounds a-year
  • would supply them with the comforts of life.
  • Edward was not entirely without hopes of some favourable change in his
  • mother towards him; and on THAT he rested for the residue of their
  • income. But Elinor had no such dependence; for since Edward would
  • still be unable to marry Miss Morton, and his chusing herself had been
  • spoken of in Mrs. Ferrars's flattering language as only a lesser evil
  • than his chusing Lucy Steele, she feared that Robert's offence would
  • serve no other purpose than to enrich Fanny.
  • About four days after Edward's arrival Colonel Brandon appeared, to
  • complete Mrs. Dashwood's satisfaction, and to give her the dignity of
  • having, for the first time since her living at Barton, more company
  • with her than her house would hold. Edward was allowed to retain the
  • privilege of first comer, and Colonel Brandon therefore walked every
  • night to his old quarters at the Park; from whence he usually returned
  • in the morning, early enough to interrupt the lovers' first tete-a-tete
  • before breakfast.
  • A three weeks' residence at Delaford, where, in his evening hours at
  • least, he had little to do but to calculate the disproportion between
  • thirty-six and seventeen, brought him to Barton in a temper of mind
  • which needed all the improvement in Marianne's looks, all the kindness
  • of her welcome, and all the encouragement of her mother's language, to
  • make it cheerful. Among such friends, however, and such flattery, he
  • did revive. No rumour of Lucy's marriage had yet reached him:--he knew
  • nothing of what had passed; and the first hours of his visit were
  • consequently spent in hearing and in wondering. Every thing was
  • explained to him by Mrs. Dashwood, and he found fresh reason to rejoice
  • in what he had done for Mr. Ferrars, since eventually it promoted the
  • interest of Elinor.
  • It would be needless to say, that the gentlemen advanced in the good
  • opinion of each other, as they advanced in each other's acquaintance,
  • for it could not be otherwise. Their resemblance in good principles
  • and good sense, in disposition and manner of thinking, would probably
  • have been sufficient to unite them in friendship, without any other
  • attraction; but their being in love with two sisters, and two sisters
  • fond of each other, made that mutual regard inevitable and immediate,
  • which might otherwise have waited the effect of time and judgment.
  • The letters from town, which a few days before would have made every
  • nerve in Elinor's body thrill with transport, now arrived to be read
  • with less emotion than mirth. Mrs. Jennings wrote to tell the
  • wonderful tale, to vent her honest indignation against the jilting
  • girl, and pour forth her compassion towards poor Mr. Edward, who, she
  • was sure, had quite doted upon the worthless hussy, and was now, by all
  • accounts, almost broken-hearted, at Oxford.-- "I do think," she
  • continued, "nothing was ever carried on so sly; for it was but two days
  • before Lucy called and sat a couple of hours with me. Not a soul
  • suspected anything of the matter, not even Nancy, who, poor soul! came
  • crying to me the day after, in a great fright for fear of Mrs. Ferrars,
  • as well as not knowing how to get to Plymouth; for Lucy it seems
  • borrowed all her money before she went off to be married, on purpose we
  • suppose to make a show with, and poor Nancy had not seven shillings in
  • the world;--so I was very glad to give her five guineas to take her
  • down to Exeter, where she thinks of staying three or four weeks with
  • Mrs. Burgess, in hopes, as I tell her, to fall in with the Doctor
  • again. And I must say that Lucy's crossness not to take them along
  • with them in the chaise is worse than all. Poor Mr. Edward! I cannot
  • get him out of my head, but you must send for him to Barton, and Miss
  • Marianne must try to comfort him."
  • Mr. Dashwood's strains were more solemn. Mrs. Ferrars was the most
  • unfortunate of women--poor Fanny had suffered agonies of
  • sensibility--and he considered the existence of each, under such a
  • blow, with grateful wonder. Robert's offence was unpardonable, but
  • Lucy's was infinitely worse. Neither of them were ever again to be
  • mentioned to Mrs. Ferrars; and even, if she might hereafter be induced
  • to forgive her son, his wife should never be acknowledged as her
  • daughter, nor be permitted to appear in her presence. The secrecy with
  • which everything had been carried on between them, was rationally
  • treated as enormously heightening the crime, because, had any suspicion
  • of it occurred to the others, proper measures would have been taken to
  • prevent the marriage; and he called on Elinor to join with him in
  • regretting that Lucy's engagement with Edward had not rather been
  • fulfilled, than that she should thus be the means of spreading misery
  • farther in the family.-- He thus continued:
  • "Mrs. Ferrars has never yet mentioned Edward's name, which does not
  • surprise us; but, to our great astonishment, not a line has been
  • received from him on the occasion. Perhaps, however, he is kept silent
  • by his fear of offending, and I shall, therefore, give him a hint, by a
  • line to Oxford, that his sister and I both think a letter of proper
  • submission from him, addressed perhaps to Fanny, and by her shewn to
  • her mother, might not be taken amiss; for we all know the tenderness of
  • Mrs. Ferrars's heart, and that she wishes for nothing so much as to be
  • on good terms with her children."
  • This paragraph was of some importance to the prospects and conduct of
  • Edward. It determined him to attempt a reconciliation, though not
  • exactly in the manner pointed out by their brother and sister.
  • "A letter of proper submission!" repeated he; "would they have me beg
  • my mother's pardon for Robert's ingratitude to HER, and breach of
  • honour to ME?--I can make no submission--I am grown neither humble nor
  • penitent by what has passed.--I am grown very happy; but that would not
  • interest.--I know of no submission that IS proper for me to make."
  • "You may certainly ask to be forgiven," said Elinor, "because you have
  • offended;--and I should think you might NOW venture so far as to
  • profess some concern for having ever formed the engagement which drew
  • on you your mother's anger."
  • He agreed that he might.
  • "And when she has forgiven you, perhaps a little humility may be
  • convenient while acknowledging a second engagement, almost as imprudent
  • in HER eyes as the first."
  • He had nothing to urge against it, but still resisted the idea of a
  • letter of proper submission; and therefore, to make it easier to him,
  • as he declared a much greater willingness to make mean concessions by
  • word of mouth than on paper, it was resolved that, instead of writing
  • to Fanny, he should go to London, and personally intreat her good
  • offices in his favour.-- "And if they really DO interest themselves,"
  • said Marianne, in her new character of candour, "in bringing about a
  • reconciliation, I shall think that even John and Fanny are not entirely
  • without merit."
  • After a visit on Colonel Brandon's side of only three or four days, the
  • two gentlemen quitted Barton together.-- They were to go immediately to
  • Delaford, that Edward might have some personal knowledge of his future
  • home, and assist his patron and friend in deciding on what improvements
  • were needed to it; and from thence, after staying there a couple of
  • nights, he was to proceed on his journey to town.
  • CHAPTER 50
  • After a proper resistance on the part of Mrs. Ferrars, just so violent
  • and so steady as to preserve her from that reproach which she always
  • seemed fearful of incurring, the reproach of being too amiable, Edward
  • was admitted to her presence, and pronounced to be again her son.
  • Her family had of late been exceedingly fluctuating. For many years of
  • her life she had had two sons; but the crime and annihilation of Edward
  • a few weeks ago, had robbed her of one; the similar annihilation of
  • Robert had left her for a fortnight without any; and now, by the
  • resuscitation of Edward, she had one again.
  • In spite of his being allowed once more to live, however, he did not
  • feel the continuance of his existence secure, till he had revealed his
  • present engagement; for the publication of that circumstance, he
  • feared, might give a sudden turn to his constitution, and carry him off
  • as rapidly as before. With apprehensive caution therefore it was
  • revealed, and he was listened to with unexpected calmness. Mrs.
  • Ferrars at first reasonably endeavoured to dissuade him from marrying
  • Miss Dashwood, by every argument in her power;--told him, that in Miss
  • Morton he would have a woman of higher rank and larger fortune;--and
  • enforced the assertion, by observing that Miss Morton was the daughter
  • of a nobleman with thirty thousand pounds, while Miss Dashwood was only
  • the daughter of a private gentleman with no more than THREE; but when
  • she found that, though perfectly admitting the truth of her
  • representation, he was by no means inclined to be guided by it, she
  • judged it wisest, from the experience of the past, to submit--and
  • therefore, after such an ungracious delay as she owed to her own
  • dignity, and as served to prevent every suspicion of good-will, she
  • issued her decree of consent to the marriage of Edward and Elinor.
  • What she would engage to do towards augmenting their income was next to
  • be considered; and here it plainly appeared, that though Edward was now
  • her only son, he was by no means her eldest; for while Robert was
  • inevitably endowed with a thousand pounds a-year, not the smallest
  • objection was made against Edward's taking orders for the sake of two
  • hundred and fifty at the utmost; nor was anything promised either for
  • the present or in future, beyond the ten thousand pounds, which had
  • been given with Fanny.
  • It was as much, however, as was desired, and more than was expected, by
  • Edward and Elinor; and Mrs. Ferrars herself, by her shuffling excuses,
  • seemed the only person surprised at her not giving more.
  • With an income quite sufficient to their wants thus secured to them,
  • they had nothing to wait for after Edward was in possession of the
  • living, but the readiness of the house, to which Colonel Brandon, with
  • an eager desire for the accommodation of Elinor, was making
  • considerable improvements; and after waiting some time for their
  • completion, after experiencing, as usual, a thousand disappointments
  • and delays from the unaccountable dilatoriness of the workmen, Elinor,
  • as usual, broke through the first positive resolution of not marrying
  • till every thing was ready, and the ceremony took place in Barton
  • church early in the autumn.
  • The first month after their marriage was spent with their friend at the
  • Mansion-house; from whence they could superintend the progress of the
  • Parsonage, and direct every thing as they liked on the spot;--could
  • chuse papers, project shrubberies, and invent a sweep. Mrs. Jennings's
  • prophecies, though rather jumbled together, were chiefly fulfilled; for
  • she was able to visit Edward and his wife in their Parsonage by
  • Michaelmas, and she found in Elinor and her husband, as she really
  • believed, one of the happiest couples in the world. They had in fact
  • nothing to wish for, but the marriage of Colonel Brandon and Marianne,
  • and rather better pasturage for their cows.
  • They were visited on their first settling by almost all their relations
  • and friends. Mrs. Ferrars came to inspect the happiness which she was
  • almost ashamed of having authorised; and even the Dashwoods were at the
  • expense of a journey from Sussex to do them honour.
  • "I will not say that I am disappointed, my dear sister," said John, as
  • they were walking together one morning before the gates of Delaford
  • House, "THAT would be saying too much, for certainly you have been one
  • of the most fortunate young women in the world, as it is. But, I
  • confess, it would give me great pleasure to call Colonel Brandon
  • brother. His property here, his place, his house, every thing is in
  • such respectable and excellent condition!--and his woods!--I have not
  • seen such timber any where in Dorsetshire, as there is now standing in
  • Delaford Hanger!--And though, perhaps, Marianne may not seem exactly
  • the person to attract him--yet I think it would altogether be advisable
  • for you to have them now frequently staying with you, for as Colonel
  • Brandon seems a great deal at home, nobody can tell what may
  • happen--for, when people are much thrown together, and see little of
  • anybody else--and it will always be in your power to set her off to
  • advantage, and so forth;--in short, you may as well give her a
  • chance--You understand me."--
  • But though Mrs. Ferrars DID come to see them, and always treated them
  • with the make-believe of decent affection, they were never insulted by
  • her real favour and preference. THAT was due to the folly of Robert,
  • and the cunning of his wife; and it was earned by them before many
  • months had passed away. The selfish sagacity of the latter, which had
  • at first drawn Robert into the scrape, was the principal instrument of
  • his deliverance from it; for her respectful humility, assiduous
  • attentions, and endless flatteries, as soon as the smallest opening was
  • given for their exercise, reconciled Mrs. Ferrars to his choice, and
  • re-established him completely in her favour.
  • The whole of Lucy's behaviour in the affair, and the prosperity which
  • crowned it, therefore, may be held forth as a most encouraging instance
  • of what an earnest, an unceasing attention to self-interest, however
  • its progress may be apparently obstructed, will do in securing every
  • advantage of fortune, with no other sacrifice than that of time and
  • conscience. When Robert first sought her acquaintance, and privately
  • visited her in Bartlett's Buildings, it was only with the view imputed
  • to him by his brother. He merely meant to persuade her to give up the
  • engagement; and as there could be nothing to overcome but the affection
  • of both, he naturally expected that one or two interviews would settle
  • the matter. In that point, however, and that only, he erred;--for
  • though Lucy soon gave him hopes that his eloquence would convince her
  • in TIME, another visit, another conversation, was always wanted to
  • produce this conviction. Some doubts always lingered in her mind when
  • they parted, which could only be removed by another half hour's
  • discourse with himself. His attendance was by this means secured, and
  • the rest followed in course. Instead of talking of Edward, they came
  • gradually to talk only of Robert,--a subject on which he had always
  • more to say than on any other, and in which she soon betrayed an
  • interest even equal to his own; and in short, it became speedily
  • evident to both, that he had entirely supplanted his brother. He was
  • proud of his conquest, proud of tricking Edward, and very proud of
  • marrying privately without his mother's consent. What immediately
  • followed is known. They passed some months in great happiness at
  • Dawlish; for she had many relations and old acquaintances to cut--and
  • he drew several plans for magnificent cottages;--and from thence
  • returning to town, procured the forgiveness of Mrs. Ferrars, by the
  • simple expedient of asking it, which, at Lucy's instigation, was
  • adopted. The forgiveness, at first, indeed, as was reasonable,
  • comprehended only Robert; and Lucy, who had owed his mother no duty and
  • therefore could have transgressed none, still remained some weeks
  • longer unpardoned. But perseverance in humility of conduct and
  • messages, in self-condemnation for Robert's offence, and gratitude for
  • the unkindness she was treated with, procured her in time the haughty
  • notice which overcame her by its graciousness, and led soon afterwards,
  • by rapid degrees, to the highest state of affection and influence.
  • Lucy became as necessary to Mrs. Ferrars, as either Robert or Fanny;
  • and while Edward was never cordially forgiven for having once intended
  • to marry her, and Elinor, though superior to her in fortune and birth,
  • was spoken of as an intruder, SHE was in every thing considered, and
  • always openly acknowledged, to be a favourite child. They settled in
  • town, received very liberal assistance from Mrs. Ferrars, were on the
  • best terms imaginable with the Dashwoods; and setting aside the
  • jealousies and ill-will continually subsisting between Fanny and Lucy,
  • in which their husbands of course took a part, as well as the frequent
  • domestic disagreements between Robert and Lucy themselves, nothing
  • could exceed the harmony in which they all lived together.
  • What Edward had done to forfeit the right of eldest son, might have
  • puzzled many people to find out; and what Robert had done to succeed to
  • it, might have puzzled them still more. It was an arrangement,
  • however, justified in its effects, if not in its cause; for nothing
  • ever appeared in Robert's style of living or of talking to give a
  • suspicion of his regretting the extent of his income, as either leaving
  • his brother too little, or bringing himself too much;--and if Edward
  • might be judged from the ready discharge of his duties in every
  • particular, from an increasing attachment to his wife and his home, and
  • from the regular cheerfulness of his spirits, he might be supposed no
  • less contented with his lot, no less free from every wish of an
  • exchange.
  • Elinor's marriage divided her as little from her family as could well
  • be contrived, without rendering the cottage at Barton entirely useless,
  • for her mother and sisters spent much more than half their time with
  • her. Mrs. Dashwood was acting on motives of policy as well as pleasure
  • in the frequency of her visits at Delaford; for her wish of bringing
  • Marianne and Colonel Brandon together was hardly less earnest, though
  • rather more liberal than what John had expressed. It was now her
  • darling object. Precious as was the company of her daughter to her,
  • she desired nothing so much as to give up its constant enjoyment to her
  • valued friend; and to see Marianne settled at the mansion-house was
  • equally the wish of Edward and Elinor. They each felt his sorrows, and
  • their own obligations, and Marianne, by general consent, was to be the
  • reward of all.
  • With such a confederacy against her--with a knowledge so intimate of
  • his goodness--with a conviction of his fond attachment to herself,
  • which at last, though long after it was observable to everybody
  • else--burst on her--what could she do?
  • Marianne Dashwood was born to an extraordinary fate. She was born to
  • discover the falsehood of her own opinions, and to counteract, by her
  • conduct, her most favourite maxims. She was born to overcome an
  • affection formed so late in life as at seventeen, and with no sentiment
  • superior to strong esteem and lively friendship, voluntarily to give
  • her hand to another!--and THAT other, a man who had suffered no less
  • than herself under the event of a former attachment, whom, two years
  • before, she had considered too old to be married,--and who still sought
  • the constitutional safeguard of a flannel waistcoat!
  • But so it was. Instead of falling a sacrifice to an irresistible
  • passion, as once she had fondly flattered herself with expecting,--instead
  • of remaining even for ever with her mother, and finding her only
  • pleasures in retirement and study, as afterwards in her more calm and
  • sober judgment she had determined on,--she found herself at nineteen,
  • submitting to new attachments, entering on new duties, placed in a new
  • home, a wife, the mistress of a family, and the patroness of a village.
  • Colonel Brandon was now as happy, as all those who best loved him,
  • believed he deserved to be;--in Marianne he was consoled for every past
  • affliction;--her regard and her society restored his mind to animation,
  • and his spirits to cheerfulness; and that Marianne found her own
  • happiness in forming his, was equally the persuasion and delight of
  • each observing friend. Marianne could never love by halves; and her
  • whole heart became, in time, as much devoted to her husband, as it had
  • once been to Willoughby.
  • Willoughby could not hear of her marriage without a pang; and his
  • punishment was soon afterwards complete in the voluntary forgiveness of
  • Mrs. Smith, who, by stating his marriage with a woman of character, as
  • the source of her clemency, gave him reason for believing that had he
  • behaved with honour towards Marianne, he might at once have been happy
  • and rich. That his repentance of misconduct, which thus brought its
  • own punishment, was sincere, need not be doubted;--nor that he long
  • thought of Colonel Brandon with envy, and of Marianne with regret. But
  • that he was for ever inconsolable, that he fled from society, or
  • contracted an habitual gloom of temper, or died of a broken heart, must
  • not be depended on--for he did neither. He lived to exert, and
  • frequently to enjoy himself. His wife was not always out of humour,
  • nor his home always uncomfortable; and in his breed of horses and dogs,
  • and in sporting of every kind, he found no inconsiderable degree of
  • domestic felicity.
  • For Marianne, however--in spite of his incivility in surviving her
  • loss--he always retained that decided regard which interested him in
  • every thing that befell her, and made her his secret standard of
  • perfection in woman;--and many a rising beauty would be slighted by him
  • in after-days as bearing no comparison with Mrs. Brandon.
  • Mrs. Dashwood was prudent enough to remain at the cottage, without
  • attempting a removal to Delaford; and fortunately for Sir John and Mrs.
  • Jennings, when Marianne was taken from them, Margaret had reached an
  • age highly suitable for dancing, and not very ineligible for being
  • supposed to have a lover.
  • Between Barton and Delaford, there was that constant communication
  • which strong family affection would naturally dictate;--and among the
  • merits and the happiness of Elinor and Marianne, let it not be ranked
  • as the least considerable, that though sisters, and living almost
  • within sight of each other, they could live without disagreement
  • between themselves, or producing coolness between their husbands.
  • THE END
  • End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of Sense and Sensibility, by Jane Austen
  • *** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK SENSE AND SENSIBILITY ***
  • ***** This file should be named 161.txt or 161.zip *****
  • This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
  • http://www.gutenberg.org/1/6/161/
  • Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
  • will be renamed.
  • Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
  • one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
  • (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
  • permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
  • set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
  • copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
  • protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
  • Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
  • charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
  • do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
  • rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
  • such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
  • research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
  • practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
  • subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
  • redistribution.
  • *** START: FULL LICENSE ***
  • THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
  • PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
  • To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
  • distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
  • (or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
  • Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
  • http://gutenberg.net/license).
  • Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic works
  • 1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
  • and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
  • (trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
  • the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
  • all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
  • If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
  • terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
  • entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
  • 1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
  • used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
  • agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
  • things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
  • even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
  • paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
  • and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  • works. See paragraph 1.E below.
  • 1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
  • or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
  • collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
  • individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
  • located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
  • copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
  • works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
  • are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
  • freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
  • this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
  • the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
  • keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
  • 1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
  • what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
  • a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
  • the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
  • before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
  • creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
  • Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
  • the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
  • States.
  • 1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
  • 1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
  • access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
  • whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
  • phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
  • Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
  • copied or distributed:
  • This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
  • almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
  • re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
  • with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.net
  • 1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
  • from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
  • posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
  • and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
  • or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
  • with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
  • work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
  • through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
  • Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
  • 1.E.9.
  • 1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
  • with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
  • must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
  • terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
  • to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
  • permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
  • 1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
  • work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
  • 1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
  • electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
  • prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
  • active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License.
  • 1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
  • compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
  • word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
  • distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
  • "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
  • posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.net),
  • you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
  • copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
  • request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
  • form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
  • 1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
  • performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
  • unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
  • 1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
  • access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
  • that
  • - You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
  • the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
  • you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
  • owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
  • has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
  • Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
  • must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
  • prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
  • returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
  • sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
  • address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
  • the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
  • - You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
  • you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
  • does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License. You must require such a user to return or
  • destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
  • and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
  • Project Gutenberg-tm works.
  • - You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
  • money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
  • electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
  • of receipt of the work.
  • - You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
  • distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
  • 1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
  • forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
  • both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
  • Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
  • Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
  • 1.F.
  • 1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
  • effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
  • public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
  • collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  • works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
  • "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
  • corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
  • property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
  • computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
  • your equipment.
  • 1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
  • of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
  • Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
  • liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
  • fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
  • LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
  • PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
  • TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
  • LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
  • INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
  • DAMAGE.
  • 1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
  • defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
  • receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
  • written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
  • received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
  • your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
  • the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
  • refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
  • providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
  • receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
  • is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
  • opportunities to fix the problem.
  • 1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
  • in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
  • WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
  • WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
  • 1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
  • warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
  • If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
  • law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
  • interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
  • the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
  • provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
  • 1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
  • trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
  • providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
  • with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
  • promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
  • harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
  • that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
  • or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
  • work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
  • Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
  • Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
  • Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
  • electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
  • including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
  • because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
  • people in all walks of life.
  • Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
  • assistance they need, is critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
  • goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
  • remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
  • Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
  • and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
  • To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
  • and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
  • and the Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org.
  • Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
  • Foundation
  • The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
  • 501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
  • state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
  • Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
  • number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
  • http://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
  • Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
  • permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
  • The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
  • Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
  • throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
  • 809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
  • business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
  • information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
  • page at http://pglaf.org
  • For additional contact information:
  • Dr. Gregory B. Newby
  • Chief Executive and Director
  • gbnewby@pglaf.org
  • Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
  • Literary Archive Foundation
  • Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
  • spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
  • increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
  • freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
  • array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
  • ($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
  • status with the IRS.
  • The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
  • charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
  • States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
  • considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
  • with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
  • where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
  • SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
  • particular state visit http://pglaf.org
  • While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
  • have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
  • against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
  • approach us with offers to donate.
  • International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
  • any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
  • outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
  • Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
  • methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
  • ways including including checks, online payments and credit card
  • donations. To donate, please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate
  • Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  • works.
  • Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
  • concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
  • with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
  • Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
  • Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
  • editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
  • unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
  • keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
  • Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
  • http://www.gutenberg.net
  • This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
  • including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
  • Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
  • subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.